Quotations.ch
  Directory : The Children of the New Forest
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • Project Gutenberg's The Children of the New Forest, by Captain Marryat
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • Title: The Children of the New Forest
  • Author: Captain Marryat
  • Posting Date: January 14, 2013 [EBook #6471]
  • Release Date: September, 2004
  • First Posted: December 18, 2002
  • Language: English
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CHILDREN OF THE NEW FOREST ***
  • Produced by Juliet Sutherland, Charles Franks and the
  • Online Distributed Proofreading Team.
  • THE CHILDREN OF THE NEW FOREST.
  • BY CAPT. MARRYAT, R.N.
  • 1864.
  • CHAPTER I.
  • The circumstances which I am about to relate to my juvenile readers
  • took place in the year 1647. By referring to the history of England, of
  • that date, they will find that King Charles the First, against whom the
  • Commons of England had rebelled, after a civil war of nearly five
  • years, had been defeated, and was confined as a prisoner at Hampton
  • Court. The Cavaliers, or the party who fought for King Charles, had all
  • been dispersed and the Parliamentary army under the command of Cromwell
  • were beginning to control the Commons.
  • It was in the month of November in this year that King Charles,
  • accompanied by Sir John Berkely, Ashburnham, and Legg, made his escape
  • from Hampton Court, and rode as fast as the horses could carry them
  • toward that part of Hampshire which led to the New Forest. The king
  • expected that his friends had provided a vessel in which he might
  • escape to France, but in this he was disappointed. There was no vessel
  • ready, and after riding for some time along the shore, he resolved to
  • go to Titchfield, a seat belonging to the Earl of Southampton. After a
  • long consultation with those who attended him, he yielded to their
  • advice, which was, to trust to Colonel Hammond, who was governor of the
  • Isle of Wight for the Parliament, but who was supposed to be friendly
  • to the king. Whatever might be the feelings of commiseration of Colonel
  • Hammond toward a king so unfortunately situated, he was firm in his
  • duties toward his employers, and the consequence was that King Charles
  • found himself again a prisoner in Carisbrook Castle.
  • But we must now leave the king and retrace history to the commencement
  • of the civil war. A short distance from the town of Lymington, which is
  • not far from Titchfield, where the king took shelter, but on the other
  • side of Southampton Water, and south of the New Forest, to which it
  • adjoins, was a property called Arnwood, which belonged to a Cavalier of
  • the name of Beverley. It was at that time a property of considerable
  • value, being very extensive, and the park ornamented with valuable
  • timber; for it abutted on the New Forest, and might have been supposed
  • to have been a continuation of it. This Colonel Beverley, as we must
  • call him, for he rose to that rank in the king's army, was a valued
  • friend and companion of Prince Rupert, and commanded several troops of
  • cavalry. He was ever at his side in the brilliant charges made by this
  • gallant prince, and at last fell in his arms at the battle of Naseby.
  • Colonel Beverley had married into the family of the Villiers, and the
  • issue of his marriage was two sons and two daughters; but his zeal and
  • sense of duty had induced him, at the commencement of the war, to leave
  • his wife and family at Arnwood, and he was fated never to meet them
  • again. The news of his death had such an effect upon Mrs. Beverley,
  • already worn with anxiety on her husband's account, that a few months
  • afterward she followed him to an early tomb, leaving the four children
  • under the charge of an elderly relative, till such time as the family
  • of the Villiers could protect them; but, as will appear by our history,
  • this was not at that period possible. The life of a king and many other
  • lives were in jeopardy, and the orphans remained at Arnwood, still
  • under the care of their elderly relation, at the time that our history
  • commences.
  • The New Forest, my readers are perhaps aware, was first inclosed by
  • William the Conqueror as a royal forest for his own amusement--for in
  • those days most crowned heads were passionately fond of the chase; and
  • they may also recollect that his successor, William Rufus, met his
  • death in this forest by the glancing of an arrow shot by Sir Walter
  • Tyrrell. Since that time to the present day it has continued a royal
  • domain. At the period of which we are writing, it had an establishment
  • of verderers and keepers, paid by the crown, amounting to some forty or
  • fifty men. At the commencement of the civil war they remained at their
  • posts, but soon found, in the disorganized state of the country, that
  • their wages were no longer to be obtained; and then, when the king had
  • decided upon raising an army, Beverley, who held a superior office in
  • the Forest, enrolled all the young and athletic men who were employed
  • in the Forest, and marched them away with him to join the king's army.
  • Some few remained, their age not rendering their services of value, and
  • among them was an old and attached servant of Beverley, a man above
  • sixty years of age, whose name was Jacob Armitage, and who had obtained
  • the situation through Colonel Beverley's interest. Those who remained
  • in the Forest lived in cottages many miles asunder, and indemnified
  • themselves for the non-payment of their salaries by killing the deer
  • for sale and for their own subsistence.
  • The cottage of Jacob Armitage was situated on the skirts of the New
  • Forest, about a mile and a half from the mansion of Arnwood; and when
  • Colonel Beverley went to join the king's troops, feeling how little
  • security there would be for his wife and children in those troubled
  • times, he requested the old man, by his attachment to the family, not
  • to lose sight of Arnwood, but to call there as often as possible to see
  • if he could be of service to Mrs. Beverley. The colonel would have
  • persuaded Jacob to have altogether taken up his residence at the
  • mansion, but to this the old man objected. He had been all his life
  • under the greenwood tree, and could not bear to leave the forest. He
  • promised the colonel that he would watch over his family, and ever be
  • at hand when required; and he kept his word. The death of Colonel
  • Beverley was a heavy blow to the old forester, and he watched over Mrs.
  • Beverley and the orphans with the greatest solicitude; but when Mrs.
  • Beverley followed her husband to the tomb, he then redoubled his
  • attentions, and was seldom more than a few hours at a time away from
  • the mansion. The two boys were his inseparable companions, and he
  • instructed them, young as they were, in all the secrets of his own
  • calling. Such was the state of affairs at the time that King Charles
  • made his escape from Hampton Court; and I now shall resume my narrative
  • from where it was broken off.
  • As soon as the escape of Charles I. was made known to Cromwell and the
  • Parliament, troops of horse were dispatched in every direction to the
  • southward, toward which the prints of the horses' hoofs proved that he
  • had gone. As they found that he had proceeded in the direction of the
  • New Forest, the troops were subdivided and ordered to scour the forest,
  • in parties of twelve to twenty, while others hastened down to
  • Southampton, Lymington, and every other seaport or part of the coast
  • from which the king might be likely to embark. Old Jacob had been at
  • Arnwood on the day before, but on this day he had made up his mind to
  • procure some venison, that he might not go there again empty-handed;
  • for Miss Judith Villiers was very partial to venison, and was not slow
  • to remind Jacob, if the larder was for many days deficient in that
  • meat. Jacob had gone out accordingly; he had gained his leeward
  • position of a fine buck, and was gradually nearing him by stealth--now
  • behind a huge oak tree, and then crawling through the high fern, so as
  • to get within shot unperceived, when on a sudden the animal, which had
  • been quietly feeding, bounded away and disappeared in the thicket. At
  • the same time Jacob perceived a small body of horse galloping through
  • the glen in which the buck had been feeding. Jacob had never yet seen
  • the Parliamentary troops, for they had not during the war been sent
  • into that part of the country, but their iron skull-caps, their buff
  • accouterments, and dark habiliments assured him that such these must
  • be; so very different were they from the gayly-equipped Cavalier
  • cavalry commanded by Prince Rupert. At the time that they advanced,
  • Jacob had been lying down in the fern near to some low black-thorn
  • bushes; not wishing to be perceived by them, he drew back between the
  • bushes, intending to remain concealed until they should gallop out of
  • sight; for Jacob thought, "I am a king's forester, and they may
  • consider me as an enemy, and who knows how I may be treated by them?"
  • But Jacob was disappointed in his expectations of the troops riding
  • past him; on the contrary, as soon as they arrived at an oak tree
  • within twenty yards of where he was concealed, the order was given to
  • halt and dismount; the sabers of the horsemen clattered in their iron
  • sheaths as the order was obeyed, and the old man expected to be
  • immediately discovered; but one of the thorn bushes was directly
  • between him and the troopers, and effectually concealed him. At last
  • Jacob ventured to raise his head and peep through the bush; and he
  • perceived that the men were loosening the girths of their black horses,
  • or wiping away the perspiration from their sides with handfuls of fern.
  • A powerfully-formed man, who appeared to command the others, was
  • standing with his hand upon the arched neck of his steed, which
  • appeared as fresh and vigorous as ever, although covered with foam and
  • perspiration. "Spare not to rub down, my men," said he, "for we have
  • tried the mettle of our horses, and have now but one half-hour's
  • breathing-time. We must be on, for the work of the Lord must be done."
  • "They say that this forest is many miles in length and breadth,"
  • observed another of the men, "and we may ride many a mile to no
  • purpose; but here is James Southwold, who once was living in it as a
  • verderer; nay, I think that he said that he was born and bred in these
  • woods. Was it not so, James Southwold?"
  • "It is even as you say," replied an active-looking young man; "I was
  • born and bred in this forest, and my father was a verderer before me."
  • Jacob Armitage, who listened to the conversation, immediately
  • recognized the young man in question. He was one of those who had
  • joined the king's army with the other verderers and keepers. It pained
  • him much to perceive that one who had always been considered a frank,
  • true-hearted young man, and who left the forest to fight in defense of
  • his king, was now turned a traitor, and had joined the ranks of the
  • enemy; and Jacob thought how much better it had been for James
  • Southwold, if he had never quitted the New Forest, and had not been
  • corrupted by evil company; "he was a good lad," thought Jacob, "and now
  • he is a traitor and a hypocrite."
  • "If born and bred in this forest, James Southwold," said the leader of
  • the troop, "you must fain know all its mazes and paths. Now, call to
  • mind, are there no secret hiding-places in which people may remain
  • concealed; no thickets which may cover both man and horse? Peradventure
  • thou mayest point out the very spot where this man Charles may be
  • hidden?"
  • "I do know one dell, within a mile of Arnwood," replied James
  • Southwold, "which might cover double our troop from the eyes of the
  • most wary."
  • "We will ride there, then," replied the leader. "Arnwood, sayest thou?
  • is not that the property of the Malignant Cavalier Beverley, who was
  • shot down at Naseby?"
  • "Even so," replied Southwold; "and many is the time--that is, in the
  • olden time, before I was regenerated--many is the day of revelry that I
  • have passed there; many the cup of good ale that I have quaffed."
  • "And thou shalt quaff it again," replied the leader. "Good ale was not
  • intended only for Malignants, but for those who serve diligently. After
  • we have examined the dell which thou speakest of, we will direct our
  • horses' heads toward Arnwood."
  • "Who knows but what the man Charles may be concealed in the Malignant's
  • house?" observed another.
  • "In the day I should say no," replied the leader; "but in the night the
  • Cavaliers like to have a roof over their heads; and, therefore, at
  • night, and not before, will we proceed thither."
  • "I have searched many of their abodes," observed another, "but search
  • is almost in vain. What with their spring panels, and secret doors,
  • their false ceilings, and double walls, one may ferret forever, and
  • find nothing."
  • "Yes," replied the leader, "their abodes are full of these popish
  • abominations; but there is one way which is sure; and if the man
  • Charles be concealed in any house, I venture to say that I will find
  • him. Fire and smoke will bring him forth; and to every Malignant's
  • house within twenty miles will I apply the torch; but it must be at
  • night, for we are not sure of his being housed during the day. James
  • Southwold, thou knowest well the mansion of Arnwood?"
  • "I know well my way to all the offices below--the buttery, the cellar,
  • and the kitchen; but I can not say that I have ever been into the
  • apartments of the upper house."
  • "That it needeth not; if thou canst direct us to the lower entrance it
  • will be sufficient."
  • "That can I, Master Ingram," replied Southwold, "and to where the best
  • ale used to be found."
  • "Enough, Southwold, enough; our work must be done, and diligently. Now,
  • my men, tighten your girths; we will just ride to the dell: if it
  • conceals not whom we seek, it shall conceal us till night, and then the
  • country shall be lighted up with the flames of Arnwood, while we
  • surround the house and prevent escape. Levelers, to horse!"
  • The troopers sprung upon their saddles, and went off at a hard trot,
  • Southwold leading the way. Jacob remained among the fern until they
  • were out of sight, and then rose up. He looked for a short time in the
  • direction in which the troopers had gone, stooped down again to take up
  • his gun, and then said, "There's providence in this; yes, and there's
  • providence in my not having my dog with me, for he would not have
  • remained quiet for so long a time. Who would ever have thought that
  • James Southwold would have turned a traitor! more than traitor, for he
  • is now ready to bite the hand that has fed him, to burn the house that
  • has ever welcomed him. This is a bad world, and I thank Heaven that I
  • have lived in the woods. But there is no time to lose;" and the old
  • forester threw his gun over his shoulder, and hastened away in the
  • direction of his own cottage.
  • "And so the king has escaped," thought Jacob, as he went along, "and he
  • may be in the forest! Who knows but he may be at Arnwood, for he must
  • hardly know where to go for shelter? I must haste and see Miss Judith
  • immediately. 'Levelers, to horse!' the fellow said. What's a Leveler?"
  • thought Jacob.
  • As perhaps my readers may ask the same question, they must know that a
  • large proportion of the Parliamentary army had at this time assumed the
  • name of Levelers, in consequence of having taken up the opinion that
  • every man should be on an equality, and property should be equally
  • divided. The hatred of these people to any one above them in rank or
  • property, especially toward those of the king's party, which mostly
  • consisted of men of rank and property, was unbounded, and they were
  • merciless and cruel to the highest degree, throwing off much of that
  • fanatical bearing and language which had before distinguished the
  • Puritans. Cromwell had great difficulty in eventually putting them
  • down, which he did at last accomplish by hanging and slaughtering many.
  • Of this Jacob knew nothing; all he knew was, that Arnwood was to be
  • burned down that night, and that it would be necessary to remove the
  • family. As for obtaining assistance to oppose the troopers, that he
  • knew to be impossible. As he thought of what must take place, he
  • thanked God for having allowed him to gain the knowledge of what was to
  • happen, and hastened on his way. He had been about eight miles from
  • Arnwood when he had concealed himself in the fern. Jacob first went to
  • his cottage to deposit his gun, saddled his forest pony, and set off
  • for Arnwood. In less than two hours the old man was at the door of the
  • mansion; it was then about three o'clock in the afternoon, and being in
  • the month of November, there was not so much as two hours of daylight
  • remaining. "I shall have a difficult job with the stiff old lady,"
  • thought Jacob, as be rung the bell; "I don't believe that she would
  • rise out of her high chair for old Noll and his whole army at his back.
  • But we shall see."
  • CHAPTER II.
  • Before Jacob is admitted to the presence of Miss Judith Villiers, we
  • must give some account of the establishment at Arnwood. With the
  • exception of one male servant, who officiated in the house and stable
  • as his services might be required, every man of the household of
  • Colonel Beverley had followed the fortunes of their master, and as none
  • had returned, they, in all probability had shared his fate. Three
  • female servants, with the man above mentioned, composed the whole
  • household. Indeed, there was every reason for not increasing the
  • establishment, for the rents were either paid in part, or not paid at
  • all. It was generally supposed that the property, now that the
  • Parliament had gained the day, would be sequestrated, although such was
  • not yet the case; and the tenants were unwilling to pay, to those who
  • were not authorized to receive, the rents which they might be again
  • called upon to make good. Miss Judith Villiers, therefore, found it
  • difficult to maintain the present household; and although she did not
  • tell Jacob Armitage that such was the case, the fact was, that very
  • often the venison which he brought to the mansion was all the meat that
  • was in the larder. The three female servants held the offices of cook,
  • attendant upon Miss Villiers, and housemaid; the children being under
  • the care of no particular servant, and left much to themselves. There
  • had been a chaplain in the house, but he had quitted before the death
  • of Mrs. Beverley, and the vacancy had not been filled up; indeed, it
  • could not well be, for the one who left had not received his salary for
  • many months, and Miss Judith Villiers, expecting every day to be
  • summoned by her relations to bring the children and join them, sat in
  • her high chair waiting for the arrival of this summons, which, from the
  • distracted state of the times, had never come.
  • As we have before said, the orphans were four in number; the two eldest
  • were boys, and the youngest were girls. Edward, the eldest boy, was
  • between thirteen and fourteen years old; Humphrey, the second, was
  • twelve; Alice, eleven; and Edith, eight. As it is the history of these
  • young persons which we are about to narrate, we shall say little about
  • them at present, except that for many months they had been under little
  • or no restraint, and less attended to. Their companions were Benjamin,
  • the man who remained in the house, and old Jacob Armitage, who passed
  • all the time he could spare with them. Benjamin was rather weak in
  • intellect, and was a source of amusement rather than otherwise. As for
  • the female servants, one was wholly occupied with her attendance on
  • Miss Judith, who was very exacting, and had a high notion of her own
  • consequence. The other two had more than sufficient employment; as,
  • when there is no money to pay with, every thing must be done at home.
  • That, under such circumstances, the boys became boisterous and the
  • little girls became romps, is not to be wondered at: but their having
  • become so was the cause of Miss Judith seldom admitting them into her
  • room. It is true that they were sent for once a day, to ascertain if
  • they were in the house, or in existence, but soon dismissed and left to
  • their own resources. Such was the neglect to which these young orphans
  • was exposed. It must, however, be admitted, that this very neglect made
  • them independent and bold, full of health from constant activity, and
  • more fitted for the change which was so soon to take place.
  • "Benjamin," said Jacob, as the other came to the door, "I must speak
  • with the old lady."
  • "Have you brought any venison, Jacob?" said Benjamin, grinning, "else,
  • I reckon, you'll not be over welcome."
  • "No, I have not; but it is an important business, so send Agatha to her
  • directly."
  • "I will; and I'll not say any thing about the venison."
  • In a few minutes, Jacob was ushered up by Agatha into Miss Judith
  • Villiers's apartment. The old lady was about fifty years of age, very
  • prim and starched, sitting in a high-backed chair, with her feet upon a
  • stool, and her hands crossed before her, her black mittens reposing
  • upon her snow-white apron.
  • The old forester made his obeisance.
  • "You have important business with us, I am told," observed Miss Judith.
  • "Most important, madam," replied Jacob. "In the first place, it is
  • right that you should be informed that his majesty, King Charles, has
  • escaped from Hampton Court."
  • "His majesty escaped!" replied the lady.
  • "Yes; and is supposed to be secreted somewhere in this neighborhood.
  • His majesty is not in this house, madam, I presume?"
  • "Jacob, his majesty is not in this house: if he were, I would suffer my
  • tongue to be torn out sooner than I would confess it, even to you."
  • "But I have more for your private ear, madam."
  • "Agatha, retire; and Agatha, be mindful that you go down stairs, and do
  • not remain outside the door."
  • Agatha, with this injunction, bounced out of the room, slamming-to the
  • door so as to make Miss Judith start from her seat.
  • "Ill-mannered girl!" exclaimed Miss Judith. "Now, Jacob Armitage, you
  • may proceed."
  • Jacob then entered into the detail of what he had overheard that
  • morning, when he fell in with the troopers, concluding with the
  • information, that the mansion would be burned down that very night. He
  • then pointed out the necessity of immediately abandoning the house, as
  • it would be impossible to oppose the troopers.
  • "And where am I to go to, Jacob?" said Miss Judith, calmly.
  • "I hardly know, madam; there is my cottage; it is but a poor place, and
  • not fit for one like you."
  • "So I should presume, Jacob Armitage, neither shall I accept your
  • offer. It would ill befit the dignity of a Villiers to be frightened
  • out of her abode by a party of rude soldiers. Happen what will, I shall
  • not stir from this--no, not even from this chair. Neither do I consider
  • the danger so great as you suppose. Let Benjamin saddle, and be
  • prepared to ride over to Lymington immediately. I will give him a
  • letter to the magistrate there, who will send us protection."
  • "But, madam, the children can not remain here. I will not leave them
  • here. I promised the colonel--"
  • "Will the children be in more danger than I shall be, Jacob Armitage?"
  • replied the old lady, stiffly. "They dare not ill-treat me--they may
  • force the buttery and drink the ale--they may make merry with that and
  • the venison which you have brought with you, I presume, but they will
  • hardly venture to insult a lady of the House of Villiers."
  • "I fear they will venture any thing, madam. At all events, they will
  • frighten the children, and for one night they will be better in my
  • cottage."
  • "Well, then, be it so; take them to your cottage, and take Martha to
  • attend upon the Miss Beverleys. Go down now, and desire Agatha to come
  • to me, and Benjamin to saddle as fast as he can."
  • Jacob left the room, satisfied with the permission to remove the
  • children. He knew that it was useless to argue with Miss Judith, who
  • was immovable when once she had declared her intentions. He was
  • debating in his own mind whether he should acquaint the servants with
  • the threatened danger; but he had no occasion to do so, for Agatha had
  • remained at the door while Jacob was communicating the intelligence,
  • and as soon as he had arrived at that portion of it by which she
  • learned that the mansion was to be burned down that night, had run off
  • to the kitchen to communicate the intelligence to the other servants.
  • "I'll not stay to be burned to death," exclaimed the cook, as Jacob
  • came in. "Well, Mr. Armitage, this is pretty news you have brought.
  • What does my lady say!"
  • "She desires that Benjamin saddles immediately, to carry a letter to
  • Lymington; and you, Agatha, are to go up stairs to her."
  • "But what does she mean to do? Where are we to go?" exclaimed Agatha.
  • "Miss Judith intends to remain where she is."
  • "Then she will remain alone, for me," exclaimed the housemaid, who was
  • admired by Benjamin. "Its bad enough to have little victuals and no
  • wages, but as for being burned to death--Benjamin, put a pillion behind
  • your saddle, and I'll go to Lymington with you. I won't be long in
  • getting my bundle."
  • Benjamin, who was in the kitchen with the maids at the time that Jacob
  • entered, made a sign significant of consent, and went away to the
  • stable. Agatha went up to her mistress in a state of great
  • perturbation, and the cook also hurried away to her bedroom.
  • "They'll all leave her," thought Jacob; "well, my duty is plain; I'll
  • not leave the children in the house." Jacob then went in search of
  • them, and found them playing in the garden. He called the two boys to
  • him, and told them to follow him.
  • "Now, Mr. Edward," said he, "you must prove yourself your father's own
  • son. We must leave this house immediately; come up with me to your
  • rooms, and help me to pack up yours and your sisters' clothes, for we
  • must go to my cottage this night. There is no time to be lost."
  • "But why, Jacob; I must know why?"
  • "Because the Parliamentary troopers will burn it down this night."
  • "Burn it down! Why, the house is mine, is it not? Who dares to burn
  • down this house?"
  • "They will dare it, and will do it."
  • "But we will fight them, Jacob; we can bolt and bar; I can fire a gun,
  • and hit too, as you know; then there's Benjamin and you."
  • "And what can you and two men do against a troop of horse, my dear boy?
  • If we could defend the place against them, Jacob Armitage would be the
  • first; but it is impossible, my dear boy. Recollect your sisters. Would
  • you have them burned to death, or shot by these wretches? No, no, Mr.
  • Edward; you must do as I say, and lose no time. Let us pack up what
  • will be most useful, and load White Billy with the bundles; then you
  • must all come to the cottage with me, and we will make it out how we
  • can."
  • "That will be jolly!" said Humphrey; "come, Edward."
  • But Edward Beverley required more persuasion to abandon the house; at
  • last, old Jacob prevailed, and the clothes were put up in bundles as
  • fast as they could collect them.
  • "Your aunt said Martha was to go with your sisters, but I doubt if she
  • will," observed Jacob, "and I think we shall have no room for her, for
  • the cottage is small enough."
  • "Oh no, we don't want her," said Humphrey; "Alice always dresses Edith
  • and herself too, ever since mamma died."
  • "Now we will carry down the bundles, and you make them fast on the pony
  • while I go for your sisters."
  • "But where does aunt Judith go?" inquired Edward.
  • "She will not leave the house, Master Edward; she intends to stay and
  • speak to the troopers."
  • "And so an old woman like her remains to face the enemy, while I run
  • away from them!" replied Edward. "I will not go."
  • "Well, Master Edward," replied Jacob, "you must do as you please; but
  • it will be cruel to leave your sisters here; they and Humphrey must
  • come with me, and I can not manage to get them to the cottage without
  • you go with us; it is not far, and you can return in a very short time."
  • To this Edward consented. The pony was soon loaded, and the little
  • girls, who were still playing in the garden, were called in by
  • Humphrey. They were told that they were going to pass the night in the
  • cottage, and were delighted at the idea.
  • "Now, Master Edward," said Jacob, "will you take your sisters by the
  • hand and lead them to the cottage? Here is the key of the door; Master
  • Humphrey can lead the pony; and Master Edward," continued Jacob, taking
  • him aside, "I'll tell you one thing which I will not mention before
  • your brother and sisters: the troopers are all about the New Forest,
  • for King Charles has escaped, and they are seeking for him. You must
  • not, therefore, leave your brother and sisters till I return. Lock the
  • cottage-door as soon as it is dark. You know where to get a light, over
  • the cupboard; and my gun is loaded, and hangs above the mantlepiece.
  • You must do your best if they attempt to force an entrance; but above
  • all, promise me not to leave them till I return. I will remain here to
  • see what I can do with your aunt, and when I come back we can then
  • decide how to act."
  • This latter ruse of Jacob's succeeded. Edward promised that he would
  • not leave his sisters, and it wanted but a few minutes of twilight when
  • the little party quitted the mansion of Arnwood. As they went out of
  • the gates they were passed by Benjamin, who was trotting away with
  • Martha behind him on a pillion, holding a bundle as large as herself.
  • Not a word was exchanged, and Benjamin and Martha were soon out of
  • sight.
  • "Why, where can Martha be going?" said Alice. "Will she be back when we
  • come home to-morrow?"
  • Edward made no reply, but Humphrey said, "Well, she has taken plenty of
  • clothes in that huge bundle for one night, at least."
  • Jacob, as soon as he had seen the children on their way, returned to
  • the kitchen, where he found Agatha and the cook collecting their
  • property, evidently bent upon a hasty retreat.
  • "Have you seen Miss Judith, Agatha?"
  • "Yes; and she told me that she should remain, and that I should stand
  • behind her chair that she might receive the troopers with dignity; but
  • I don't admire the plan. They might leave her alone, but I am sure that
  • they will be rude to me."
  • "When did Benjamin say he would be back?"
  • "He don't intend coming back. He said he would not, at all events, till
  • to-morrow morning, and then he would ride out this way, to ascertain if
  • the report was false or true. But Martha has gone with him."
  • "I wish I could persuade the old lady to leave the house," said Jacob,
  • thoughtfully. "I fear they will not pay her the respect that she
  • calculates upon. Go up, Agatha, and say I wish to speak with her."
  • "No, not I; I must be off, for it is dark already."
  • "And where are you going, then?"
  • "To Gossip Allwood's. It's a good mile, and I have to carry my things."
  • "Well, Agatha, if you'll take me up to the old lady, I'll carry your
  • things for you."
  • Agatha consented, and as soon as she had taken up the lamp, for it was
  • now quite dark, Jacob was once more introduced.
  • "I wish, madam," said Jacob, "you would be persuaded to leave the house
  • for this night."
  • "Jacob Armitage, leave this house I will not, if it were filled with
  • troopers; I have said so."
  • "But, madam--"
  • "No more, sir; you are too forward," replied the old lady, haughtily.
  • "But, madam--"
  • "Leave my presence, Jacob Armitage, and never appear again. Quit the
  • room, and send Agatha here."
  • "She has left, madam, and so has the cook, and Martha went away behind
  • Benjamin; when I leave, you will be alone."
  • "They have dared to leave?"
  • "They dared not stay, madam."
  • "Leave me, Jacob Armitage, and shut the door when you go out." Jacob
  • still hesitated. "Obey me instantly," said the old lady; and the
  • forester, finding all remonstrance useless, went out, and obeyed her
  • last commands by shutting the door after him.
  • Jacob found Agatha and the other maid in the court-yard; he took up
  • their packages, and, as he promised, accompanied them to Gossip
  • Allwood, who kept a small ale-house about a mile distant.
  • "But, mercy on us! what will become of the children?" said Agatha, as
  • they walked along, her fears for herself having up to this time made
  • her utterly forgetful of them. "Poor things! and Martha has left them."
  • "Yes, indeed; what will become of the dear babes?" said the cook, half
  • crying.
  • Now Jacob, knowing that the children of such a Malignant as Colonel
  • Beverley would have sorry treatment if discovered, and knowing also
  • that women were not always to be trusted, determined not to tell them
  • how they were disposed of. He therefore replied,
  • "Who would hurt such young children as those? No, no, they are safe
  • enough; even the troopers would protect them."
  • "I should hope so," replied Agatha.
  • "You may be sure of that; no man would hurt babies," replied Jacob.
  • "The troopers will take them with them to Lymington, I suppose. I've no
  • fear for them; it's the proud old lady whom they will be uncivil to."
  • The conversation here ended, and in due time they arrived at the inn.
  • Jacob had just put the bundles down on the table, when the clattering
  • of horses' hoofs was heard. Shortly afterward, the troopers pulled
  • their horses up at the door, and dismounted. Jacob recognized the party
  • he had met in the forest, and among them Southwold. The troopers called
  • for ale, and remained some time in the house, talking and laughing with
  • the women, especially Agatha, who was a very good-looking girl. Jacob
  • would have retreated quietly, but he found a sentinel posted at the
  • door to prevent the egress of any person. He reseated himself, and
  • while he was listening to the conversation of the troopers he was
  • recognized by Southwold, who accosted him. Jacob did not pretend not to
  • know him, as it would have been useless; and Southwold put many
  • questions to him as to who were resident at Arnwood. Jacob replied that
  • the children were there, and a few servants, and he was about to
  • mention Miss Judith Villiers, when a thought struck him--he might save
  • the old lady.
  • "You are going to Arnwood, I know," said Jacob, "and I have heard who
  • you are in search of. Well, Southwold, I'll give you a hint. I may be
  • wrong; but if you should fall in with an old lady or something like one
  • when you go to Arnwood, mount her on your crupper and away with her to
  • Lymington as fast as you can ride. You understand me?" Southwold nodded
  • significantly, and squeezed Jacob's hand.
  • "One word, Jacob Armitage; if I succeed in the capture by your means,
  • it is but fair that you should have something for your hint. Where can
  • I find you the day after to-morrow?"
  • "I am leaving the country this night, and I must go. I am in trouble,
  • that's the fact; when all is blown over, I will find you out. Don't
  • speak to me any more just now." Southwold again squeezed Jacob's hand,
  • and left him. Shortly afterward the order was given to mount, and the
  • troopers set off.
  • Armitage followed slowly and unobserved. They arrive at the mansion and
  • surrounded it. Shortly afterward he perceived the glare of torches, and
  • in a quarter of an hour more thick smoke rose up in the dark but clear
  • sky; at last the flames burst forth from the lower windows of the
  • mansion, and soon afterward they lighted up the country round to some
  • distance.
  • "It is done," thought Jacob; and he turned to bend his hasty steps
  • toward his own cottage, when he heard the galloping of a horse and
  • violent screams; a minute afterward James Southwold passed him with the
  • old lady tied behind him, kicking and struggling as hard as she could.
  • Jacob smiled as he thought that he had by his little stratagem saved
  • the old woman's life, for that Southwold imagined that she was King
  • Charles dressed up as an old woman was evident; and he then returned as
  • fast as he could to the cottage.
  • In half an hour Jacob had passed through the thick woods which were
  • between the mansion and his own cottage, occasionally looking back, as
  • the flames of the mansion rose higher and higher, throwing their light
  • far and wide. He knocked at the cottage-door; Smoker, a large dog
  • cross-bred between the fox and blood-hound, growled till Jacob spoke to
  • him, and then Edward opened the door.
  • "My sisters are in bed and fast asleep, Jacob," said Edward, "and
  • Humphrey has been nodding this half hour; had he not better go to bed
  • before we go back?"
  • "Come out, Master Edward," replied Jacob, "and look." Edward beheld the
  • flames and fierce light between the trees and was silent.
  • "I told you that it would be so, and you would all have been burned in
  • your beds, for they did not enter the house to see who was in it, but
  • fired it as soon as they had surrounded it."
  • "And my aunt!" exclaimed Edward, clasping his hands.
  • "Is safe, Master Edward, and by this time at Lymington."
  • "We will go to her to-morrow."
  • "I fear not; you must not risk so much, Master Edward. These Levelers
  • spare nobody, and you had better let it be supposed that you are all
  • burned in the house."
  • "But my aunt knows the contrary, Jacob."
  • "Very true; I quite forgot that." And so Jacob had. He expected that
  • the old woman would have been burned, and then nobody would have known
  • of the existence of the children; he forgot, when he planned to save
  • her, that she knew where the children were.
  • "Well, Master Edward, I will go to Lymington to-morrow and see the old
  • lady; but you must remain here, and take charge of your sisters till I
  • come back, and then we will consider what is to be done. The flames are
  • not so bright as they were."
  • "No. It is my house that these Roundheads have burned down," said
  • Edward, shaking his fist.
  • "It was your house, Master Edward, and it was your property, but how
  • long it will be so remains to be seen. I fear that it will be
  • forfeited."
  • "Woe to the people who dare take possession of it!" cried Edward; "I
  • shall, if I live, be a man one of these days."
  • "Yes, Master Edward, and then you will reflect more than you do now,
  • and not be rash. Let us go into the cottage, for it's no use remaining
  • out in the cold; the frost is sharp to-night."
  • Edward slowly followed Jacob into the cottage. His little heart was
  • full. He was a proud boy and a good boy, but the destruction of the
  • mansion had raised up evil thoughts in his heart--hatred to the
  • Covenanters, who had killed his father and now burned the
  • property--revenge upon them (how he knew not); but his hand was ready
  • to strike, young as he was. He lay down on the bed, but he could not
  • sleep. He turned and turned again, and his brain was teeming with
  • thoughts and plans of vengeance. Had he said his prayers that night he
  • would have been obliged to repeat, "Forgive us as we forgive them who
  • trespass against us." At last, he fell fast asleep, but his dreams were
  • wild, and he often called out during the night and woke his brother and
  • sisters.
  • CHAPTER III.
  • The next morning, as soon as Jacob had given the children their
  • breakfast, he set off toward Arnwood. He knew that Benjamin had stated
  • his intention to return with the horse and see what had taken place,
  • and he knew him well enough to feel sure that he would do so. He
  • thought it better to see him if possible, and ascertain the fate of
  • Miss Judith. Jacob arrived at the still smoking ruins of the mansion,
  • and found several people there, mostly residents within a few miles,
  • some attracted by curiosity, others busy in collecting the heavy masses
  • of lead which had been melted from the roof, and appropriating them to
  • their own benefit; but much of it was still too hot to be touched, and
  • they were throwing snow on it to cool it, for it had snowed during the
  • night. At last, Jacob perceived Benjamin on horseback riding leisurely
  • toward him, and immediately went up to him.
  • "Well, Benjamin, this is a woeful sight. What is the news from
  • Lymington?"
  • "Lymington is full of troopers, and they are not over-civil," replied
  • Benjamin. "And the old lady--where is she?"
  • "Ah, that's a sad business," replied Benjamin, "and the poor children,
  • too. Poor Master Edward! he would have made a brave gentleman."
  • "But the old lady is safe," rejoined Jacob. "Did you see her?"
  • "Yes, I saw her; they thought she was King Charles--poor old soul."
  • "But they have found out their mistake by this time?"
  • "Yes, and James Southwold has found it out too," replied Benjamin; "to
  • think of the old lady breaking his neck!"
  • "Breaking his neck? You don't say so! How was it?"
  • "Why, it seems that Southwold thought that she was King Charles dressed
  • up as an old woman, so he seized her and strapped her fast behind him,
  • and galloped away with her to Lymington; but she struggled and kicked
  • so manfully, that he could not hold on, and off they went together, and
  • he broke his neck."
  • "Indeed! A judgment--a judgment upon a traitor," said Jacob.
  • "They were picked up, strapped together as they were, by the other
  • troopers, and carried to Lymington."
  • "Well, and where is the old lady, then? Did you see and speak to her?"
  • "I saw her, Jacob, but I did not speak to her. I forgot to say that,
  • when she broke Southwold's neck, she broke her own too."
  • "Then the old lady is dead?"
  • "Yes, that she is," replied Benjamin; "but who cares about her? it's
  • the poor children that I pity. Martha has been crying ever since."
  • "I don't wonder."
  • "I was at the Cavalier, and the troopers were there, and they were
  • boasting of what they had done, and called it a righteous work. I could
  • not stand that, and I asked one of them if it were a righteous work to
  • burn poor children in their beds? So he turned round, and struck his
  • sword upon the floor, and asked me whether I was one of them--'Who are
  • you, then?' and I--all my courage went away, and I answered, I was a
  • poor rat-catcher. 'A rat-catcher; are you? Well, then, Mr. Ratcatcher,
  • when you are killing rats, if you find a nest of young ones, don't you
  • kill them too? or do you leave them to grow, and become mischievous,
  • eh?' 'I kill the young ones, of course,' replied I. 'Well, so do we
  • Malignants whenever we find them.' I didn't say a word more, so I went
  • out of the house as fast as I could."
  • "Have you heard any thing about the king?" inquired Jacob.
  • "No, nothing; but the troopers are all out again, and, I hear, are gone
  • to the forest."
  • "Well, Benjamin, good-by, I shall be off from this part of the
  • country--it's no use my staying here. Where's Agatha and cook?"
  • "They came to Lymington early this morning."
  • "Wish them good-by for me, Benjamin."
  • "Where are you going, then?"
  • "I can't exactly say, but I think London way. I only staid here to
  • watch over the children; and now that they are gone, I shall leave
  • Arnwood forever."
  • Jacob, who was anxious, on account of the intelligence he had received
  • of the troopers being in the forest, to return to the cottage, shook
  • hands with Benjamin, and hastened away. "Well," thought Jacob, as he
  • wended his way, "I'm sorry for the poor old lady, but still, perhaps,
  • it's all for the best. Who knows what they might do with these
  • children! Destroy the nest as well as the rats, indeed! they must find
  • the nest first." And the old forester continued his journey in deep
  • thought.
  • We may here observe that, blood-thirsty as many of the Levelers were,
  • we do not think that Jacob Armitage had grounds for the fears which he
  • expressed and felt; that is to say, we believe that he might have made
  • known the existence of the children to the Villiers family, and that
  • they would never have been harmed by any body. That by the burning of
  • the mansion they might have perished in the flames, had they been in
  • bed, as they would have been at that hour, had he not obtained
  • intelligence of what was about to be done, is true; but that there was
  • any danger to them on account of their father having been such a stanch
  • supporter of the king's cause, is very unlikely, and not borne out by
  • the history of the times: but the old forester thought otherwise; he
  • had a hatred of the Puritans, and their deeds had been so exaggerated
  • by rumor, that he fully believed that the lives of the children were
  • not safe. Under this conviction, and feeling himself bound by his
  • promise to Colonel Beverley to protect them, Jacob resolved that they
  • should live with him in the forest, and be brought up as his own
  • grandchildren. He knew that there could be no better place for
  • concealment; for, except the keepers, few people knew where his cottage
  • was; and it was so out of the usual paths, and so imbosomed in lofty
  • trees, that there was little chance of its being seen, or being known
  • to exist. He resolved, therefore, that they should remain with him till
  • better times; and then he would make known their existence to the other
  • branches of the family, but not before. "I can hunt for them, and
  • provide for them," thought he, "and I have a little money, when it is
  • required; and I will teach them to be useful; they must learn to
  • provide for themselves. There's the garden, and the patch of land: in
  • two or three years, the boys will be able to do something. I can't
  • teach them much; but I can teach them to fear God. We must get on how
  • we can, and put our trust in Him who is a father to the fatherless."
  • With such thoughts running in his head, Jacob arrived at the cottage,
  • and found the children outside the door, watching for him. They all
  • hastened to him, and the dog rushed before them, to welcome his master.
  • "Down, Smoker, good dog! Well, Mr. Edward, I have been as quick as I
  • could. How have Mr. Humphrey and your sisters behaved? But we must not
  • remain outside to-day, for the troopers are scouring the forest, and
  • may see you. Let us come in directly, for it would not do that they
  • should come here."
  • "Will they burn the cottage down?" inquired Alice, as she took Jacob's
  • hand.
  • "Yes, my dear, I think they would, if they found that you and your
  • brothers were in it; but we must not let them see you."
  • They all entered the cottage, which consisted of one large room in
  • front, and two back rooms for bedrooms. There was also a third bedroom,
  • which was behind the other two, but which had not any furniture in it.
  • "Now, let's see what we can have for dinner--there's venison left, I
  • know," said Jacob; "come, we must all be useful. Who will be cook?"
  • "I will be cook," said Alice, "if you will show me how."
  • "So you shall, my dear," said Jacob, "and I will show you how. There's
  • some potatoes in the basket in the corner, and some onions hanging on
  • the string; we must have some water--who will fetch it?"
  • "I will," said Edward, who took a pail, and went out to the spring.
  • The potatoes were peeled and washed by the children--Jacob and Edward
  • cut the venison into pieces--the iron pot was cleaned; and then the
  • meat and potatoes put with water into the pot, and placed on the fire.
  • "Now I'll cut up the onions, for they will make your eyes water."
  • "I don't care," said Humphrey, "I'll cut and cry at the same time."
  • And Humphrey took up a knife, and cut away most manfully, although he
  • was obliged to wipe his eyes with his sleeve very often.
  • "You are a fine fellow, Humphrey," said Jacob. "Now we'll put the
  • onions in, and let it all boil up together. Now you see, you have
  • cooked your own dinner; ain't that pleasant?"
  • "Yes," cried they all; "and we will eat our own dinners as soon as it
  • is ready."
  • "Then, Humphrey, you must get some of the platters down which are on
  • the drawer; and, Alice, you will find some knives in the drawer. And
  • let me see, what can little Edith do? Oh, she can go to the cupboard
  • and find the salt-cellar. Edward, just look out, and if you see any
  • body coming or passing, let me know. We must put you on guard till the
  • troopers leave the forest."
  • The children set about their tasks, and Humphrey cried out, as he very
  • often did, "Now, this is jolly!"
  • While the dinner was cooking, Jacob amused the children by showing them
  • how to put things in order; the floor was swept, the hearth was made
  • tidy. He shewed Alice how to wash out a cloth, and Humphrey how to dust
  • the chairs. They all worked merrily, while little Edith stood and
  • clapped her hands.
  • But just before dinner was ready, Edward came in and said, "Here are
  • troopers galloping in the forest!" Jacob went out, and observed that
  • they were coming in a direction that would lead near to the cottage.
  • He walked in, and, after a moment's thought, he said, "My dear
  • children, those men may come and search the cottage; you must do as I
  • tell you, and mind that you are very quiet. Humphrey, you and your
  • sisters must go to bed, and pretend to be very ill. Edward, take off
  • your coat and put on this old hunting-frock of mine. You must be in the
  • bedroom attending your sick brother and sisters. Come, Edith, dear, you
  • must play at going to bed, and have your dinner afterward."
  • Jacob took the children into the bedroom, and, removing the upper
  • dress, which would have betrayed that they were not the children of
  • poor people, put them in bed, and covered them up to the chins with the
  • clothes. Edward had put on the old hunting-shirt, which came below his
  • knees, and stood with a mug of water in his hand by the bedside of the
  • two girls. Jacob went to the outer room, to remove the platters laid
  • out for dinner; and he had hardly done so when he heard the noise of
  • the troopers, and soon afterward a knock at the cottage-door.
  • "Come in," said Jacob.
  • "Who are you, my friend?" said the leader of the troop, entering the
  • door.
  • "A poor forester, sir," replied Jacob, "under great trouble."
  • "What trouble, my man?"
  • "I have the children all in bed with the small-pox."
  • "Nevertheless, we must search your cottage."
  • "You are welcome," replied Jacob; "only don't frighten the children, if
  • you can help it."
  • The man, who was now joined by others, commenced his search. Jacob
  • opened all the doors of the rooms, and they passed through. Little
  • Edith shrieked when she saw them; but Edward patted her, and told her
  • not to be frightened. The troopers, however, took no notice of the
  • children; they searched thoroughly, and then came back to the front
  • room.
  • "It's no use remaining here," said one of the troopers. "Shall we be
  • off! I'm tired and hungry with the ride."
  • "So am I, and there's something that smells well." said another.
  • "What's this, my good man?" continued he, taking off the lid of the pot.
  • "My dinner for a week," replied Jacob. "I have no one to cook for me
  • now, and can't light a fire every day."
  • "Well, you appear to live well, if you have such a mess as that every
  • day in the week. I should like to try a spoonful or two."
  • "And welcome, sir," replied Jacob; "I will cook some more for myself."
  • The troopers took him at his word; they sat down to the table, and very
  • soon the whole contents of the kettle had disappeared. Having satisfied
  • themselves, they got up, told him that his rations were so good that
  • they hoped to call again; and, laughing heartily, they mounted their
  • horses, and rode away.
  • "Well," said Jacob, "they are very welcome to the dinner; I little
  • thought to get off so cheap." As soon as they were out of sight, Jacob
  • called to Edward and the children to get up again, which they soon did.
  • Alice put on Edith's frock, Humphrey put on his jacket, and Edward
  • pulled off the hunting-shirt.
  • "They're gone now," said Jacob, coming in from the door.
  • "And our dinners are gone," said Humphrey, looking at the empty pot and
  • dirty platters.
  • "Yes; but we can cook another, and that will be more play you know,"
  • said Jacob. "Edward, go for the water; Humphrey, cut the onions; Alice,
  • wash the potatoes; and Edith, help everybody, while I cut up some more
  • meat."
  • "I hope it will be as good," observed Humphrey; "that other did smell
  • so nice!"
  • "Quite as good, if not better; for we shall improve by practice, and we
  • shall have a better appetite to eat it with," said Jacob.
  • "Nasty men eat our dinner," said Edith. "Shan't have any more. Eat this
  • ourselves."
  • And so they did as soon as it was cooked; but they were very hungry
  • before they sat down.
  • "This is jolly!" said Humphrey with his mouth full.
  • "Yes, Master Humphrey. I doubt if King Charles eats so good a dinner
  • this day. Mr. Edward, you are very grave and silent."
  • "Yes, I am, Jacob. Have I not cause? Oh, if I could but have mauled
  • those troopers!"
  • "But you could not; so you must make the best of it. They say that
  • every dog has his day, and who knows but King Charles may be on the
  • throne again!"
  • There were no more visits to the cottage that day, and they all went to
  • bed, and slept soundly.
  • The next morning, Jacob, who was most anxious to learn the news,
  • saddled the pony, having first given his injunctions to Edward how to
  • behave in case any troopers should come to the cottage. He told him to
  • pretend that the children were in bed with the small-pox, as they had
  • done the day before. Jacob then traveled to Gossip Allwood's, and he
  • there learned that King Charles had been taken prisoner, and was at the
  • Isle of Wight, and that the troopers were all going back to London as
  • fast as they came. Feeling that there was now no more danger to be
  • apprehended from them, Jacob set off as fast as he could for Lymington.
  • He went to one shop and purchased two peasant dresses which he thought
  • would fit the two boys, and at another he bought similar apparel for
  • the two girls. Then, with several other ready-made articles, and some
  • other things which were required for the household, he made a large
  • package, which he put upon the pony, and, taking the bridle, set off
  • home, and arrived in time to superintend the cooking of the dinner,
  • which was this day venison-steaks fried in a pan, and boiled potatoes.
  • When dinner was over, he opened his bundle, and told the little ones
  • that, now they were to live in a cottage, they ought to wear cottage
  • clothes, and that he had bought them some to put on, which they might
  • rove about the woods in, and not mind tearing them. Alice and Edith
  • went into the bedroom, and Alice dressed Edith and herself, and came
  • out quite pleased with their change of dress. Humphrey and Edward put
  • theirs on in the sitting-room, and they all fitted pretty well, and
  • certainly were very becoming to the children.
  • "Now, recollect, you are all my grandchildren," said Jacob; "for I
  • shall no longer call you Miss and Master--that we never do in a
  • cottage. You understand me, Edward, of course?" added Jacob.
  • Edward nodded his head; and Jacob telling the children that they might
  • now go out of the cottage and play, they all set off, quite delighted
  • with clothes which procured them their liberty.
  • We must now describe the cottage of Jacob Armitage, in which the
  • children have in future to dwell. As we said before, it contained a
  • large sitting-room, or kitchen, in which was a spacious hearth and
  • chimney, table, stools, cupboards, and dressers: the two bedrooms which
  • adjoined it were now appropriated, one for Jacob and the other for the
  • two boys; the third, or inner bedroom, was arranged for the two girls,
  • as being more retired and secure. But there were outhouses belonging to
  • it: a stall, in which White Billy, the pony, lived during the winter; a
  • shed and pigsty rudely constructed, with an inclosed yard attached to
  • them; and it had, moreover, a piece of ground of more than an acre,
  • well fenced in to keep out the deer and game, the largest portion of
  • which was cultivated as a garden and potato-ground, and the other,
  • which remained in grass, contained some fine old apple and pear-trees.
  • Such was the domicile; the pony, a few fowls, a sow and two young pigs,
  • and the dog Smoker, were the animals on the establishment. Here Jacob
  • Armitage had been born--for the cottage had been built by his
  • grandfather--but he had not always remained at the cottage. When young,
  • he felt an inclination to see more of the world, and had for several
  • years served in the army. His father and brother had lived in the
  • establishment at Arnwood, and he was constantly there as a boy The
  • chaplain of Arnwood had taken a fancy to him, and taught him to
  • read--writing he had not acquired. As soon as he grew up, he served, as
  • we have said, in the troop commanded by Colonel Beverley's father; and,
  • after his death, Colonel Beverley had procured him the situation of
  • forest ranger, which had been held by his father, who was then alive,
  • but too aged to do duty. Jacob Armitage married a good and devout young
  • woman, with whom he lived several years, when she died, without
  • bringing him any family; after which, his father being also dead, Jacob
  • Armitage had lived alone until the period at which we have commenced
  • this history.
  • CHAPTER IV.
  • The old forester lay awake the whole of this night, reflecting how he
  • should act relative to the children; he felt the great responsibility
  • that he had incurred, and was alarmed when he considered what might be
  • the consequences if his days were shortened. What would become of
  • them--living in so sequestered a spot that few knew even of its
  • existence--totally shut out from the world, and left to their own
  • resources? He had no fear, if his life was spared, that they would do
  • well; but if he should be called away before they had grown up and were
  • able to help themselves, they might perish. Edward was not fourteen
  • years old; it was true that he was an active, brave boy, and thoughtful
  • for his years; but he had not yet strength or skill sufficient for what
  • would be required. Humphrey, the second, also promised well; but still
  • they were all children. "I must bring them up to be useful--to depend
  • upon themselves; there is not a moment to be lost, and not a moment
  • shall be lost; I will do my best, and trust to God; I ask but two or
  • three years, and by that time I trust that they will be able to do
  • without me. They must commence to-morrow the life of foresters'
  • children."
  • Acting upon this resolution, Jacob, as soon as the children were
  • dressed, and in the sitting-room, opened his Bible, which he had put on
  • the table, and said:
  • "My dear children, you know that you must remain in this cottage, that
  • the wicked troopers may not find you out; they killed your father, and
  • if I had not taken you away, they would have burned you in your beds.
  • You must, therefore, live here as my children, and you must call
  • yourselves by the name of Armitage, and not that of Beverley; and you
  • must dress like children of the forest, as you do now, and you must do
  • as children of the forest do--that is, you must do every thing for
  • yourselves, for you can have no servants to wait upon you. We must all
  • work--but you will like to work if you all work together, for then the
  • work will be nothing but play. Now, Edward is the oldest, and he must
  • go out with me in the forest, and I must teach him to kill deer and
  • other game for our support; and when he knows how, then Humphrey shall
  • come out and learn how to shoot."
  • "Yes," said Humphrey, "I'll soon learn."
  • "But not yet, Humphrey, for you must do some work in the mean time; you
  • must look after the pony and the pigs, and you must learn to dig in the
  • garden with Edward and me when we do not go out to hunt; and sometimes
  • I shall go by myself, and leave Edward to work with you when there is
  • work to be done. Alice, dear, you must, with Humphrey, light the fire
  • and clean the house in the morning. Humphrey will go to the spring for
  • water, and do all the hard work; and you must learn to wash, my dear
  • Alice--I will show you how; and you must learn to get dinner ready with
  • Humphrey, who will assist you; and to make the beds. And little Edith
  • shall take care of the fowls, and feed them every morning, and look for
  • the eggs--will you, Edith?"
  • "Yes," replied Edith, "and feed all the little chickens when they are
  • hatched, as I did at Arnwood."
  • "Yes, dear, and you'll be very useful. Now you know that you can not do
  • all this at once. You will have to try and try again; but very soon you
  • will, and then it will be all play. I must teach you all, and every day
  • you will do it better, till you want no teaching at all. And now, my
  • dear children, as there is no chaplain here, we must read the Bible
  • every morning. Edward can read, I know; can you, Humphrey?"
  • "Yes, all except the big words."
  • "Well, you will learn them by-and-by. And Edward and I will teach Alice
  • and Edith to read in the evenings, when we have nothing to do. It will
  • be an amusement. Now tell me, do you all like what I have told you?"
  • "Yes," they all replied; and then Jacob Armitage read a chapter in the
  • Bible, after which they all knelt down and said the Lord's prayer. As
  • this was done every morning and every evening, I need not repeat it
  • again. Jacob then showed them again how to clean the house, and
  • Humphrey and Alice soon finished their work under his directions; and
  • then they all sat down to breakfast, which was a very plain one, being
  • generally cold meat, and cakes baked on the embers, at which Alice was
  • soon very expert; and little Edith was very useful in watching them for
  • her, while she busied herself about her other work. But the venison was
  • nearly all gone; and after breakfast Jacob and Edward, with the dog
  • Smoker, went out into the woods. Edward had no gun, as he only went out
  • to be taught how to approach the game, which required great caution;
  • indeed Jacob had no second gun to give him, if he had wished so to do.
  • "Now, Edward, we are going after a fine stag, if we can find him, which
  • I doubt not; but the difficulty is, to get within shot of him.
  • Recollect that you must always be hid, for his sight is very quick;
  • never be heard, for his ear is sharp; and never come down to him with
  • the wind, for his scent is very fine. Then you must hunt according to
  • the hour of the day. At this time he is feeding; two hours hence he
  • will be lying down in the high fern. The dog is no use unless the stag
  • is badly wounded, when the dog will take him. Smoker knows his duty
  • well, and will hide himself as close as we do. We are now going into
  • the thick wood ahead of us, as there are many little spots of cleared
  • ground in it where we may find the deer; but we must keep more to the
  • left, for the wind is to the eastward, and we must walk up against it.
  • And now that we are coming into the wood, recollect, not a word must be
  • said, and you must walk as quietly as possible, keeping behind me.
  • Smoker, to heel!" They proceeded through the wood for more than a mile,
  • when Jacob made a sign to Edward, and dropped down into the fern,
  • crawling along to an open spot, where, at some distance, were a stag
  • and three deer grazing. The deer grazed quietly, but the stag was ever
  • and anon raising up his head and snuffing the air as he looked round,
  • evidently acting as a sentinel for the females.
  • The stag was perhaps a long quarter of a mile from where they had
  • crouched down in the fern. Jacob remained immovable till the animal
  • began to feed again, and then he advanced, crawling through the fern,
  • followed by Edward and the dog, who dragged himself on his stomach
  • after Edward. This tedious approach was continued for some time, and
  • they had neared the stag to within half the original distance, when the
  • animal again lifted up his head and appeared uneasy. Jacob stopped and
  • remained without motion. After a time the stag walked away, followed by
  • the does, to the opposite side of the clear spot on which they had been
  • feeding, and, to Edward's annoyance, the animal was half a mile from
  • them. Jacob turned round and crawled into the wood, and when he knew
  • that they were concealed, he rose on his feet and said,
  • "You see, Edward, that it requires patience to stalk a deer. What a
  • princely fellow! but he has probably been alarmed this morning, and is
  • very uneasy. Now we must go through the woods till we come to the lee
  • of him on the other side of the dell. You see he has led the does close
  • to the thicket, and we shall have a better chance when we get there, if
  • we are only quiet and cautious."
  • "What startled him, do you think?" said Edward.
  • "I think, when you were crawling through the fern after me, you broke a
  • piece of rotten stick that was under you. Did you not?"
  • "Yes, but that made but little noise."
  • "Quite enough to startle a red deer, Edward, as you will find out
  • before you have been long a forester. These checks will happen, and
  • have happened to me a hundred times, and then all the work is to be
  • done over again. Now then to make the circuit--we had better not say a
  • word. If we get safe now to the other side, we are sure of him."
  • They proceeded at a quick walk through the forest, and in half an hour
  • had gained the side where the deer were feeding. When about three
  • hundred yards from the game, Jacob again sunk down on his hands and
  • knees, crawling from bush to bush, stopping whenever the stag raised
  • his head, and advancing again when it resumed feeding; at last they
  • came to the fern at the side of the wood, and crawled through it as
  • before, but still more cautiously as they approached the stag. In this
  • manner they arrived at last to within eighty yards of the animal, and
  • then Jacob advanced his gun ready to put it to his shoulder, and, as he
  • cocked the lock, raised himself to fire. The click occasioned by the
  • cocking of the lock roused up the stag instantly, and he turned his
  • head in the direction from whence the noise proceeded; as he did so
  • Jacob fired, aiming behind the animal's shoulder: the stag made a
  • bound, came down again, dropped on his knees, attempted to run, and
  • fell dead, while the does fled away with the rapidity of the wind.
  • Edward started up on his legs with a shout of exultation. Jacob
  • commenced reloading his gun, and stopped Edward as he was about to run
  • up to where the animal lay.
  • "Edward, you must learn your craft," said Jacob; "never do that again;
  • never shout in that way--on the contrary, you should have remained
  • still in the fern."
  • "Why so?--the stag is dead."
  • "Yes, my dear boy, that stag is dead; but how do you know but what
  • there may be another lying down in the fern close to us, or at some
  • distance from us, which you have alarmed by your shout? Suppose that we
  • both had guns, and that the report of mine had started another stag
  • lying in the fern within shot, you would have been able to shoot it; or
  • if a stag was lying at a distance, the report of the gun might have
  • started him so as to induce him to move his head without rising. I
  • should have seen his antlers move and have marked his lair, and we
  • should then have gone after him and stalked him too."
  • "I see," replied Edward, "I was wrong; but I shall know better another
  • time."
  • "That's why I tell you, my boy," replied Jacob. "Now let us go to our
  • quarry. Ay, Edward, this is a noble beast. I thought that he was a hart
  • royal, and so he is."
  • "What is a hart royal, Jacob?"
  • "Why, a stag is called a brocket until he is three years old, at four
  • years he is a staggart; at five years a warrantable stag; and after
  • five years he becomes a hart royal."
  • "And how do you know his age?"
  • "By his antlers: you see that this stag has nine antlers; now, a
  • brocket has but two antlers, a staggart three, and a warrantable stag
  • but four; at six years old, the antlers increase in number until they
  • sometimes have twenty or thirty. This is a fine beast, and the venison
  • is now getting very good. Now you must see me do the work of my craft."
  • Jacob then cut the throat of the animal, and afterward cut off its head
  • and took out its bowels.
  • "Are you tired, Edward?" said Jacob, as he wiped his hunting-knife on
  • the coat of the stag.
  • "No, not the least."
  • "Well, then, we are now, I should think, about four or five miles from
  • the cottage. Could you find your way home? but that is of no
  • consequence--Smoker will lead you home by the shortest path. I will
  • stay here, and you can saddle White Billy and come back with him, for
  • he must carry the venison back. It's more than we can manage--indeed,
  • as much as we can manage with White Billy to help us. There's more than
  • twenty stone of venison lying there, I can tell you."
  • Edward immediately assented, and Jacob, desiring Smoker to go home, set
  • about flaying and cutting up the animal for its more convenient
  • transportation. In an hour and a half, Edward, attended by Smoker,
  • returned with the pony, on whose back the chief portion of the venison
  • was packed. Jacob took a large piece on his own shoulders, and Edward
  • carried another, and Smoker, after regaling himself with a portion of
  • the inside of the animal, came after them. During the walk home, Jacob
  • initiated Edward into the terms of venery and many other points
  • connected with deer-stalking, with which we shall not trouble our
  • readers. As soon as they arrived at the cottage, the venison was hung
  • up, the pony put in the stable, and then they sat down to dinner with
  • an excellent appetite after their long morning's walk. Alice and
  • Humphrey had cooked the dinner themselves, and it was in the pot,
  • smoking hot, when they returned; and Jacob declared he never ate a
  • better mess in his life. Alice was not a little proud of this, and of
  • the praises she received from Edward and the old forester. The next
  • day, Jacob stated his intention of going to Lymington to dispose of a
  • large portion of the venison, and bring back a sack of oatmeal for
  • their cakes. Edward asked to accompany him, but Jacob replied,
  • "Edward, you must not think of showing yourself at Lymington, or any
  • where else, for a long while, until you are grown out of memory. It
  • would be folly, and you would risk your sisters' and brother's lives,
  • perhaps, as well as your own. Never mention it again: the time will
  • come when it will be necessary, perhaps; if so, it can not be helped.
  • At present you would be known immediately. No, Edward, I tell you what
  • I mean to do: I have a little money left, and I intend to buy you a
  • gun, that you may learn to stalk deer yourself without me; for,
  • recollect, if any accident should happen to me, who is there but you to
  • provide for your brother and sisters? At Lymington I am known to many;
  • but out of all who know me, there is not one who knows where my cottage
  • is; they know that I live in the New Forest, and that I supply them
  • venison, and purchase other articles in return. That is all that they
  • know: and I may therefore go without fear. I shall sell the venison
  • to-morrow, and bring you back a good gun; and Humphrey shall have the
  • carpenters' tools which he wishes for, for I think, by what he does
  • with his knife, that he has a turn that way, and it may be useful. I
  • must also get some other tools for Humphrey and you, as we shall then
  • be able to work all together; and some threads and needles for Alice,
  • for she can sew a little, and practice will make her more perfect."
  • Jacob went off to Lymington as he had proposed, and returned late at
  • night with White Billy well loaded; he had a sack of oatmeal, some
  • spades and hoes, a saw and chisels, and other tools; two scythes and
  • two three-pronged forks; and when Edward came to meet him, he put into
  • his hand a gun with a very long barrel.
  • "I believe, Edward, that you will find that a good one, for I know
  • where it came from. It belonged to one of the rangers, who was reckoned
  • the best shot in the Forest. I know the gun, for I have seen it on his
  • arm, and have taken it in my hand to examine it more than once. He was
  • killed at Naseby, with your father, poor fellow! and his widow sold the
  • gun to meet her wants."
  • "Well," replied Edward, "I thank you much, Jacob, and I will try if I
  • can not kill as much venison as will pay you back the purchase-money--I
  • will, I assure you."
  • "I shall be glad if you do, Edward; not because I want the money back,
  • but because then I shall be more easy in my mind about you all, if any
  • thing happens to me. As soon as you are perfect in your woodcraft, I
  • shall take Humphrey in hand, for there is nothing like having two
  • strings to your bow. To-morrow we will not go out: we have meat enough
  • for three weeks or more; and now the frost has set in, it will keep
  • well. You shall practice at a mark with your gun, that you may be
  • accustomed to it; for all guns, even the best, require a little
  • humoring."
  • Edward, who had often fired a gun before, proved the next morning that
  • he had a very good eye; and, after two or three hours' practice, hit
  • the mark at a hundred yards almost every time.
  • "I wish you would let me go out by myself," said Edward, overjoyed at
  • his success.
  • "You would bring home nothing, boy," replied Jacob. "No, no, you have a
  • great deal to learn yet; but I tell you what you shall do: any time
  • that we are not in great want of venison, you shall have the first
  • fire."
  • "Well, that will do," replied Edward.
  • The winter now set in with great severity, and they remained almost
  • altogether within doors. Jacob and the boys went out to get firewood,
  • and dragged it home through the snow.
  • "I wish, Jacob," said Humphrey, "that I was able to build a cart, for
  • it would be very useful, and White Billy would then have something to
  • do; but I can't make the wheels, and there is no harness."
  • "That's not a bad idea of yours, Humphrey," replied Jacob; "we will
  • think about it. If you can't build a cart, perhaps I can buy one. It
  • would be useful if it were only to take the dung out of the yard on the
  • potato-ground, for I have hitherto carried it out in baskets, and it's
  • hard work."
  • "Yes, and we might saw the wood into billets, and carry it home in the
  • cart, instead of dragging it in this way; my shoulder is quite sore
  • with the rope, it cuts me so."
  • "Well, when the weather breaks up, I will see what I can do, Humphrey;
  • but just now the roads are so blocked up, that I do not think we could
  • get a cart from Lymington to the cottage, although we can a horse,
  • perhaps."
  • But if they remained in-doors during the inclement weather, they were
  • not idle. Jacob took this opportunity to instruct the children in every
  • thing. Alice learned how to wash and how to cook. It is true, that
  • sometimes she scalded herself a little, sometimes burned her fingers;
  • and other accidents did occur, from the articles employed being too
  • heavy for them to lift by themselves; but practice and dexterity
  • compensated for want of strength, and fewer accidents happened every
  • day. Humphrey had his carpenters' tools; and although at first he had
  • many failures, and wasted nails and wood, by degrees he learned to use
  • his tools with more dexterity, and made several little useful articles.
  • Little Edith could now do something, for she made and baked all the
  • oatmeal cakes, which saved Alice a good deal of time and trouble in
  • watching them. It was astonishing how much the children could do, now
  • that there was no one to do it for them; and they had daily instruction
  • from Jacob. In the evening Alice sat down with her needle and thread to
  • mend the clothes; at first they were not very well done, but she
  • improved every day. Edith and Humphrey learned to read while Alice
  • worked, and then Alice learned; and thus passed the winter away so
  • rapidly, that, although they had been five months at the cottage, it
  • did not appear as if they had been there as many weeks. All were happy
  • and contented, with the exception, perhaps, of Edward, who had fits of
  • gloominess, and occasionally showed signs of impatience as to what was
  • passing in the world, of which he remained in ignorance.
  • That Edward Beverley had fits of gloominess and impatience is not
  • surprising. Edward had been brought up as the heir of Arnwood; and a
  • boy at a very early age imbibes notions of his position, if it promises
  • to be a high one. He was not two miles from that property which by
  • right was his own. His own mansion had been reduced to ashes--he
  • himself was hidden in the forest; and he could but not feel his
  • position. He sighed for the time when the king's cause should be again
  • triumphant, and his arrival at that age when he could in person support
  • and uphold the cause. He longed to be in command, as his father had
  • been--to lead his men on to victory--to recover his property, and to
  • revenge himself on those who had acted so cruelly toward him. This was
  • human nature; and much as Jacob Armitage would expostulate with him,
  • and try to divert his feelings into other channels--long as he would
  • preach to him about forgiveness of injuries, and patience until better
  • times should come, Edward could not help brooding over these thoughts,
  • and if ever there was a breast animated with intense hatred against the
  • Puritans, it was that of Edward Beverley. Although this was to be
  • lamented, it could not create surprise or wonder in the old forester.
  • All he could do was, as much as possible to reason with him, to soothe
  • his irritated feelings, and by constant employment try to make him
  • forget for a time the feelings of ill-will which he had conceived.
  • One thing was, however, sufficiently plain to Edward, which was, that
  • whatever might be his wrongs, he had not the power at present to
  • redress them; and this feeling, perhaps, more than any other, held him
  • in some sort of check; and as the time when he might have an
  • opportunity appeared far distant, even to his own sanguine imagination,
  • so by degrees did he contrive to dismiss from his thoughts what it was
  • no use to think about at present.
  • CHAPTER V.
  • As we have before said, time passed rapidly; with the exception of one
  • or two excursions after venison, they remained in the cottage, and
  • Jacob never went to Lymington. The frost had broken up, the snow had
  • long disappeared, and the trees began to bud. The sun became powerful,
  • and in the month of May the forest began again to look green.
  • "And now, Edward," said Jacob Armitage, one day at breakfast, "we will
  • try for venison again to sell at Lymington, for I must purchase
  • Humphrey's cart and harness; so let us get our guns, and go out this
  • fine morning. The stags are mostly by themselves at this season, for
  • the does are with their young calves. We must find the slot of a deer,
  • and track him to his lair, and you shall have the first shot if you
  • like; but, that, however, depends more upon the deer than upon me."
  • They had walked four or five miles when they came upon the slot or
  • track of a deer, but Jacob's practiced eye pointed out to Edward that
  • it was the slot of a young one, and not worth following. He explained
  • to Edward the difference in the hoof-marks and other signs by which
  • this knowledge was gained, and they proceeded onward until they found
  • another slot, which Jacob declared to be that of a warrantable
  • stag--that is, one old enough to kill and to be good venison.
  • "We must now track him to his lair, Edward."
  • This took them about a mile farther, when they arrived at a small
  • thicket of thorns about an acre in extent.
  • "Here he is, you see, Edward; let me now see if he is harbored."
  • They walked round the thicket, and could not find any slot or track by
  • which the stag had left the covert, and Jacob pronounced that the
  • animal must be hid in it.
  • "Now, Edward, do you stay here while I go back to the lee side of the
  • covert: I will enter it with Smoker, and the stag will, in all
  • probability, when he is roused, come out to breast the wind. You will
  • then have a good shot at him; recollect to fire so as to hit him behind
  • the shoulder: if he is moving quick, fire a little before the
  • shoulders; if slow, take aim accurately; but recollect, if I come upon
  • him in the covert, I shall kill him if I can, for we want the venison,
  • and then we will go after another to give you a chance."
  • Jacob then left Edward, and went down to the lee side of the covert,
  • where he entered it with Smoker. Edward was stationed behind a
  • thorn-bush, which grew a few yards clear of the covert, and he soon
  • heard the creaking of the branches.
  • A short time elapsed, and a fine stag came out at a trot; he turned his
  • head, and was just bounding away when Edward fired, and the animal
  • fell. Remembering the advice of Jacob, Edward remained where he was, in
  • silence reloading his piece, and was soon afterward joined by Jacob and
  • the dog.
  • "Well done, Edward!" said the forester, in a low voice; and, covering
  • his forehead to keep off the glare of the sun, he looked earnestly at a
  • high brake between some thorn-trees, about a half a mile to the
  • windward. "I think I see something there--look Edward, your eyes are
  • younger than mine. Is that the branch of a tree in the fern, or is it
  • not?"
  • "I see what you mean," replied Edward. "It is not, it moves."
  • "I thought so, but my eyes are not so good as they once were. It's
  • another stag, depend upon it; but how are we to get near him? We never
  • can get across this patch of clear grass without being seen."
  • "No, we can not get at him from this spot," replied Edward; "but if we
  • were to fall back to leeward, and gain the forest again, I think that
  • there are thorns sufficient from the forest to where he lies, to creep
  • from behind one to the other, so as to get a shot at him, don't you?"
  • "It will require care and patience to manage that; but I think it might
  • be done. I will try it; it is my turn now, you know. You had better
  • stay here with the dog, for only one can hide from thorn to thorn."
  • Jacob, ordering Smoker to remain, then set off. He had to make a
  • circuit of three miles to get to the spot where the thorns extended
  • from the forest, and Edward saw no more of him, although he strained
  • his eyes, until the stag sprung out, and the gun was discharged. Edward
  • perceived that the stag was not killed, but severely wounded, running
  • toward the covert near which he was hid. "Down, Smoker," said he, as he
  • cocked his gun. The stag came within shot, and was coming nearer, when,
  • seeing Edward, it turned. Edward fired, and then cheered on the dog,
  • who sprung after the wounded animal, giving tongue, as he followed him.
  • Edward, perceiving Jacob hastening toward him, waited for him.
  • "He's hard hit, Edward," cried Jacob, "and Smoker will have him; but we
  • must follow as fast as we can."
  • They both caught up their guns and ran as fast as they could, when, as
  • they entered the wood, they heard the dog at bay.
  • "We shan't have far to go, Edward; the animal is done up: Smoker has
  • him at bay."
  • They hastened on another quarter of a mile, when they found that the
  • stag had fallen on his knees, and had been seized by the throat by
  • Smoker.
  • "Mind, Edward, now, how I go up to him, for the wound from the horn of
  • the deer is very dangerous."
  • Jacob advanced from behind the stag, and cut his throat with his
  • hunting-knife. "He is a fine beast, and we have done well to-day, but
  • we shall have two journeys to make to get all this venison home. I
  • could not get a fair shot at him--and see, I have hit him here in the
  • flank."
  • "And here is my ball in his throat," said Edward.
  • "So it is. Then it was a good shot that you made, and you are master of
  • the hunt this day, Edward. Now, I'll remain, and you go home for White
  • Billy. Humphrey is right about the cart. If we had one, we could have
  • carried all home at once; but I must go now and cut the throat of the
  • other stag which you killed so cleverly. You will be a good hunter one
  • of these days, Edward. A little more knowledge, and a little more
  • practice, and I will leave it all to you, and hang up my gun over the
  • chimney."
  • It was late in the evening before they had made their two trips and
  • taken all the venison home, and very tired were they before it was
  • safely housed. Edward was delighted with his success, but not more so
  • than was old Jacob. The next morning, Jacob set off for Lymington, with
  • the pony loaded with venison, which he sold, as well as two more loads
  • which he promised to bring the next day, and the day after. He then
  • looked out for a cart, and was fortunate in finding a small one, just
  • fitted to the size of the pony, who was not tall but very strong, as
  • all the New Forest ponies are. He also procured harness, and then put
  • Billy in the cart to draw him home; but Billy did not admire being put
  • in a cart, and for some time was very restive, and backed and reared,
  • and went every way but the right; but by dint of coaxing and leading,
  • he at last submitted, and went straight on; but then the noise of the
  • cart behind him frightened him, and he ran away. At last, having tired
  • himself out, he thought that he might as well go quietly in harness, as
  • he could not get out of it; and he did so, and arrived safe at the
  • cottage. Humphrey was delighted at the sight of the cart, and said that
  • now they should get on well. The next day, Jacob contrived to put all
  • the remainder of the venison in the cart, and White Billy made no more
  • difficulty; he dragged it all to Lymington, and returned with the cart
  • as quietly and cleverly as if he had been in harness all his life.
  • "Well, Edward, the venison paid for the cart at all events," said
  • Jacob, "and now, I will tell you all the news I collected while I was
  • at Lymington. Captain Burly, who attempted to incite the people to
  • rescue the king, has been hung, drawn, and quartered, as a traitor."
  • "They are traitors who condemned him," replied Edward, in wrath.
  • "Yes, so they are; but there is better news, which is, that the Duke of
  • York has escaped to Holland."
  • "Yes, that is good news; and the king?"
  • "He is still a prisoner in Carisbrook Castle. There are many rumors and
  • talks, but no one knows what is true and what is false; but depend upon
  • it, this can not last long, and the king will have his rights yet."
  • Edward remained very grave for some time.
  • "I trust in Heaven we all shall have our rights yet, Jacob," said he at
  • last. "I wish I was a man!"
  • Here the conversation ended, and they went to bed.
  • This was now a busy time at the cottage. The manure had to be got out
  • of the stable and pigsties, and carried out to the potato-ground and
  • garden; the crops had to be put in, and the cart was now found
  • valuable. After the manure had been carried out and spread, Edward and
  • Humphrey helped Jacob to dig the ground, and then to put in the seed.
  • The cabbage-plants of last year were then put out, and the turnips and
  • carrots sown. Before the month was over, the garden and potato-field
  • were cropped, and Humphrey took upon himself to weed and keep it clean.
  • Little Edith had also employment now, for the hens began to lay eggs,
  • and as soon as she heard them cackling, she ran for the eggs and
  • brought them in; and before the month was over, Jacob had set four hens
  • upon eggs. Billy, the pony, was now turned out to graze in the forest;
  • he came home every night of his own accord.
  • "I'll tell you what we want," said Humphrey, who took the command
  • altogether over the farm: "we want a cow."
  • "Oh yes, a cow," cried Alice, "I have plenty of time to milk her."
  • "Whose cows are those which I see in the forest sometimes?" said
  • Humphrey to Jacob.
  • "If they belong to any body, they belong to the king," replied Jacob;
  • "but they are cattle which have strayed and found their way to the
  • forest, and have remained here ever since. They are rather wild and
  • savage, and you must be careful how you go too near them, as the bulls
  • will run at you. They increase very fast: there were but six a few
  • years ago, and now there are at least fifty in the herd."
  • "Well, I'll try and get one, if I can," said Humphrey.
  • "You will be puzzled to do that, boy," replied Jacob, "and as I said
  • before, beware of the bulls."
  • "I don't want a bull," replied Humphrey, "but a cow would give us milk,
  • and then we should have more manure for the garden. My garden will then
  • grow more potatoes."
  • "Well, Humphrey, if you can catch a cow, no one will interfere; but I
  • think you will not find it very easy, and you may find it very
  • dangerous."
  • "I'll look out for one," replied Humphrey, "any how. Alice, if we only
  • had a cow, wouldn't that be jolly?"
  • The crops were now all up, and as the days began to be long, the work
  • became comparatively light and easy. Humphrey was busy making a little
  • wheelbarrow for Edith, that she might barrow away the weeds as he hoed
  • them up; and at last this great performance was completed, much to the
  • admiration of all, and much to his own satisfaction. Indeed, when it is
  • recollected that Humphrey had only the hand-saw and ax, and that he had
  • to cut down the tree; and then to saw it into plank, it must be
  • acknowledged that it required great patience and perseverance even to
  • make a wheelbarrow; but Humphrey was not only persevering, but was full
  • of invention. He had built up a hen-house with fir-poles, and made the
  • nests for the hens to lay and hatch in, and they now had between forty
  • and fifty chickens running about. He had also divided the pigsty, so
  • that the sow might be kept apart from the other pigs; and they expected
  • very soon to have a litter of young pigs. He had transplanted the wild
  • strawberries from the forest, and had, by manure, made them large and
  • good; and he had also a fine crop of onions in the garden, from seed
  • which Jacob had bought at Lymington; now Humphrey was very busy cutting
  • down some poles in the forest to make a cow-house, for he declared that
  • he would have a cow somehow or another. June arrived, and it was time
  • to mow down grass to make into hay for the winter, and Jacob had two
  • scythes. He showed the boys how to use them, and they soon became
  • expert; and as there was plenty of long grass at this time of the year,
  • and they could mow when they pleased, they soon had White Billy in full
  • employment carrying the hay home. The little girls helped to make it,
  • for Humphrey had made them two rakes. Jacob thought that there was hay
  • enough made, but Humphrey said that there was enough for the pony, but
  • not enough for the cow.
  • "But where is the cow to come from, Humphrey?"
  • "Where the venison comes from," replied he: "out of the forest."
  • So Humphrey continued to mow and make hay, while Edward and Jacob went
  • out for venison. After all the hay was made and stacked, Humphrey found
  • out a method of thatching with fern, which Jacob had never thought of;
  • and when that was done, they commenced cutting down fern for fodder.
  • Here again Humphrey would have twice as much as Jacob had ever cut
  • before, because he wanted litter for the cow. At last it became quite a
  • joke between him and Edward, who, when he brought home more venison
  • than would keep in the hot weather, told Humphrey that the remainder
  • was for the cow. Still Humphrey would not give up the point, and every
  • morning and evening he would be certain to be absent an hour or two,
  • and it was found out he was watching the herd of wild cattle who were
  • feeding: sometimes they were very near, at others a long way off. He
  • used to get up into the trees, and examine them as they passed under
  • him without perceiving him. One night Humphrey returned very late, and
  • the next morning he was off before daylight. Breakfast was over, and
  • Humphrey did not make his appearance, and they could not tell what was
  • the matter. Jacob felt uneasy, but Edward laughed, and said:
  • "Oh, depend upon it, he'll come back and bring the cow with him."
  • Hardly had Edward said these words when in came Humphrey, red with
  • perspiration.
  • "Now then, Jacob and Edward, come with me; we must put Billy in the
  • cart, and take Smoker and a rope with us. Take your guns too, for fear
  • of accident."
  • "Why, what's the matter?"
  • "I'll tell you as we go along; but I must put Billy in the cart, for
  • there is no time to be lost."
  • Humphrey disappeared, and Jacob said to Edward--
  • "What can it be?"
  • "It can be nothing but the cow he is so mad about," replied Edward.
  • "However, when he comes with the pony, we shall know; let us take our
  • guns and the dog Smoker as he wishes."
  • Humphrey now drove up the pony and cart, and they set off.
  • "Well, I suppose you'll tell us now what we are going for?" said Edward.
  • "Yes, I will. You know I've been watching the cattle for a long while,
  • because I wanted a cow. I have been in a tree when they have passed
  • under me several times, and I observed that one or two of the heifers
  • were very near calving. Yesterday evening I thought one could not help
  • calving very soon indeed, and as I was watching, I saw that she was
  • uneasy, and that she at last left the herd and went into a little copse
  • of wood. I remained three hours to see if she came out again, and she
  • did not. It was dark when I came home, as you know. This morning I
  • went before daylight and found the herd. She is very remarkable, being
  • black and white spotted; and, after close examination, I found that she
  • was not with the herd; so I am sure that she went into the copse to
  • calve, and that she has calved before this."
  • "Well, that may be," replied Jacob; "but now I do not understand what
  • we are to do."
  • "Nor I," replied Edward.
  • "Well, then, I'll tell you what I hope to do. I have got the pony and
  • cart to take the calf home with us, if we can get it--which I think we
  • can. I have got Smoker to worry the heifer and keep her employed, while
  • we put the calf in the cart; a rope that we may tie the cow if we can;
  • and you with your guns must keep off the herd if they come to her
  • assistance. Now do you understand my plan?"
  • "Yes, and I think it very likely to succeed, Humphrey," replied Jacob,
  • "and I give you credit for the scheme. We will help you all we can.
  • Where is the copse?"
  • "Not half a mile farther," replied Humphrey. "We shall soon be there."
  • On their arrival, they found that the herd were feeding at a
  • considerable distance from the copse, which was, perhaps, as well.
  • "Now," said Jacob, "I and Edward will enter into the copse with Smoker,
  • and you follow us, Humphrey. I will make Smoker seize the heifer, if
  • necessary; at all events he will keep her at bay--that is, if she is
  • here. First, let us walk round the copse and find her _slot_, as we
  • call the track of a deer. See, here is her footing. Now let us go in."
  • They advanced cautiously into the thicket, following the track of the
  • heifer, and at last came upon her. Apparently she had not calved more
  • than an hour, and was licking the calf, which was not yet on its legs.
  • As soon as the animal perceived Jacob and Edward, she shook her head,
  • and was about to run at them; but Jacob told Smoker to seize her, and
  • the dog flew at her immediately. The attack of the dog drove back the
  • heifer quite into the thicket, and as the dog bounded round her,
  • springing this way and that way to escape her horns, the heifer was
  • soon separated from the calf.
  • "Now then, Edward and Humphrey," said Jacob, advancing between the
  • heifer and the calf, "lift up the calf between you and put it in the
  • cart. Leave Smoker and me to manage the mother."
  • The boys put their arms under the stomach of the calf, and carried it
  • away. The heifer was at first too busy defending herself against the
  • dog to perceive that the calf was gone; when she did, Jacob called
  • Smoker to him, so as to bring him between the heifer and where the boys
  • were going out of the thicket. At last the heifer gave a loud bellow,
  • and rushed out of the thicket in pursuit of her calf, checked by
  • Smoker, who held on to her ear, and sometimes stopped her from
  • advancing.
  • "Hold her, Smoker," said Jacob, who now went back to help the boys.
  • "Hold her, boy. Is the calf in the cart?"
  • "Yes, and tied fast," replied Edward, "and we are in the cart, too."
  • "That's right," replied Jacob. "Now I'll get in too, and let us drive
  • off. She'll follow us, depend upon it. Here, Smoker! Smoker! let her
  • alone."
  • Smoker, at this command, came bounding out of the copse, followed by
  • the heifer, lowing most anxiously. Her lowing was responded to by the
  • calf in the cart, and she ran wildly up to it.
  • "Drive off, Humphrey," said Jacob; "I think I heard the lowing of the
  • heifer answered by some of the herd, and the sooner we are off the
  • better."
  • Humphrey, who had the reins, drove off; the heifer followed, at one
  • time running at the dog, at another putting her head almost into the
  • hind part of the cart; but the lowing of the heifer was now answered by
  • deeper tones, and Jacob said,
  • "Edward, get your gun ready, for I think the herd is following. Do not
  • fire, however, until I tell you. We must be governed by circumstances.
  • It won't do to lose the pony, or to run any serious risk, for the sake
  • of the heifer and calf. Drive fast, Humphrey."
  • A few minutes afterward they perceived, at about a quarter of a mile
  • behind them, not the whole herd, but a single bull, who was coming up
  • at a fast trot, with his tail in the air, and tossing his head, lowing
  • deeply in answer to the heifer.
  • "There's only one, after all," said Jacob; "I suppose the heifer is his
  • favorite. Well, we can manage him. Smoker, come in. Come in, sir,
  • directly," cried Jacob, perceiving that the dog was about to attack the
  • bull.
  • Smoker obeyed, and the bull advanced till he was within a hundred yards.
  • "Now, Edward, do you fire first--aim for his shoulder. Humphrey, pull
  • up."
  • Humphrey stopped the pony and the bull continued to advance, but seemed
  • puzzled who to attack, unless it was the dog. As soon as the bull was
  • within sixty yards, Edward fired, and the animal fell down on its
  • knees, tearing the ground with its horns.
  • "That will do," said Jacob; "drive on again, Humphrey; we will have a
  • look at that fellow by-and-by. At present we had better get home, as
  • others may come. He's up again, but he is at a stand-still. I have an
  • idea that he is hit hard."
  • The cart drove on, followed by the heifer, but no more of the wild herd
  • made their appearance, and they very soon gained the cottage.
  • "Now, then, what shall we do?" said Jacob. "Come, Humphrey, you have
  • had all the ordering of this, and have done it well."
  • "Well, Jacob, we must now drive the cart into the yard, and shut the
  • gate upon the cow, till I am ready."
  • "That's easy done, by setting Smoker at her," replied Jacob; "but,
  • mercy on us, there's Alice and Edith running out!--the heifer may kill
  • them. Go back, Alice, run quite into the cottage, and shut the door
  • till we come."
  • Alice and Edith hearing this, and Edward also crying out to them, made
  • a hasty retreat to the cottage. Humphrey then backed the cart against
  • the paling of the yard, so as to enable Edward to get on the other side
  • of it, ready to open the gate. Smoker was set at the heifer, and, as
  • before, soon engaged her attention; so that the gate was opened and the
  • cart drove in, and the gate closed again, before the heifer could
  • follow.
  • "Well, Humphrey, what next?"
  • "Why, now lift the calf out, and put it into the cow-house. I will go
  • into the cow-house with a rope and a slip-knot at the end of it, get
  • upon the beam above, and drop it over her horns as she's busy with the
  • calf, which she will be as soon as you let her in. I shall pass the end
  • of the rope outside for you to haul up when I am ready, and then we
  • shall have her fast, till we can secure her properly. When I call out
  • Ready, do you open the gate and let her in. You can do that and jump
  • into the cart afterward, for fear she may run at you; but I don't think
  • that she will, for it's the calf she wants, and not either of you."
  • As soon as Humphrey was ready with the rope, he gave the word, and the
  • gate was opened; the cow ran in immediately, and, hearing her calf
  • bleat, went into the cow-house, the door of which was shut upon her. A
  • minute afterward Humphrey cried out to them to haul upon the rope,
  • which they did.
  • "That will do," said Humphrey from the inside; "now make the rope fast,
  • and then you may come in."
  • They went in and found the heifer drawn close to the side of the
  • cow-house by the rope which was round her horns, and unable to move her
  • head.
  • "Well, Humphrey, that's very clever; but now what is to be done?"
  • "First, I'll saw off the tips of her horns, and then if she does run at
  • us, she won't hurt us much. Wait till I go for the saw."
  • As soon as the ends of her horns were sawed off, Humphrey took another
  • piece of rope, which he fastened securely round her horns, and then
  • made the other end fast to the side of the building, so that the animal
  • could move about a little and eat out of the crib.
  • "There," said Humphrey, "now time and patience must do the rest. We
  • must coax her and handle her, and we soon shall tame her. At present
  • let us leave her with the calf. She has a yard of rope, and that is
  • enough for her to lick her calf, which is all that she requires at
  • present. To-morrow we will cut some grass for her."
  • They then went out, shutting the cow-house door.
  • "Well, Humphrey, you've beat us after all, and have the laugh on your
  • side now," said Jacob. "'Where there's a will, there's a way,' that's
  • certain; and I assure you, that when you were making so much hay, and
  • gathering so much litter, and building a cow-house, I had no more idea
  • that we should have a cow than that we should have an elephant; and I
  • will say that you deserve great credit for your way of obtaining it."
  • "That he certainly does," replied Edward. "You have more genius than I
  • have, brother. But dinner must be ready, if Alice has done her duty.
  • What think you Jacob, shall we after dinner go and look after that
  • bull?"
  • "Yes, by all means. He will not be bad eating, and I can sell all I can
  • carry in the cart at Lymington. Besides, the skin is worth money."
  • CHAPTER VI.
  • Alice and Edith were very anxious to see the cow, and especially to see
  • the calf; but Humphrey told them that they must not go near till he
  • went with them, and then they should see it. After dinner was over,
  • Jacob and Edward took their guns, and Humphrey put Billy in the cart
  • and followed them. They found the bull where they left him, standing
  • quite still; he tossed his head when they approached him, which they
  • did carefully, but he did not attempt to run at them.
  • "It's my idea that he has nearly bled to death," said Jacob; "but
  • there's nothing like making sure. Edward, put a bullet just three
  • inches behind his shoulder, and that will make all safe."
  • Edward did so, and the animal fell dead. They went up to the carcass,
  • which they estimated to weigh at least fifty stone.
  • "It is a noble beast," said Edward; "I wonder we never thought of
  • killing one before?"
  • "They aren't game, Edward," replied Jacob.
  • "No, they are not now, Jacob," said Humphrey; "as you and Edward claim
  • all the game, I shall claim the cattle as my portion of the forest.
  • Recollect, there are more, and I mean to have more of them yet."
  • "Well, Humphrey, I give you up all my rights, if I have any,"
  • "And I, all mine," added Edward.
  • "Be it so. Some day you'll see what I shall do," replied Humphrey.
  • "Recollect, I am to sell the cattle for my own self-advantage until I
  • buy a gun, and one or two things which I want."
  • "I agree to that too, Humphrey," replied Jacob; "and now to skin the
  • beast."
  • The skinning and quartering took up the whole afternoon, and Billy was
  • heavy laden when he drew his cart home. The next day Jacob went to
  • Lymington to sell the bull and the skin, and returned home well
  • satisfied with the profit he had made. He had procured, as Humphrey
  • requested, some milk-pans, a small churn, and milk-pail out of the
  • proceeds, and had still money left. Humphrey told them that he had not
  • been to see the heifer yet, as he thought it better not.
  • "She will be tame to-morrow morning, depend upon it," said he.
  • "But if you give her nothing to eat, will not the calf die?"
  • "Oh no, I should think not. I shall not starve her, but I will make her
  • thankful for her food before she gets it. I shall cut her some grass
  • to-morrow morning."
  • We may as well here say, that the next morning Humphrey went in to the
  • heifer. At first she tossed about, and was very unruly. He gave her
  • some grass, and patted her and coaxed her for a long while, till at
  • last she allowed him to touch her gently. Every day for a fortnight he
  • brought her food, and she became quieter every day, till at last if he
  • went up to her, she never pushed with her horns. The calf became quite
  • tame, and as the heifer perceived that the calf was quiet, she became
  • more quiet herself. After the fortnight, Humphrey would not allow the
  • heifer to receive any thing except from the hand of Alice, that the
  • animal might know her well; and when the calf was a month old, Humphrey
  • made the first attempt to milk her. This was resisted at first by
  • kicking, but in the course of ten days she gave down her milk. Humphrey
  • then let her loose for a few days to run about the yard, still keeping
  • the calf in the cow-house, and putting the heifer in to her at night,
  • milking her before the calf was allowed to suck. After this he
  • adventured upon the last experiment, which was to turn her out of the
  • yard to graze in the forest. She went away to some distance, and he was
  • fearful that she would join the herd, but in the evening she came back
  • again to her calf. After this he was satisfied, and turned her out
  • every day, and they had no further trouble with her. He would not,
  • however, wean the calf till the winter time, when she was shut up in
  • the yard and fed on hay. He then weaned the calf, which was a cow calf,
  • and they had no more trouble with the mother. Alice soon learned to
  • milk her, and she became very tractable and good-tempered. Such was the
  • commencement of the dairy at the cottage.
  • "Jacob," said Humphrey, "when do you go to Lymington again?"
  • "Why, I do not know. The end of August, as it is now, and the month of
  • September, is not good for venison; and, therefore, I do not see what I
  • shall have to go for."
  • "Well, I wish when you do go, you would get something for Alice and
  • something for me."
  • "And what is it that Alice wants?"
  • "She wants a kitten."
  • "Well, I think I may find that. And what do you want, Humphrey?"
  • "I want a dog. Smoker is yours altogether; I want a dog for myself, to
  • bring up after my own fashion."
  • "Well, I ought to look out for another dog: although Smoker is not old,
  • yet one ought to have two dogs to one's gun in case of accident."
  • "I think so too," replied Edward; "see if you can get two puppies, one
  • for Humphrey and one for myself."
  • "Well, I must not go to Lymington for them. I must cross the forest, to
  • see some friends of mine whom I have not seen for a long while, and I
  • may get some of the right sort of puppies there, just like Smoker. I'll
  • do that at once, as I may have to wait for them, even if I do have the
  • promise."
  • "May I go with you, Jacob?" said Edward.
  • "Why, I would rather not; they may ask questions."
  • "And so would I rather he would not, for he will shirk his work here."
  • "Why, what is there to do, Humphrey?"
  • "Plenty to do, and hard work, Edward; the acorns are fit for beating
  • down, and we want a great many bushels for the pigs. We have to fatten
  • three, and to feed the rest during the winter. I can not get on well
  • with only Alice and Edith; so if you are not very lazy, you will stay
  • with us and help us."
  • "Humphrey, you think of nothing but your pigs and farmyard."
  • "And you are too great a hunter to think of any thing but a stag; but a
  • bird in the hand is worth two in the bush, in my opinion; and I'll make
  • more by my farmyard than you ever will by the forest."
  • "Humphrey has nothing to do with the poultry and eggs, has he, Edward?
  • they belong to Edith and me, and Jacob shall take them to Lymington and
  • sell them for us, and get us some new clothes for Sunday, for these
  • begin to look rather worn--and no wonder."
  • "No, dearest, the poultry are yours, and I will sell them for you as
  • soon as you please, and buy what you wish with the money," replied
  • Jacob. "Let Humphrey make all the money he can with his pigs."
  • "Yes; and the butter belongs to me, if I make it," said Alice.
  • "No no," replied Humphrey; "that's not fair; I find cows, and get
  • nothing for them. We must go halves Alice."
  • "Well, I've no objection to that," said Alice "because you find the
  • cows and feed them. I made a pound of butter yesterday, just to try
  • what I could do; but it's not firm, Jacob. How is that?"
  • "I have seen the women make butter, and know how, Alice; so next time I
  • will be with you. I suppose you did not wash your butter-milk well out,
  • nor put any salt in it?"
  • "I did not put any salt in it."
  • "But you must, or the butter will not keep."
  • It was arranged that Edward should stay at home to assist in collecting
  • the acorns for the pigs, and that Jacob should cross the forest alone
  • to see after the puppies, and he set off the next morning. He was away
  • two days, and then returned; said that he had a promise of two puppies,
  • and that he had chosen them; they were of the same breed as Smoker, but
  • they were only a fortnight old, and could not be taken from the mother
  • yet awhile, so that he had arranged to call again when they were three
  • or four months old, and able to follow him across the forest. Jacob
  • also said that he was very near being hurt by a stag that had made at
  • him--for at that season of the year the stags were very dangerous and
  • fierce--but that he had fired, and struck off one of the animal's
  • horns, which made it turn.
  • "You must be careful, Edward, how you go about the forest now."
  • "I have no wish to go," replied Edward; "as we can not hunt, it is no
  • use; but in November we shall begin again."
  • "Yes," replied Jacob, "that will be soon enough. To-morrow I will help
  • you with the acorns, and the day afterward, if I am spared, I will take
  • Alice's poultry to Lymington for her."
  • "Yes, and when you come back you will help me to churn for then I shall
  • have a good deal of cream."
  • "And don't forget to buy the kitten, Jacob," said Edith.
  • "What's the good of a kitten?" said Humphrey, who was very busy making
  • a bird-cage for Edith, having just finished one for Alice; "she will
  • only steal your cream and eat up your birds."
  • "No, she won't; for we'll shut the door fast where the milk and cream
  • are, and we'll hang the cages so high that Miss Puss won't be able to
  • get at them."
  • "Well, then, a kitten will be useful," said Edward, "for she will teach
  • you to be careful."
  • "My coat is a little the worse for wear, and so is yours, Edward. We
  • must try if we can not, like Alice, find means to pay for another."
  • "Humphrey," said Jacob, "I'll buy all you want, and trust to you for
  • paying me again as soon as you can."
  • "That's just what I want," replied Humphrey. "Then you must buy me a
  • gun and a new suit of clothes first; when I've paid for them, I shall
  • want some more tools, and some nails and screws, and two or three other
  • things; but I will say nothing about them just now. Get me my gun, and
  • I'll try what the forest will do for me--especially after I have my
  • dog."
  • "Well, we shall see; perhaps you'll like to come out with me sometimes
  • and learn woodcraft, for Edward knows as much as I do now, and can go
  • out by himself."
  • "Of course I will, Jacob: I want to learn every thing."
  • "Well, there's a little money left in the bag yet, and I will go to
  • Lymington to-morrow. Now I think it is time we were in bed; and if you
  • are all as tired as I am, you will sleep soundly."
  • Jacob put into the cart the next day about forty of the chickens which
  • Alice had reared; the others were kept to increase the number in the
  • poultry-yard. They had cost little or nothing bringing up; for when
  • quite young, they only had a little oatmeal cake, and afterward, with
  • the potatoes which were left, they found themselves, as fowls can
  • always do when they have a great range of ground to go over.
  • Jacob came back at sunset, with all the articles. He brought a new suit
  • for Alice and Edith, with some needles and thread, and worsted, and
  • gave her some money which was left from the sale of the chickens, after
  • he had made the purchases. He also bought a new suit for Edward and
  • Humphrey, and a gun, which was much approved of by Humphrey, as it had
  • a larger bore and carried a heavier bullet than either Jacob's or
  • Edward's; and there was a white kitten for Alice and Edith. There was
  • no news, only that the Levelers had opposed Cromwell, and he had put
  • them down with the other troops, and Jacob said that it appeared that
  • they were all squabbling and fighting with each other.
  • Time passed; the month of November came on without any thing to disturb
  • the daily employments of the family in the forest: when one evening,
  • Jacob, who had returned from hunting with Edward (the first time they
  • had been out since the season commenced) told Alice that she must do
  • all she could to give them a good dinner the next day, as it was to be
  • a feast.
  • "Why so, Jacob?"
  • "If you can not guess, I won't tell you till the time comes," replied
  • Jacob.
  • "Well then, Humphrey must help us," replied Alice, "and we will do what
  • we can. I will try, now that we have some meat, to make a grand dinner."
  • Alice made all the preparations, and had for dinner the next day a
  • piece of baked venison, a venison stew, a pair of roast chickens, and
  • an apple pie--which, for them, was a very grand dinner indeed. And it
  • was very well dressed: for Jacob had taught her to cook, and by degrees
  • she improved upon Jacob's instruction. Humphrey was quite as clever at
  • it as she was; and little Edith was very useful, as she plucked the
  • fowls, and watched the things while they were cooking.
  • "And now I'll tell you," said Jacob, after saying grace, "why I asked
  • you for a feast this day. It is because exactly on this day twelvemonth
  • I brought you all to the cottage. Now you know."
  • "I did not know it, certainly, but I dare say you are right," replied
  • Edward.
  • "And now, children, tell me," said Jacob, "has not this year passed
  • very quickly and very happily--quite as quickly and quite as happily as
  • if you had been staying at Arnwood?"
  • "Yes, more so," replied Humphrey; "for then very often I did not know
  • what to do to amuse myself, and since I have been here the days have
  • always been too short."
  • "I agree with Humphrey," said Edward.
  • "And I am sure I do," replied Alice; "I'm always busy and always happy,
  • and I'm never scolded about dirtying my clothes or tearing them, as I
  • used to be."
  • "And what does little Edith say?"
  • "I like to help Alice, and I like to play with the kitten," replied
  • Edith.
  • "Well, my children," said Jacob, "depend upon it, you are most happy
  • when your days pass quickest, and that is only the case when you have
  • plenty to do. Here you are in peace and safety; and may it please God
  • that you may continue so! We want very few things in this world--that
  • is, we really want very few things, although we wish and sigh for many.
  • You have health and spirits, which are the greatest blessings in life.
  • Who would believe, to look at you all, that you were the same children
  • that I brought away from Arnwood? You were then very different from
  • what you are now. You are strong and healthy, rosy and brown, instead
  • of being fair and delicate. Look at your sisters, Edward. Do you think
  • that any of your former friends--do you think that Martha, who had the
  • care of them, would know them?"
  • Edward smiled, and said, "Certainly not; especially in their present
  • dresses."
  • "Nor would, I think, Humphrey be known again. You, Edward, were always
  • a stout boy; and, except that you have grown very much, and are more
  • brown, there is no great difference. You would be known again, even in
  • your present forester's dress; but what I say is, that we ought to be
  • thankful to the Almighty that you, instead of being burned in your
  • beds, have found health, and happiness, and security, in a forester's
  • hut; and I ought to be, and am, most thankful to Heaven, that it has
  • pleased it to spare my life, and enable me to teach you all to the
  • present, how to gain your own livelihoods after I am called away. I
  • have been able so far to fulfill my promise to your noble father; and
  • you know not what a heavy load on my mind is every day lessened, as I
  • see each day that you are more and more able to provide for yourselves.
  • God bless you, dear children, and may you live to see many returns, and
  • happy returns, of the day;" and Jacob was so much moved as he said
  • this, that a tear was seen rolling down his furrowed cheek.
  • The second winter now came on. Jacob and Edward went out hunting
  • usually about twice a-week; for the old forester complained of
  • stiffness and rheumatism, and not feeling so active as he used to be.
  • Humphrey now accompanied Edward perhaps one day in the week, but not
  • more, and they seldom returned without having procured venison, for
  • Edward knew his business well, and no longer needed the advice of
  • Jacob. As the winter advanced, Jacob gave up going out altogether. He
  • went to Lymington to sell the venison and procure what was necessary
  • for the household, such as oatmeal and flour, which were the principal
  • wants, but even these journeys fatigued him, and it was evident that
  • the old man's constitution was breaking fast. Humphrey was always busy.
  • One evening he was making something which puzzled them all. They asked
  • him what it was for, but he would not tell them.
  • "It's an experiment that I am trying," said he as he was bending a
  • hazel stick. "If it answers, you shall know: if it does not, I've only
  • had a little trouble for nothing. Jacob, I hope you will not forget the
  • salt to-morrow when you go to Lymington, for my pigs are ready for
  • killing, and we must salt the greatest part of the pork. After the legs
  • and shoulders have lain long enough in salt, I mean to try if I can not
  • smoke them, and if I do, I'll then smoke some bacon. Won't that be
  • jolly, Alice? Won't you like to have a great piece of bacon hanging up
  • there, and only to have to get on a stool to cut off what you want,
  • when Edward and I come home hungry, and you've nothing to give us to
  • eat?"
  • "I shall be very glad to have it, and I think so will you too, by the
  • way you talk."
  • "I shall, I assure you. Jacob, didn't you say the ash sticks were the
  • best to smoke bacon with?"
  • "Yes, boy: when you are ready, I'll tell you how to manage. My poor
  • mother used to smoke very well up this very chimney."
  • "I think that will do," said Humphrey, letting his hazel stick spring
  • up, after he had bent it down, "but to-morrow I shall find out."
  • "But what is it for, Humphrey?" said Edith.
  • "Go away, puss, and play with your kitten," replied Humphrey, putting
  • away his tools and his materials in a corner; "I've a great deal on my
  • hands now, but I must kill my pigs before I think of any thing else."
  • The next day Jacob took the venison into Lymington, and brought back
  • the salt and other articles required. The pigs were then killed, and
  • salted down under Jacob's directions; his rheumatism did not allow him
  • to assist, but Humphrey and Edward rubbed in the salt, and Alice took
  • the pieces of pork away to the tub when they were finished. Humphrey
  • had been out the day before with the unknown article he had been so
  • long about. The next morning he went out early before breakfast and
  • when he returned, he brought a hare in his hand, which he laid on the
  • table.
  • "There," said he, "my spring has answered, and this is the first fruits
  • of it. Now I'll make some more, and we will have something by way of a
  • change for dinner."
  • They were very much pleased with Humphrey's success, and he was not a
  • little proud of it.
  • "How did you find out how to make it?"
  • "Why, I read in the old book of travels which Jacob brought home with
  • him last summer, of people catching rabbits and hares in some way like
  • this; I could not make it out exactly, but it gave me the idea."
  • We ought to have told the reader that Jacob had more than once brought
  • home an old book or two which he had picked up, or had given him, and
  • that these had been occasionally looked into by Humphrey and Edward,
  • but only now and then, as they had too much to do to find much time for
  • reading, although sometimes, in the evening, they did take them up.
  • When it is considered how young they were, and what a practical and
  • busy life they led, this can not be surprising.
  • CHAPTER VII.
  • Humphrey was now after something else. He had made several traps, and
  • brought in rabbits and hares almost every day. He had also made some
  • bird-traps, and had caught two goldfinches for Alice and Edith, which
  • they put in the cages he had made for them. But, as we said, Humphrey
  • was about something else; he was out early in the morning, and in the
  • evening, when the moon was up, he came home late, long after they had
  • all gone to bed; but they never knew why, nor would he tell them. A
  • heavy fall of snow took place, and Humphrey was more out than ever. At
  • last, about a week after the snow had laid on the ground, one morning
  • he came in with a hare and rabbit in his hand, and said,
  • "Edward, I have caught something larger than a hare or a rabbit, and
  • you must come and help me, and we must take our guns. Jacob, I suppose
  • your rheumatism is too bad to let you come too?"
  • "No; I think I can manage. It's the damp that hurts me so much. This
  • frosty air will do me good, perhaps. I have been much better since the
  • snow fell. Now, then, let us see what you have caught."
  • "You will have to walk two miles," said Humphrey, as they went out.
  • "I can manage it, Humphrey, so lead the way."
  • Humphrey went on till they came close to a clump of large trees, and
  • then brought them to a pitfall which he had dug, about six feet wide
  • and eight feet long, and nine feet deep.
  • "There's my large trap," said Humphrey, "and see what I have caught in
  • it."
  • They looked down into the pit and perceived a young bull in it. Smoker,
  • who was with him, began to bark furiously at it.
  • "Now, what are we to do? I don't think it is hurt. Can we get it out?"
  • said Humphrey.
  • "No, not very well. If it was a calf, we might; but it is too heavy,
  • and if we were to get it out alive, we must kill it after ward, so we
  • had better shoot it at once."
  • "So I think," replied Humphrey.
  • "But how did you catch him?" said Edward.
  • "I read of it in the same book I did about the traps for hares,"
  • replied Humphrey. "I dug out the pit and covered it with brambles, and
  • then put snow at the top. This is the thicket that the herd comes to
  • chiefly in winter time; it is large and dry, and the large trees
  • shelter it; so that is why I chose this spot. I took a large bundle of
  • hay, put some on the snow about the pit, and then strewed some more
  • about in small handfuls, so that the cattle must find it, and pick it
  • up, which I knew they would be glad to do, now that the snow is on the
  • ground. And now, you see, I have succeeded."
  • "Well, Humphrey, you beat us, I will say," said Edward. "Shall I shoot
  • him?"
  • "Yes, now that he is looking up."
  • Edward shot his ball through the forehead of the animal, which fell
  • dead: but they were then obliged to go home for the pony and cart, and
  • ropes to get the animal out of the pit, and a hard job they had of it
  • too; but the pony helped them, and they did get it out at last.
  • "I will do it easier next time," said Humphrey. "I will make a windlass
  • as soon as I can, and we will soon hoist out another, like they turn a
  • bucket of water up from a well."
  • "It's nice young meat," said Jacob, who was skinning the bull, "not
  • above eighteen months old, I should think. Had it been a full-grown
  • one, like that we shot, it must have remained where it was, for we
  • never could have got it out."
  • "Yes, Jacob, we should, for I should have gone down and cut it up in
  • the pit, so that we would have handed it out by bits, if we could not
  • have managed him whole."
  • They loaded the cart with the skin and quarters of the animal, and then
  • drove home.
  • "This will go far to pay for the gun, Humphrey," said Jacob, "if it
  • don't pay for more."
  • "I am glad of it," said Humphrey, "but I hope it will not be the last
  • which I take."
  • "That reminds me, Humphrey, of one thing; I think you must come back
  • with the cart and carry away all the entrails of the beast, and remove
  • all the blood which is on the snow, for I've observed that cattle are
  • very scared with the smell and sight of blood. I found that out by once
  • or twice seeing them come to where I have cut the throat of a stag, and
  • as soon as they have put their noses down to where the blood was on the
  • ground, they have put their tails up and galloped away, bellowing at a
  • terrible rate. Indeed, I've heard say, that if a murder has been
  • committed in a wood, and you want to find the body, that a herd of
  • cattle drove into it will serve you better than even a bloodhound."
  • "Thank you for telling me that, Jacob, for I should never have supposed
  • it, and I'll tell you what I'll also do; I'll load the cart with fern
  • litter, and put it at the bottom of the pit, so that if I could get a
  • heifer or calf worth taking, it may not be hurt by the fall."
  • "It must have taken you a long while to dig that pit, Humphrey."
  • "Yes, it did, and as I got deeper the work was harder, and then I had
  • to carry away all the earth and scatter it about. I was more than a
  • month about it from the time that I began till it was finished, and I
  • had a ladder to go up and down by at last, and carried the baskets of
  • earth up, for it was too deep to throw it out."
  • "Nothing like patience and perseverance, Humphrey. You've more than I
  • have."
  • "I'm sure he has more than I have, or shall ever have, I'm afraid,"
  • replied Edward.
  • During this winter, which passed rapidly way very few circumstances of
  • any consequence occurred. Old Jacob was more or less confined to the
  • cottage by the rheumatism, and Edward hunted either by himself or
  • occasionally with Humphrey. Humphrey was fortunate enough to take a
  • bull and a cow calf in his pitfall, both of them about a year or
  • fifteen months old, and by a rude invention of his, by way of windlass,
  • contrived, with the assistance of Edward, to hoist them uninjured out
  • of the pit. They were put into the yard, and after having been starved
  • till they were tamed, they followed the example of the heifer and calf,
  • and became quite tame. These were an important addition to their stock,
  • as may well be imagined. The only mishap under which they labored was,
  • old Jacob's confinement to the cottage, which, as the winter advanced,
  • prevented him from going to Lymington; they could not, therefore, sell
  • any venison; and Humphrey, by way of experiment, smoked some venison
  • hams, which he hung up with the others. There was another point on
  • which they felt anxiety, which was, that Jacob could not cross the
  • forest to get the puppies which had been promised them, and the time
  • was passed, for it was now January, when he was to have called for
  • them. Edward and Humphrey pressed the old man very hard to let one of
  • them go, but the only answer they could obtain was "that he'd be better
  • soon." At last, finding that he got worse instead of better, he
  • consented that Edward should go. He gave directions how to proceed, the
  • way he was to take, and a description of the keeper's lodge; cautioned
  • him to call himself by the name of Armitage, and describe himself as
  • his grandson. Edward promised to obey Jacob's directions, and the next
  • morning he set off, mounted upon White Billy, with a little money in
  • his pocket in case he should want it.
  • "I wish I was going with you," said Humphrey, as he walked by the side
  • of the pony.
  • "I wish you were, Humphrey: for my part, I feel as if I were a slave
  • set at liberty. I do justice to old Jacob's kindness and good will, and
  • acknowledge how much we are indebted to him; but still to be housed up
  • here in the forest, never seeing or speaking to any one, shut out from
  • the world, does not suit Edward Beverley. Our father was a soldier, and
  • a right good one, and if I were old enough I think even now I should
  • escape and join the royal party, broken as it may be and by all
  • accounts is, at this moment. Deer stalking is all very well, but I fly
  • at higher game."
  • "I feel the same as you do," replied Humphrey: "but recollect, Edward,
  • that the old man's very infirm, and what would become of our sisters if
  • we were to leave them?"
  • "I know that well, Humphrey--I have no idea of leaving them, you may be
  • sure; but I wish they were with our relations in safety, and then we
  • should be free to act."
  • "Yes, we should, Edward; but recollect that we are not yet men, and
  • boys of fifteen and thirteen can not do much, although they may wish to
  • do much."
  • "It's true that I am only fifteen," replied Edward, "but I am strong
  • enough, and so are you. I think if I had a fair cut at a man's head I
  • would make him stagger under it, were he as big as a buffalo. As young
  • as I have been to the wars, that I know well; and I recollect my father
  • promising me that I should go with him as soon as I was fifteen."
  • "What puzzles me," replied Humphrey, "is, the fear that old Jacob has
  • of our being seen at Lymington."
  • "Why, what fear is there?"
  • "I can not tell more than you; in my opinion, the fear is only in his
  • own imagination. They surely would not hurt us (if we walked about
  • without arms like other people) because our father had fought for the
  • king? That they have beheaded some people it is true, but then they
  • were plotting in the king's favor, or in other ways opposed to
  • Parliament. This I have gathered from Jacob: but I can not see what we
  • have to fear if we remain quiet. But now comes the question, Edward,
  • for Jacob has, I believe, said more to me on one subject than he has to
  • you. Suppose you were to leave the forest, what would be the first step
  • which you would take?"
  • "I should, of course, state who I was, and take possession of my
  • father's property at Arnwood, which is mine by descent."
  • "Exactly; so Jacob thinks, and he says that would be your ruin, for the
  • property is sequestered, as they call it, or forfeited to the
  • Parliament, in consequence of your father having fought against it on
  • the king's side. It no longer belongs to you, and you would not be
  • allowed to take it: on the contrary, you would, in all probability, be
  • imprisoned, and who knows what might then take place? You see there is
  • danger."
  • "Did Jacob say this to you?"
  • "Yes, he did: he told me he dare not speak to you on the subject, you
  • were so fiery; and if you heard that the property was confiscated, you
  • would certainly do some rash act, and that any thing of the kind would
  • be a pretense for laying hold of you; and then he said that he did not
  • think that he would live long, for he was weaker every day; and that he
  • only hoped his life would be spared another year or two, that he might
  • keep you quiet till better times came. He said that if they supposed
  • that we were all burned in the house when it was fired, it would give
  • them a fair opportunity of calling you an impostor and treating you
  • accordingly, and that there were so many anxious to have a gift of the
  • property, that you would have thousands of people compassing your
  • death. He said that your making known yourself and claiming your
  • property would be the very conduct that your enemies would wish you to
  • follow, and would be attended with most fatal consequences; for he
  • said, to prove that you were Edward Beverley, you must declare that I
  • and your sisters were in the forest with him, and this disclosure would
  • put the whole family in the power of their bitterest enemies; and what
  • would become of your sisters, it would be impossible to say, but most
  • likely they would be put under the charge of some Puritan family who
  • would have a pleasure in ill-treating and humiliating the daughters of
  • such a man as Colonel Beverley."
  • "And why did he not tell me all this?"
  • "He was afraid to say any thing to you; he thought that you would be so
  • mad at the idea of this injustice that you would do something rash: and
  • he said, I pray every night that my otherwise useless life may be
  • spared; for, were I to die, I know that Edward would quit the forest."
  • "Never, while my sisters are under my protection," replied Edward;
  • "were they safe, I would be out of it to-morrow."
  • "I think, Edward, that there is great truth in what Jacob says; you
  • could do no good (for they would not restore your property) by making
  • your seclusion known at present, and you might do a great deal of
  • harm--'bide your time' is good advice in such troubled times. I
  • therefore think that I should be very wary if I were you; but I still
  • think that there is no fear of either you or I going out of the forest,
  • in our present dresses and under the name of Armitage. No one would
  • recognize us; you are grown tall and so am I, and we are so tanned and
  • sunburned with air and exercise, that we do look more like Children of
  • the Forest than the sons of Colonel Beverley."
  • "Humphrey, you speak very sensibly, and I agree with you. I am not
  • quite so fiery as the old man thinks; and if my bosom burns with
  • indignation, at all events I have sufficient power to conceal my
  • feelings when it is necessary; I can oppose art to art, if it becomes
  • requisite, and which, from what you have said, I believe now is really
  • so. One thing is certain, that while King Charles is a prisoner, as he
  • now is, and his party dispersed and gone abroad, I can do nothing, and
  • to make myself known would only be to injure myself and all of us. Keep
  • quiet, therefore, I certainly shall, and also remain as I am now, under
  • a false name; but still I must and will mix up with other people and
  • know what is going on. I am willing to live in this forest and protect
  • my sisters as long as it is necessary so to do; but although I will
  • reside here, I will not be confined to the forest altogether."
  • "That's exactly what I think too, Edward--what I wish myself; but let
  • us not be too hasty even in this. And now, I will wish you a pleasant
  • ride; and, Edward, if you can, procure of the keepers some small shot
  • for me; I much wish to have some."
  • "I will not forget; good-by, brother."
  • Humphrey returned home to attend his farmyard, while Edward continued
  • his journey through the forest. Some estimate of the character of the
  • two boys may be formed from the above conversation. Edward was
  • courageous and impetuous hasty in his resolves, but still open to
  • conviction. Brought up as the heir to the property, he felt, more than
  • Humphrey could be expected to do, the mortification of being left a
  • pauper, after such high prospects in his early days: his vindictive
  • feelings against the opposite party were therefore more keen, and his
  • spirit mounted more from the conviction under which he labored. His
  • disposition was naturally warlike, and this disposition had been
  • fostered by his father when he was a child--still a kinder heart or a
  • more generous lad never existed.
  • Humphrey was of a much more subdued and philosophical temperament, not
  • perhaps so well calculated to lead as to advise; there was great
  • prudence in him united with courage, but his was a passive courage
  • rather than an active one--a courage which, if assailed, would defend
  • itself valiantly, but would be wary and reflective before it would
  • attack. Humphrey had not that spirit of chivalry possessed by Edward.
  • He was a younger son, and had to earn, in a way, his own fortune, and
  • he felt that his inclinations were more for peace than strife.
  • Moreover, Humphrey had talents which Edward had not--a natural talent
  • for mechanics, and an inquisitive research into science, as far as his
  • limited education would permit him. He was more fitted for an engineer
  • or an agriculturist than for a soldier, although there is no doubt that
  • he would have made a very brave soldier, if such was to have become his
  • avocation.
  • For kindness and generosity of nature he was equal to his brother, and
  • this was the reason why an angry word never passed between them; for
  • the question between them was not which should have his way, but which
  • should give up most to the wishes of the other. We hardly need say,
  • that there never were two brothers who were more attached, and who so
  • mutually respected each other.
  • CHAPTER VIII.
  • Edward put the pony to a trot, and in two hours was on the other side
  • of the New Forest. The directions given to him by Jacob were not
  • forgotten, and before it was noon he found himself at the gate of the
  • keeper's house. Dismounting, and hanging the bridle of the pony over
  • the rail, he walked through a small garden, neatly kept, but, so early
  • in the year, not over gay, except that the crocus and snowdrops were
  • peeping. He rapped at the door with his knuckles, and a girl of about
  • fourteen, very neatly dressed, answered the summons.
  • "Is Oswald Partridge at home, maiden," said Edward.
  • "No, young man, he is not. He is in the forest."
  • "When will he return?"
  • "Toward the evening is his time, unless he is more than usually
  • successful."
  • "I have come some distance to find him," replied Edward; "and it would
  • vex me to return without seeing him. Has he a wife, or any one that I
  • could speak to?"
  • "He has no wife; but I am willing to deliver a message."
  • "I am come about some dogs which he promised to Jacob Armitage, my
  • relation; but the old man is too unwell, and has been for some time, to
  • come himself for them, and he has sent me."
  • "There are dogs, young and old, large and small, in the kennels; so far
  • do I know, and no more."
  • "I fear, then, I must wait till his return," replied Edward.
  • "I will speak to my father," replied the young girl, "if you will wait
  • one moment."
  • In a minute or two the girl returned, saying that her father begged
  • that he would walk in, and he would speak with him. Edward bowed, and
  • followed the young girl, who led the way to a room, in which was seated
  • a man dressed after the fashion of the Roundheads of the day. His
  • steeple-crowned hat lay on the chair, with his sword beneath it. He was
  • sitting at a table covered with papers.
  • "Here is the youth, father," said the girl; and having said this, she
  • crossed the room and took a seat by the side of the fire. The man, or
  • we should rather say gentleman--for he had the appearance of one,
  • notwithstanding the somber and peculiar dress he wore, continued to
  • read a letter which he had just opened; and Edward, who feared himself
  • the prisoner of a Roundhead, when he only expected to meet a keeper,
  • was further irritated by the neglect shown toward him by the party.
  • Forgetting that he was, by his own assertion, not Edward Beverley, but
  • the relative of one Jacob Armitage, he colored up with anger as he
  • stood at the door. Fortunately the time that it took the other party to
  • read through the letter gave Edward also time for recollecting the
  • disguise under which he appeared; the color subsided from his cheeks,
  • and he remained in silence, occasionally meeting the look of the little
  • girl, who, when their eyes met, immediately withdrew her glance.
  • "What is your business, young man?" at last said the gentleman at the
  • table.
  • "I came, sir, on private business with the keeper, Oswald Partridge, to
  • obtain two young hounds, which he promised to my grandfather, Jacob
  • Armitage."
  • "Armitage!" said the other party, referring to a list on the table;
  • "Armitage--Jacob--yes--I see he is one of the verderers. Why has he not
  • been here to call upon me?"
  • "For what reason should he call upon you, sir?" replied Edward.
  • "Simply, young man, because the New Forest is, by the Parliament,
  • committed to my charge. Notice has been given for all those who were
  • employed to come here, that they might be permitted to remain, or be
  • discharged, as I may deem most advisable."
  • "Jacob Armitage has heard nothing of this, sir," replied Edward. "He
  • was a keeper, appointed under the king; for two or three years his
  • allowances have never been paid, and he has lived on his own cottage,
  • which was left to him by his father, being his own property."
  • "And pray, may I ask, young man, do you live with Jacob Armitage?"
  • "I have done so for more than a year."
  • "And as your relation has received no pay and allowances, as you state,
  • pray by what means has he maintained himself?"
  • "How have the other keepers maintained themselves?" replied Edward.
  • "Do not put questions to me, sir," replied the gentleman; "but be
  • pleased to reply to mine. What has been the means of subsistence of
  • Jacob Armitage?"
  • "If you think he has no means of subsistence, sir, you are mistaken,"
  • replied Edward. "We have land of our own, which we cultivate; we have
  • our pony and our cart; we have our pigs and our cows."
  • "And they have been sufficient?"
  • "Had the patriarchs more?" replied Edward.
  • "You are pithy at reply, young man; but I know something of Jacob
  • Armitage, and we know," continued he, putting his finger close to some
  • writing opposite the name on the list, "with whom he has associated,
  • and with whom he has served. Now allow me to put one question. You have
  • come, you say, for two young hounds. Are their services required for
  • your pigs and cows, and to what uses are they to be put."
  • "We have as good a dog as there is in the forest," replied Edward; "but
  • we wished to have others in case we should lose him."
  • "As good a dog as in the forest--good for what?"
  • "For hunting."
  • "Then you acknowledge that you do hunt?"
  • "I acknowledge nothing for Jacob Armitage; he may answer for himself,"
  • replied Edward; "but allow me to assure you that if he has killed
  • venison, no one can blame him."
  • "Perhaps you will explain why?"
  • "Nothing is more easy. Jacob Armitage served King Charles, who employed
  • him as a verderer in the forest, and paid him his wages. Those who
  • should not have done so rebelled against the king, took his authority
  • from him, and the means of paying those he employed. They were still
  • servants of the king, for they were not dismissed; and, having no other
  • means of support, they considered that their good master would be but
  • too happy that they should support themselves by killing, for their
  • subsistence, that venison which they could no longer preserve for him
  • without eating some themselves."
  • "Then you admit that Jacob Armitage has killed the deer in the forest?"
  • "I admit nothing for Jacob Armitage."
  • "You admit that you have killed it yourself."
  • "I shall not answer that question, sir; in the first place, I am not
  • here to criminate myself; and, in the next, I must know by what
  • authority you have the right to inquire."
  • "Young man," replied the other, in a severe tone, "if you wish to know
  • my authority, malapert as you are (at this remark Edward started, yet,
  • recollecting himself, he compressed his lips and stood still), this is
  • my commission, appointing me the agent of Parliament to take charge and
  • superintend the New Forest, with power to appoint and dismiss those
  • whom I please. I presume you must take my word for it, as you can not
  • read and write."
  • Edward stepped up to the table, and very quietly took up the paper and
  • read it. "You have stated what is correct, sir," said he, laying it
  • down; "and the date of it is, I perceive, on the 20th of the last
  • month--December. It is, therefore, but eighteen days old."
  • "And what inference would you draw from that, young man?" replied the
  • gentleman, looking up to him with some astonishment.
  • "Simply this, sir--that Jacob Armitage has been laid up with the
  • rheumatism for three months, during which time he certainly has not
  • killed any venison. Now, sir, until the Parliament took the forest into
  • their hands, it undoubtedly belonged to his majesty, if it does not
  • now; therefore Jacob Armitage, for whatever slaughter he may have
  • committed, is, up to the present, only answerable to his sovereign,
  • King Charles."
  • "It is easy to perceive the school in which you have been brought up,
  • young man, even if there was not evidence on this paper that your
  • forefather served under the Cavalier, Colonel Beverley, and has been
  • brought up to his way of thinking."
  • "Sir, it is a base dog that bites the hand that feeds him," replied
  • Edward, with warmth. "Jacob Armitage, and his father before him, were
  • retainers in the family of Colonel Beverley; they were indebted to him
  • for the situation they held in the forest; indebted to him for every
  • thing; they revere his name, they uphold the cause for which he fell,
  • as I do."
  • "Young man, if you do not speak advisedly, at all events you speak
  • gratefully; neither have I a word of disrespect to offer to the memory
  • of Colonel Beverley, who was a gallant man, and true to the cause which
  • he espoused, although it was not a holy one; but, in my position, I can
  • not, in justice to those whom I serve, give places and emolument to
  • those who have been, and still are, as I may judge by your expressions,
  • adverse to the present government."
  • "Sir," replied Edward, "your language, with respect to Colonel
  • Beverley, has made me feel respect for you, which I confess I did not
  • at first; what you say is very just, not that I think you harm Jacob
  • Armitage, as, in the first place, I know that he would not serve under
  • you; and, in the next, that he is too old and infirm to hold the
  • situation; neither has he occasion for it, as his cottage and land are
  • his own, and you can not remove him."
  • "He has the title, I presume," replied the gentleman.
  • "He has the title given to his grandfather, long before King Charles
  • was born, and I presume the Parliament do not intend to invalidate the
  • acts of former kings."
  • "May I inquire what relation you are to Jacob Armitage?"
  • "I believe I have said before, his grandson."
  • "You live with him?"
  • "I do."
  • "And if the old man dies, will inherit his property?"
  • Edward smiled, and looking at the young girl, said:
  • "Now, I ask you, maiden, if your father does not presume upon his
  • office."
  • The young girl laughed, and said:
  • "He is in authority."
  • "Not over me, certainly, and not over my grandfather, for he has
  • dismissed him."
  • "Were you brought up at the cottage, young man?"
  • "No, sir, I was brought up at Arnwood. I was playmate of the children
  • of Colonel Beverley."
  • "Educated with them?"
  • "Yes, for as far as my willfulness would permit, the chaplain was
  • always ready to give me instruction."
  • "Where were you when Arnwood was burned down?"
  • "I was at the cottage at that time," replied Edward, grinding his teeth
  • and looking wildly.
  • "Nay, nay, I can forgive any expression of feeling on your part, young
  • man, when that dreadful and disgraceful deed is brought to your memory.
  • It was a stain that can never be effaced--a deed most diabolical, and
  • what we thought would call down the vengeance of Heaven. If prayers
  • could avert, or did avert it, they were not wanting on our side."
  • Edward remained silent: this admission on the part of the Roundhead
  • prevented an explosion on his part. He felt that all were not so bad as
  • he had imagined. After a long pause, he said:
  • "When I came here, sir, it was to seek Oswald Partridge, and obtain the
  • hounds which he had promised us; but I presume that my journey is now
  • useless."
  • "Why so?"
  • "Because you have the control of the forest, and will not permit dogs
  • for the chase to be given away to those who are not employed by the
  • powers that now govern."
  • "You have judged correctly, in so far that my duty is to prevent it;
  • but as the promise was made previous to the date of my commission, I
  • presume," said he, smiling, "you think I have no right to interfere, as
  • it will be an _ex post facto_ case if I do: I shall not, therefore,
  • interfere, only I must point out to you that the laws are still the
  • same relative to those who take the deer in the forest by stealth--you
  • understand me?"
  • "Yes, sir, I do; and if you will not be offended, I will give you a
  • candid reply."
  • "Speak, then."
  • "I consider that the deer in this forest belong to King Charles, who is
  • my lawful sovereign, and I own no authority but from him. I hold myself
  • answerable to him alone for any deer I may kill, and I feel sure of his
  • permission and full forgiveness for what I may do."
  • "That may be your opinion, my good sir, but it will not be the opinion
  • of the ruling powers; but if caught, you will be punished, and that by
  • me, in pursuance of the authority vested in me."
  • "Well, sir, if so, so be it. You have dismissed the Armitages on
  • account of their upholding the king, and you can not, therefore, be
  • surprised that they uphold him more than ever. Nor can you be surprised
  • if a dismissed verderer becomes a poacher."
  • "Nor can you be surprised, if a poacher is caught, that he incurs the
  • penalty," replied the Roundhead. "So now there's an end of our
  • argument. If you go into the kitchen you will find wherewithal to
  • refresh the outward man, and if you wish to remain till Oswald
  • Partridge comes home, you are welcome."
  • Edward, who felt indignant at being dismissed to the kitchen, nodded
  • his head and smiled upon the little girl, and left the room. "Well,"
  • thought he, as he went along the passage, "I came here for two puppies,
  • and I have found a Roundhead. I don't know how it is, but I am not
  • angry with him as I thought I should be. That little girl had a nice
  • smile--she was quite handsome when she smiled. Oh, this is the kitchen,
  • to which," thought he, "the Lord of Arnwood is dismissed by a
  • Covenanter and Roundhead, probably a tradesman or outlaw, who has
  • served the cause. Well, be it so; as Humphrey says, 'I'll bide my
  • time.' But there is no one here, so I'll try if there is a stable for
  • White Billy, who is tired, I presume, of being at the gate."
  • Edward returned by the way he came, went out of the front door and
  • through the garden to where the pony was made fast, and led him away in
  • search of a stable. He found one behind the house, and filling the rack
  • with hay, returned to the house and seated himself at a porch which was
  • at the door which led to the back premises, for the keeper's house was
  • large and commodious. Edward was in deep thought, when he was roused by
  • the little girl, the daughter of the newly-appointed intendant of the
  • forest, who said:
  • "I am afraid, young sir, you have had but sorry welcome in the kitchen,
  • as there was no one to receive you. I was not aware that Phoebe had
  • gone out. If you will come with me, I may perhaps find you refreshment."
  • "Thanks, maiden, you are kind and considerate to an avowed poacher,"
  • replied Edward.
  • "Oh, but you will not poach, I'm sure; and if you do, I'll beg you off
  • if I can," replied the girl, laughing.
  • Edward followed her into the kitchen, and she soon produced a cold fowl
  • and a venison pasty, which she placed on the table; she then went out
  • and returned with a jug of ale.
  • "There," said she, putting it on the table, "that is all that I can
  • find."
  • "Your father's name is Heatherstone, I believe. It was so on the
  • warrant."
  • "Yes, it is."
  • "And yours?"
  • "The same as my father's, I should presume."
  • "Yes, but your baptismal name?"
  • "You ask strange questions, young sir; but still I will answer you
  • that: my baptismal name is Patience."
  • "I thank you for your condescension," replied Edward "You live here?"
  • "For the present, good sir; and now I leave you."
  • "That's a nice little girl, thought Edward, although she is the
  • daughter of a Roundhead; and she calls me 'Sir.' I can not, therefore,
  • look like Jacob's grandson, and must be careful." Edward then set to
  • with a good appetite at the viands which had been placed before him,
  • and had just finished a hearty meal when Patience Heatherstone again
  • came in and said:
  • "Oswald Partridge is now coming home."
  • "I thank you, maiden," replied Edward. "May I ask a question of you?
  • Where is the king now?"
  • "I have heard that he resides at Hurst Castle," replied the girl;
  • "but," added she in a low tone, "all attempts to see him would be
  • useless and only hurt him and those who made the attempt." Having said
  • this, she left the room.
  • CHAPTER IX.
  • Edward, having finished his meal, and had a good pull at the jug of
  • ale, which was a liquor he had not tasted for a long while, rose from
  • the table and went out of the back door, and found there Oswald
  • Partridge. He accosted him, stating the reason for his coming over to
  • him. "I did not know that Jacob had a grandson: indeed I never knew
  • that he had a son. Have you been living with him long?"
  • "More than a year," replied Edward; "before that, I was in the
  • household at Arnwood."
  • "Then you are of the king's side, I presume?" replied Oswald.
  • "To death," replied Edward, "when the time comes."
  • "And I am also; that you may suppose, for never would I give a hound to
  • any one that was not. But we had better go to the kennels. Dogs may
  • hear, but they can't repeat."
  • "I little thought to have met any one but you here when I came," said
  • Edward; "and I will now tell you all that passed between me and the new
  • intendant." Edward then related the conversation.
  • "You have been bold," said Oswald; "but perhaps it is all the better. I
  • am to retain my situation, and so are two others; but there are many
  • new hands coming in as rangers. I know nothing of them, but that they
  • are little fitted for their places, and rail against the king all day
  • long, which, I suppose, is their chief merit in the eyes of those who
  • appoint them. However, one thing is certain, that if those fellows can
  • not stalk a deer themselves, they will do all they can to prevent
  • others; so you must be on the alert, for the punishment is severe."
  • "I fear them not; the only difficulty is, that we shall not be able to
  • find a sale for the venison now," replied Edward.
  • "Oh never fear that; I will give you the names of those who will take
  • all your venison off your hands without any risk on your part, except
  • in the killing of it. They will meet you in the park, lay down ready
  • money, and take it away. I don't know, but I have an idea, that this
  • new intendant, or what you may call him, is not so severe as he
  • pretends to be. Indeed, his permitting you to say what he did, and his
  • own words relative to the colonel, convince me that I am right in the
  • opinion that I formed."
  • "Do you know who he is?"
  • "Not much about him, but he is a great friend of General Cromwell, and
  • they say has done good service to the Parliamentary cause; but we shall
  • meet again, for the forest is free at all events."
  • "If you come here," continued Oswald, "do not carry your gun--and see
  • that you are not watched home. There are the dogs for your grandfather.
  • Why, how old must you be, for Jacob is not more than sixty or
  • thereabout?"
  • "I am fifteen, past, nevertheless."
  • "I should have put you down for eighteen or nineteen at least. You are
  • well grown indeed for that age. Well, nothing like a forest life to
  • turn a boy into a man! Can you stalk a deer?"
  • "I seldom go out without bringing one down."
  • "Indeed! That Jacob is a master of his craft, is certain; but you are
  • young to have learned it so soon. Can you tell the slot of a brocket
  • from a stag?"
  • "Yes, and the slot of a brocket from a doe."
  • "Better still. We must go out together; and besides, I must know where
  • the old man's cottage is (for I do not exactly), in the first place,
  • because I may want to come to you, and in the next, that I may put
  • others on a false scent. Do you know the clump of large oaks which they
  • call the Clump Royal?"
  • "Yes, I do."
  • "Will you meet me there the day after to-morrow, at early dawn?"
  • "If I live and do well."
  • "That's enough. Take the dogs in the leashes, and go away now."
  • "Many thanks; but I must not leave the pony, he is in the stable."
  • The keeper nodded adieu to Edward, who left him to go to the stable for
  • the pony. Edward saddled White Billy, and rode away across the forest
  • with the dogs trotting at the pony's heels.
  • Edward had much to reflect upon as he rode back to the cottage. He felt
  • that his position was one of more difficulty than before. That old
  • Jacob Armitage would not last much longer, he was convinced; even now
  • the poor old man was shrunk away to a skeleton with pain and disease.
  • That the livelihood to be procured from the forest would be attended
  • with peril, now that order had been restored, and the forest was no
  • longer neglected, was certain; and he rejoiced that Humphrey had, by
  • his assiduity and intelligence, made the farm so profitable as it
  • promised to be. Indeed he felt that, if necessary, they could live upon
  • the proceeds of the farm, and not run the risk of imprisonment by
  • stalking the deer. But he had told the intendant that he considered the
  • game as the king's property, and he was resolved that he would at all
  • events run the risk, although he would no longer permit Humphrey so to
  • do. "If any thing happens to me," thought Edward, "Humphrey will still
  • be at the cottage to take care of my sisters; and if I am obliged to
  • fly the country, it will suit well my feelings, as I can then offer my
  • services to those who still support the king." With these thoughts and
  • many others he amused himself until, late in the evening, he arrived at
  • the cottage. He found all in bed except Humphrey, who had waited for
  • him, and to whom he narrated all that had passed. Humphrey said little
  • in reply; he wished to think it over before he gave any opinion. He
  • told Edward that Jacob had been very ill the whole of the day, and had
  • requested Alice to read the Bible to him during the evening.
  • The next morning Edward went to Jacob, who for the last ten days had
  • altogether kept his bed, and gave him the detail of what had happened
  • at the keeper's lodge.
  • "You have been more bold than prudent, Edward," replied Jacob; "but I
  • could not expect you to have spoken otherwise. You are too proud and
  • too manly to tell a lie, and I am glad that it is so. As for your
  • upholding the king, although he is now a prisoner in their hands, they
  • can not blame you or punish you for that, as long as you have not
  • weapons in your hands; but now that they have taken the forest under
  • their jurisdiction, you must be careful, for they are the ruling powers
  • at present, and must be obeyed, or the forfeit must be paid. Still I do
  • not ask you to promise me this or that; I only point out to you that
  • your sisters will suffer by any imprudence on your part; and for their
  • sakes be careful. I say this, Edward, because I feel that my days are
  • numbered, and that in a short time I shall be called away. You will
  • then have all the load on your shoulders which has been latterly on
  • mine. I have no fear for the result if you are prudent; these few
  • months past, during which I have only been a burden to you, have proved
  • that you and Humphrey can find a living here for yourselves and your
  • sisters; and it is fortunate, now that the forest laws are about to be
  • put in force, that you have made the farm so profitable. If I might
  • advise, let your hunting in the forest be confined to the wild cattle;
  • they are not game, and the forest laws do not extend to them, and the
  • meat is as valuable as venison--that is to say, it does not sell so
  • dear, but there is more of it; but stick to the farm as much as you
  • can; for you see, Edward, you do not look like a low-born forester, nor
  • ought you to do so; and the more quiet you keep the better. As for
  • Oswald Partridge, you may trust him; I know him well; and he will prove
  • your friend for my sake, as soon as he hears that I am dead. Leave me
  • now--I will talk to you again in the evening. Send Alice to me, my dear
  • boy."
  • Edward was much distressed to perceive the change which had taken place
  • in old Jacob. He was evidently much worse; but Edward had no idea how
  • much worse he was. Edward assisted Humphrey in the farm, and in the
  • evening again went to Jacob, and then told him of the arrangement he
  • had made to meet Oswald Partridge on the following morning.
  • "Go, my boy," said Jacob; "be as intimate with him as you can, and make
  • a friend of him--nay, if it should be necessary, you may tell him who
  • you are; I did think of telling him myself, as it might be important to
  • you one day as evidence. I think you had better bring him here
  • to-morrow night, Edward; tell him I am dying, and wish to speak to him
  • before I go. Alice will read the Bible to me now, and I will talk with
  • you another time."
  • Early the next morning Edward set off to the appointed rendezvous with
  • Oswald Partridge. The Clump Royal, as it was called, from the peculiar
  • size and beauty of the oaks, was about seven miles from the cottage;
  • and at the hour and time indicated, Edward, with his gun in his hand,
  • and Smoker lying beside him, was leaning against one of those monarchs
  • of the forest. He did not wait long. Oswald Partridge, similarly
  • provided, made his appearance, and Edward advanced to meet him.
  • "Welcome, Oswald," said Edward.
  • "And welcome to you also, my fine lad," replied Oswald. "I have been
  • hard questioned about you since we parted--first by the Roundhead
  • Heatherstone, who plied me in all manner of ways to find out whether
  • you are what you assert, the grandson of Jacob--or some other person. I
  • really believe that he fancies you are the Duke of York--but he, could
  • not get any more from me than what I knew. I told him that your
  • grandfather's cottage was his own property, and a grant to his
  • forefathers; that you were brought up at Arnwood, and had joined your
  • grandfather after the death of the colonel, and the murderous burning
  • of the house and all within it by his party. But the pretty little
  • daughter was more curious still. She cross-questioned me in every way
  • when her father was not present, and at last begged me as a favor to
  • tell you not to take the deer, as her father was very strict in his
  • duty, and, if caught, you would be imprisoned."
  • "Many thanks to her for her caution, but I hope to take one to-day,
  • nevertheless," replied Edward; "a hart royal is not meat for
  • Roundheads, although the king's servants may feast on them."
  • "That's truly said. Well, now I must see your woodcraft. You shall be
  • the leader of the chase."
  • "Think you we can harbor a stag about here?"
  • "Yes, in this month, no doubt."
  • "Let us walk on," said Edward. "The wind is fresh from the eastern
  • quarter; we will face it, if you please--or, rather, keep it blowing on
  • our right cheek for the present."
  • "'Tis well," replied Oswald; and they walked for about half an hour.
  • "This is the slot of a doe," said Edward, in a low voice, pointing to
  • the marks; "yonder thicket is a likely harbor for the stag." They
  • proceeded, and Edward pointed out to Oswald the slot of the stag into
  • the thicket. They then walked round, and found no marks of the animal
  • having left his lair.
  • "He is here," whispered Edward; and Oswald made a sign for Edward to
  • enter the thicket, while he walked to the other side. Edward entered
  • the thicket cautiously. In the center he perceived, through the trees,
  • a small cleared spot, covered with high fern, and felt certain that the
  • stag was lying there. He forced his way on his knees till he had a
  • better view of the place, and then cocked his gun. The noise induced
  • the stag to move his antlers, and discover his lair. Edward could just
  • perceive the eye of the animal through the heath; he waited till the
  • beast settled again, took steady aim, and fired. At the report of the
  • gun another stag sprung up and burst away. Oswald fired and wounded it,
  • but the animal made off, followed by the dogs. Edward, who hardly knew
  • whether he had missed or not, but felt almost certain that he had not,
  • hastened out of the thicket to join in the chase; and, as he passed
  • through the fern patch, perceived that his quarry lay dead. He then
  • followed the chase, and, being very fleet of foot, soon came up with
  • Oswald, and passed him without speaking. The stag made for a swampy
  • ground, and finally took to the water beyond it, and stood at bay.
  • Edward then waited for Oswald, who came up with him.
  • "He has soiled," said Edward, "and now you may go in and kill him."
  • Oswald, eager in the chase, hastened up to where the dogs and stag were
  • in the water, and put a bullet through the animal's head.
  • Edward went to him, assisted him to drag the stag out of the water, and
  • then Oswald cut its throat, and proceeded to perform the usual offices.
  • "How did you happen to miss him?" said Oswald; "for these are my shots."
  • "Because I never fired at him," said Edward; "my quarry lies dead in
  • the fern--and a fine fellow he is."
  • "This is a warrantable stag," said Oswald.
  • "Yes, but mine is a hart royal, as you will see when we go back."
  • As soon as Oswald had done his work, he hung the quarters of the animal
  • on an oak-tree, and went back with Edward.
  • "Where did you hit him, Edward?" said Oswald, as they walked along.
  • "I could only see his eye through the fern, and I must have hit him
  • thereabouts."
  • On their arrival at the spot, Oswald found that Edward had put the ball
  • right into the eye of the stag.
  • "Well," said he, "you made me suppose that you knew something of our
  • craft, but I did not believe that you were so apt as you thought
  • yourself to be. I now confess that you are a master, as far as I can
  • see, in all branches of the craft. This is indeed a hart royal.
  • Twenty-five antlers, as I live! Come, out with your knife, and let us
  • finish; for if we are to go to the cottage, we have no time to lose. It
  • will be dark in half an hour." They hung all the quarters of the stag
  • as before, and then set off for Jacob's cottage, Edward proposing that
  • Oswald should take the cart and pony to carry the meat home next
  • morning, and that he would accompany him to bring it back.
  • "That will do capitally," said Oswald; "and here we are, if I recollect
  • right, and I hope there is something to eat."
  • "No fear of that--Alice will be prepared for us," replied Edward.
  • Their dinner was ready for them, and Oswald praised the cooking. He was
  • much surprised to see that Jacob had four grandchildren. After dinner,
  • he went into Jacob's room, and remained with him more than an hour.
  • During this conference, Jacob confided to Oswald that the four children
  • were the sons and daughters of Colonel Beverley, supposed to have been
  • burned in the firing of Arnwood. Oswald came out, much surprised as
  • well as pleased with the information, and with the confidence reposed
  • in him. He saluted Edward and Humphrey respectfully, and said, "I was
  • not aware with whom I was in company, sir, as you may well imagine; but
  • the knowledge of it has made my heart glad."
  • "Nay, Oswald," replied Edward, "remember that I am still Edward
  • Armitage, and that we are the grandchildren of old Jacob."
  • "Certainly, sir, I will, for your own sake, not forget that such is to
  • be supposed to be the case. I assure you, I think it very fortunate
  • that Jacob has confided the secret to me, as it may be in my power to
  • be useful. I little thought that I should ever have had my dinner
  • cooked by the daughter of Colonel Beverley."
  • They then entered into a long conversation, during which Oswald
  • expressed his opinion that the old man was sinking fast, and would not
  • last more than three or four days. Oswald had a bed made up for him on
  • the floor of the room where Edward and Humphrey slept; and the next
  • morning they set off, at an early hour, with the pony and cart, loaded
  • it with venison, and took it across the forest to the keeper's lodge.
  • It was so late when they arrived, that Edward consented to pass the
  • night there, and return home on the following morning. Oswald went into
  • the sitting-room to speak with the intendant of the forest, leaving
  • Edward in the kitchen with Phoebe, the maid-servant. He told the
  • intendant that he had brought home some fine venison, and wished his
  • orders about it. He also stated that he had been assisted by Edward
  • Armitage, who had brought the venison home for him in his cart, and who
  • was now in the kitchen, as he would be obliged to pass the night there;
  • and, on being questioned, he was lavish in his praises of Edward's
  • skill and knowledge of woodcraft, which he declared to be superior to
  • his own.
  • "It proves that the young man has had much practice, at all events,"
  • replied Mr. Heatherstone, smiling. "He has been living at the king's
  • expense, but he must not follow it up at the cost of the Parliament. It
  • would be well to take this young man as a ranger if we could; for
  • although he is opposed to us, yet, if he once took our service, he
  • would be faithful, I am sure. You can propose it to him, Oswald. The
  • hunches of that hart royal must be sent up to General Cromwell
  • to-morrow: the remainder we will give directions for, as soon as I have
  • made up my mind how to dispose of it."
  • Oswald left the room, and came back to Edward. "General Cromwell is to
  • have the hunches of your stag," said he to Edward, smiling: "and the
  • intendant proposes that you should take service as one of the rangers."
  • "I thank you," replied Edward, "but I've no fancy to find venison for
  • General Cromwell and his Roundheads; and so, you may tell the
  • intendant, with many thanks for his good-will toward me, nevertheless."
  • "I thought as much, but the man meant kindly, that I really think. Now,
  • Phoebe, what can you give us to eat, for we are hungry?"
  • "You shall be served directly," replied Phoebe. "I have some steaks on
  • the fire."
  • "And you must find a bed for my young friend here."
  • "I have none in the house, but there is plenty of good straw over the
  • stables."
  • "That will do," replied Edward; "I'm not particular."
  • "I suppose not. Why should you be?" replied Phoebe, who was rather old
  • and rather cross. "If you mount the ladder that you will see against
  • the wall, you will find a good bed when you are at the top of it."
  • Oswald was about to remonstrate, but Edward held up his finger and no
  • more was said.
  • As soon as they had finished their supper, Phoebe proposed that they
  • should go to bed. It was late, and she would sit up no longer. Edward
  • rose and went out, followed by Oswald, who had given up the keeper's
  • house to the intendant and his daughter, and slept in the cottage of
  • one of the rangers, about a quarter of a mile off. After some
  • conversation, they shook hands and parted, as Edward intended returning
  • very early the next morning, being anxious about old Jacob.
  • Edward went up the ladder into the loft. There was no door to shut out
  • the wind, which blew piercingly cold and after a time he found himself
  • so chilled that he could not sleep. He rose to see if he could not find
  • some protection from the wind by getting more into a corner; for
  • although Phoebe had told him that there was plenty of straw, it proved
  • that there was very little indeed in the loft, barely enough to lie
  • down upon. Edward, after a time, descended the ladder to walk in the
  • yard, that by exercise he might recover the use of his limbs. At last,
  • turning to and fro, he cast his eyes up to the window of the bedroom
  • above the kitchen, where he perceived a light was still burning. He
  • thought it was Phoebe, the maid, going to bed; and with no very
  • gracious feelings toward her for having deprived him of his own night's
  • rest, he was wishing that she might have the toothache or something
  • else to keep her awake, when suddenly through the white window curtain
  • he perceived a broad light in the room--it increased every moment--and
  • he saw the figure of a female rush past it, and attempt to open the
  • window--the drawing of the curtains showed him that the room was on
  • fire. A moment's thought, and he ran for the ladder by which he had
  • ascended to the loft, and placed it against the window. The flames were
  • less bright, and he could not see the female who had been at the window
  • when lie went for the ladder. He ascended quickly, and burst open the
  • casement--the smoke poured out in such volumes that it neatly
  • suffocated him, but he went in; and as soon as he was inside, he
  • stumbled against the body of the person who had attempted to open the
  • window, but who had fallen down senseless. As he raised the body, the
  • fire, which had been smothered from want of air when all the windows
  • and doors were closed, now burst out, and he was scorched before he
  • could get on the ladder again, with the body in his arms; but he
  • succeeded in getting it down safe. Perceiving that the clothes were on
  • fire, he held them till they were extinguished, and then for the first
  • time discovered that he had brought down the daughter of the intendant
  • of the forest. There was no time to be lost, so Edward carried her into
  • the stable and left her there, still insensible, upon the straw, in a
  • spare stall, while he hastened to alarm the house. The watering-butt
  • for the horses was outside the stable; Edward caught up the pail,
  • filled it, and hastening up the ladder, threw it into the room, and
  • then descended for more.
  • By this time Edward's continual calls of "Fire! fire!" had aroused the
  • people of the house, and also of the cottages adjacent. Mr.
  • Heatherstone came out half dressed, and with horror on his countenance.
  • Phoebe followed screaming, and the other people now hastened from the
  • cottages.
  • "Save her! my daughter is in the room!" exclaimed Mr. Heatherstone.
  • "Oh, save her, or let me do so!" cried the poor man, in agony; but the
  • fire burst out of the window in such force, that any attempt would have
  • been in vain.
  • "Oswald," cried Edward to him, "let the people pass the water up to me
  • as fast as possible. They can do no good looking on."
  • Oswald set the men to work, and Edward was now supplied with water so
  • fast that the fire began to diminish. The window was now approachable,
  • and a few more buckets enabled him to put one foot into the room, and
  • then every moment the flames and smoke decreased.
  • Meanwhile it would be impossible to describe the agony of the
  • intendant, who would have rushed up the ladder into the flames, had he
  • not been held by some of the men. "My daughter! my
  • child!--burned--burned to death!" exclaimed he, clasping his hands.
  • At that moment a voice in the crowd called out, "There were four burned
  • at Arnwood!"
  • "God of Heaven!" exclaimed Mr. Heatherstone, falling down in a swoon,
  • in which state he was carried to a neighboring cottage.
  • Meanwhile the supply of water enabled Edward to put out the fire
  • altogether: the furniture of the room was burned, but the fire had
  • extended no farther; and when Edward was satisfied that there was no
  • more danger, he descended the ladder, and left it to others to see that
  • all was safe. He then called Oswald to him, and desired that he would
  • accompany him to the stable.
  • "Oh, sir," replied Oswald, "this is dreadful! and such a sweet young
  • lady too."
  • "She is safe and well," replied Edward, "I think so, at least. I
  • brought her down the ladder, and put her in the stable before I
  • attempted to put out the fire. See, there she is; she has not recovered
  • yet from her swoon. Bring some water. She breathes! thank God! There,
  • that will do, Oswald, she is recovering. Now let us cover her up in
  • your cloak, and carry her to your cottage. We will recover her there."
  • Oswald folded up the still unconscious girl in his cloak, and earned
  • her away in his arms, followed by Edward.
  • As soon as they arrived at the cottage, the inmates of which were all
  • busy at the keeper's lodge, they put her on a bed, and very soon
  • restored her to consciousness.
  • "Where is my father?" cried Patience, as soon as she was sufficiently
  • recovered.
  • "He is safe and well, miss," replied Oswald.
  • "Is the house burned down?"
  • "No. The fire is all out again."
  • "Who saved me? tell me."
  • "Young Armitage, miss."
  • "Who is he? oh, I recollect now; but I must go to my father. Where is
  • he?"
  • "In the other cottage, miss."
  • Patience attempted to stand, but found that she was too much exhausted,
  • and she fell back again on the bed. "I can't stand," said she. "Bring
  • my father to me."
  • "I will, miss," replied Oswald. "Will you stay here, Edward?"
  • "Yes," replied Edward. He went out of the cottage door, and remained
  • there while Oswald went to Mr. Heatherstone.
  • Oswald found him sensible, but in deep distress, as may be imagined.
  • "The fire is all out, sir," said Oswald.
  • "I care not for that. My poor, poor child!"
  • "Your child is safe, sir," replied Oswald.
  • "Safe, did you say?" cried Mr. Heatherstone, starting up. "Safe!
  • where'?"
  • "In my cottage. She has sent me for you."
  • Mr. Heatherstone rushed out, passed by Edward, who was standing at the
  • door of the other cottage, and was in his daughter's arms. Oswald came
  • out to Edward, who then detailed to him the way in which he had saved
  • the girl.
  • "Had it not been for the ill-nature of that woman Phoebe, in sending me
  • to sleep where there was no straw, they would all have been burned,"
  • observed Edward.
  • "She gave you an opportunity of rewarding good for evil," observed
  • Oswald.
  • "Yes, but I am burned very much in my arm," said Edward. "Have you any
  • thing that will be good for it?"
  • "Yes, I think I have: wait a moment."
  • Oswald went into the cottage and returned with some salve, with which
  • he dressed Edward's arm, which proved to be very severely burned.
  • "How grateful the intendant ought to be--and will be, I have no doubt!"
  • observed Oswald.
  • "And for that very reason I shall saddle my pony and ride home as fast
  • as I can; and, do you hear, Oswald, do not show him where I live."
  • "I hardly know how I can refuse him, if he requires it."
  • "But you must not. He will be offering me a situation in the forest, by
  • way of showing his gratitude, and I will accept of none. I have no
  • objection to save his daughter, as I would save the daughter of my
  • worst enemy, or my worst enemy himself, from such a dreadful death; but
  • I do not want their thanks or offers of service. I will accept nothing
  • from a Roundhead; and as for the venison in the forest, it belongs to
  • the king, and I shall help myself whenever I think proper. Good-by,
  • Oswald, you will call and see us when you have time?"
  • "I will be with you before the week is out, depend upon it," replied
  • Oswald.
  • Edward then asked Oswald to saddle his pony for him, as his arm
  • prevented him from doing it himself, and, as soon as it was done, he
  • rode away from the cottage.
  • Edward rode fast, for he was anxious to get home and ascertain the
  • state of poor old Jacob; and, moreover, his burned arm was very
  • painful. He was met by Humphrey about a mile from the cottage, who told
  • him that he did not think that the old man could last many hours, and
  • that he was very anxious to see him. As the pony was quite tired with
  • the fast pace that Edward had ridden, Edward pulled up to a walk, and
  • as they went along acquainted Humphrey with what had passed.
  • "Is your arm very painful?"
  • "Yes, it is, indeed," replied Edward; "but it can't be helped."
  • "No, of course not, but it may be made more easy. I know what will do
  • it some good; for I recollect, when Benjamin burned his hand at
  • Arnwood, what they applied to it, and it gave him great relief."
  • "Yes, very likely; but I am not aware that we have any drugs or
  • medicine in the cottage. But here we are: will you take Billy to the
  • stable, while I go on to old Jacob?
  • "Thank God that you are come, Edward," said the old forester, "for I
  • was anxious to see you before I die; and something tells me that I have
  • but a short time to remain here."
  • "Why should you say so! Do you feel very ill?"
  • "No, not ill; but I feel that I am sinking fast. Recollect that I am an
  • old man, Edward."
  • "Not so very old, Jacob; Oswald said that you were not more than sixty
  • years old."
  • "Oswald knows nothing about it. I am past seventy-six, Edward; and you
  • know, Edward, the Bible says that the days of man are threescore years
  • and ten; so that I am beyond the mark. And now, Edward, I have but few
  • words to say. Be careful--if not for your own sake, at least for your
  • little sisters'. You are young, but you are strong and powerful above
  • your years, and can better protect them than I could. I see darker days
  • yet coming--but it is His will, and who shall doubt that that is right?
  • I pray you not to make your birth and lineage known as yet--it can do
  • no good, and it may do harm--and if you can be persuaded to live in the
  • cottage, and to live on the farm, which will now support you all, it
  • will be better. Do not get into trouble about the venison, which they
  • now claim as their own. You will find some money in the bag in my
  • chest, sufficient to buy all you want for a long while--but take care
  • of it; for there is no saying but you may require it. And now, Edward,
  • call your brother and sisters to me, that I may bid them farewell. I
  • am, as we all are, sinful, but I trust in the mercy of God through
  • Jesus Christ. Edward, I have done my duty toward you, as well as I have
  • been able; but promise me one thing--that you will read the Bible and
  • prayers every morning and evening, as I have always done, after I am
  • gone; promise me that, Edward."
  • "I promise you that it shall be done, Jacob," replied Edward, "and I
  • will not forget your other advice."
  • "God bless you, Edward. Now call the children."
  • Edward summoned his sisters and Humphrey.
  • "Humphrey, my good boy," said Jacob, "recollect, that in the midst of
  • life we are in death; and that there is no security for young or old.
  • You or your brother may be cut off in your youth; one may be taken, and
  • the other left. Recollect, your sisters depend upon you, and do not
  • therefore be rash: I fear that you will run too much risk after the
  • wild cattle, for you are always scheming after taking them. Be careful,
  • Humphrey, for you can ill be spared. Hold to the farm as it now is: it
  • will support you all. My dear Alice and Edith, I am dying; very soon I
  • shall be laid by your brothers in my grave. Be good children, and look
  • up to your brothers for every thing. And now kiss me, Alice; you have
  • been a great comfort to me, for you have read the Bible to me when I
  • could no longer read myself. May your death-bed be as well attended as
  • mine has been, and may you live happily, and die the death of a
  • Christian! Good-by, and may God bless you. Bless you, Edith; may you
  • grow up as good and as innocent as you are now. Farewell,
  • Humphrey--farewell, Edward--my eyes are dim--pray for me, children. O
  • God of mercy, pardon my many sins, and receive my soul, through Jesus
  • Christ. Amen, Amen."
  • These were the last words spoken by the old forester. The children, who
  • were kneeling by the side of the bed, praying as he had requested, when
  • they rose up, found that he was dead. They all wept bitterly, for they
  • dearly loved the good old man. Alice remained sobbing in Edward's arms,
  • and Edith in Humphrey's, and it was long before the brothers could
  • console them. Humphrey at last said to Alice, "You hurt poor Edward's
  • arm--you don't know how painful it is! Come, dears, let us go into the
  • other room, and get something to take the pain away."
  • These requests diverted the attention, at the same time that it roused
  • fresh sympathy in the little girls--they all went into the
  • sitting-room. Humphrey gave his sisters some potatoes to scrape upon a
  • piece of linen, while he took off Edward's coat, and turned up his
  • shirt sleeves. The scraped potatoes were then laid on the burn, and
  • Edward said they gave him great relief. Some more were then scraped by
  • the little girls, who could not, however, repress their occasional
  • sobs. Humphrey then told them that Edward had had nothing to eat, and
  • that they must get him some supper. This again occupied them for some
  • time; and when the supper was ready, they all sat down to it. They went
  • to bed early, but not before Edward had read a chapter out of the
  • Bible, and the prayers, as old Jacob had always done; and this again
  • caused their tears to flow afresh.
  • "Come, Alice, dear, you and Edith must go to bed," said Humphrey.
  • The little girls threw themselves into their brothers' arms; and having
  • wept for some time, Alice raised herself, and taking Edith by the hand,
  • led her away to her bedroom.
  • CHAPTER X.
  • "Humphrey," said Edward, "the sooner all this is over the better. As
  • long as poor Jacob's body remains in the cottage there will be nothing
  • but distress with the poor girls."
  • "I agree with you," replied Humphrey; "where shall we bury him?"
  • "Under the great oak-tree, at the back of the cottage," replied Edward.
  • "One day the old man said to me, that he should like to be buried under
  • one of the oaks of the forest."
  • "Well then, I will go and dig his grave to-night," replied Humphrey;
  • "the moon is bright, and I shall have it finished before morning."
  • "I am sorry that I can not help you, Humphrey."
  • "I am sorry that you are hurt; but I want no help, Edward. If you will
  • lie down a little, perhaps you will be able to sleep. Let us change the
  • potato poultice before you go on."
  • Humphrey put the fresh dressing on Edward's arm; and Edward, who was
  • very much exhausted, lay down in his clothes on the bed. Humphrey went
  • out, and having found his tools, set to his task--he worked hard, and,
  • before morning, had finished. He then went in, and took his place on
  • the bed, by the side of Edward, who was in a sound sleep. At daylight
  • Humphrey rose, and waked Edward. "All is ready, Edward; but I fear you
  • must help me to put poor Jacob in the cart: do you think you can?"
  • "Oh, yes; my arm is much easier, and I feel very different from what I
  • did last night. If you will go and get the cart, I will see what I can
  • do in the mean time."
  • When Humphrey returned, he found Edward had selected a sheet to wind
  • the body in, but could not do more till Humphrey came to help him. They
  • then wrapped it round the body, and carried it out of the cottage, and
  • put it into the cart.
  • "Now, Edward, shall we call our sisters?"
  • "No, not yet; let us have the body laid in the grave first, and then we
  • will call them."
  • They dragged the body on the cart to the grave, and laid it in it, and
  • then returned back and put the pony in the stable again.
  • "Are there not prayers proper for reading over the dead?" said Humphrey.
  • "I believe that there are, but they are not in the Bible, so we must
  • read some portion of the Bible," said Edward.
  • "Yes, I think there is one of the Psalms which it would be right to
  • read, Edward," said Humphrey, turning over the leaves; "here it is, the
  • ninetieth, in which you recollect it says, 'that the days of man are
  • threescore years and ten.'"
  • "Yes," replied Edward, "and we will read this one also, the 146th."
  • "Are our sisters risen, do you think?"
  • "I am sure that they are," replied Humphrey, "and I will go to them."
  • Humphrey went to the door, and said, "Alice--Alice and Edith--come out
  • immediately." They were both ready dressed.
  • Edward took the Bible under his arm, and Alice by the hand. Humphrey
  • led Edith until they arrived at the grave, when the two little girls
  • saw the covered body of Jacob lying in it.
  • "Kneel down," said Edward, opening the Bible. And they all knelt down
  • by the grave. Edward read the two Psalms, and then closed the book. The
  • little girls took one last look at the body, and then turned away
  • weeping to the cottage. Edward and Humphrey filled up the grave, and
  • then followed their sisters home.
  • "I'm glad it's over," said Humphrey, wiping his eyes. "Poor old Jacob!
  • I'll put a paling round his grave."
  • "Come in, Humphrey," said Edward.
  • Edward sat down upon old Jacob's chair, and took Alice and Edith to
  • him. Putting his arm round each, he said--
  • "Alice and Edith, my dear little sisters, we have lost a good friend,
  • and one to whose memory we can not be too grateful. He saved us from
  • perishing in the flames which burned down our father's house, and has
  • protected us here ever since. He is gone, for it has pleased God to
  • summon him to him, and we must bow to the will of Heaven; and here we
  • are, brother and sisters, orphans, and with no one to look to for
  • protection but Heaven. Here we are away from the rest of the world,
  • living for one another. What, then, must we do? We must love one
  • another dearly, and help one another. I will do my part, if my life is
  • spared, and so will Humphrey, and so will you my dear sisters. I can
  • answer for all. Now it is no use to lament--we must all work, and work
  • cheerfully; and we will pray every morning and every night that God
  • will bless our endeavors and enable us to provide for ourselves, and
  • live here in peace and safety. Kiss me, dear Alice and Edith, and kiss
  • Humphrey, and kiss one another. Let these kisses be the seals to our
  • bond; and let us put our trust in Him who only is a father to the widow
  • and the orphan. And now let us pray."
  • Edward and the children repeated the Lord's Prayer, and then rose up.
  • They went to their respective employments, and the labor of the day
  • soon made them composed, although then, for many days afterward, it was
  • but occasionally that a smile was seen upon their lips.
  • Thus passed a week, by which time Edward's arm was so far well that it
  • gave him no pain, and he was able to assist Humphrey in the work on the
  • farm. The snow had disappeared, and the spring, although it had been
  • checked for a time, now made rapid advances. Constant occupation, and
  • the return of fine weather, both had the effect of returning the
  • serenity of their minds; and while Humphrey was preparing the paling to
  • fix round the grave of old Jacob, Alice and Edith collected the wild
  • violets which now peeped forth on sheltered spots, and planted the
  • roots over the grave. Edward also procured all the early flowers he
  • could collect, and assisted his sisters in their task; and thus, in
  • planting it, and putting up the paling, the grave of the old man became
  • the constant work-ground; and when their labor was done, they would
  • still remain there and talk over his worth. The Sunday following the
  • burial, the weather being fine and warm, Edward proposed that they
  • should read the usual service, which had been selected by old Jacob, at
  • the grave, and not in the cottage, as formerly; and this they continued
  • afterward to do, whenever the weather would permit: thus did old
  • Jacob's resting-place become their church, and overpower them with
  • those feelings of love and devotion which gave efficacy to prayer. As
  • soon as the paling was finished, Humphrey put up a board against the
  • oak-tree, with the simple words carved on it, "Jacob Armitage."
  • Edward had, every day, expected that Oswald Partridge would have called
  • upon him, as he had promised to do, before the week was out; but Oswald
  • had not made his appearance, much to Edward's surprise. A month passed
  • away; Edward's arm was now quite well, and still Oswald came not. One
  • morning, Humphrey and Edward were conversing upon many points--the
  • principal of which was upon Edward going to Lymington, for they were
  • now in want of flour and meal, when Edward thought of what old Jacob
  • had told him relative to the money that he would find in his chest. He
  • went into Jacob's room and opened the chest, at the bottom of which,
  • under the clothes, he found a leather bag, which he brought out to
  • Humphrey; on opening it, they were much surprised to find in it more
  • than sixty gold pieces, besides a great deal of silver coin.
  • "Surely this is a great sum of money," observed Humphrey. "I don't know
  • what is the price of things; but it appears to me, that it ought to
  • last us a long while."
  • "I think so too," replied Edward. "I wish Oswald Partridge would come,
  • for I want to ask him many questions. I don't know the price of flour,
  • or anything else we have to purchase, nor do I know what I ought to be
  • paid for venison. I don't like to go to Lymington till I see him for
  • that reason. If he does not come soon, I shall ride over and see what
  • is the matter."
  • Edward then replaced the money in the chest, and he and Humphrey then
  • went out to the farmyard to go on with their work.
  • It was not until six weeks after the death of old Jacob that Oswald
  • Partridge made his appearance.
  • "How is the old man, sir?" was his first question.
  • "He was buried a few days after you left," replied Edward.
  • "I expected as much," said the forester. "Peace be with him--he was a
  • good man. And how is your arm?"
  • "Nearly well," replied Edward. "Now sit down, Oswald, for I have a
  • great deal to say to you; and first, let me ask you what has detained
  • you from coming here according to your promise?"
  • "Simply, and in few words--murder."
  • "Murder!" exclaimed Edward.
  • "Yes, deliberate murder, sir; in short, they have beheaded King
  • Charles, our sovereign."
  • "Have they dared to do it?"
  • "They have," replied Oswald. "We in the forest know little that is
  • going on; but when I saw you last, I heard that he was then in London,
  • and was to be tried."
  • "Tried!" exclaimed Edward. "How could they try a king? by the laws of
  • our country, a man must be tried by his equals; and where were his
  • equals?"
  • "Majesty becomes naught, I suppose," replied Oswald; "but still it is
  • as I say. Two days after you left, the intendant hastened up to London,
  • and, from what I have understood, he was strongly opposed to the deed,
  • and did all he could to prevent it; but it was of no use. When he left,
  • he gave me strict injunctions not to go away from the cottage for an
  • hour, as his daughter was left alone; and as I promised, I could not
  • come to you; but, nevertheless, Patience received letters from him, and
  • told me what I tell you."
  • "You have not dined, Oswald?" said Edward.
  • "No, that I have not."
  • "Alice, dear, get some dinner, will you? And Oswald, while you dine,
  • excuse me if I leave you for a while. Your intelligence has so
  • astounded me that I can listen to nothing else till I have had a little
  • while to commune with myself and subdue my feelings."
  • Edward was indeed in a state of mind which required calming down. He
  • quitted the cottage and walked out for some distance into the forest,
  • in deep thought.
  • "Murdered at last!" exclaimed he. "Yes, well may it be called murder,
  • and no one to save him--not a blow struck in his defense--not an arm
  • raised. How much gallant blood has been shed in vain! Spirit of my
  • fathers, didst thou leave none of thy mettle and thy honour behind
  • thee; or has all England become craven? Well, the time will come, and
  • if I can no longer hope to fight for my king, at all events I can fight
  • against those who have murdered him."
  • Such were Edward's thoughts as he wandered through the forest, and more
  • than an hour elapsed before his impetuous blood could return to its
  • usual flow; at last, his mind having partially resumed its wonted
  • calmness, he returned to the cottage and listened to the details which
  • Oswald now gave to him of what he had heard.
  • When Oswald had finished, Edward asked him whether the intendant had
  • returned.
  • "Yes, or I should not have been here," replied Oswald. "He came back
  • yesterday, looking most disconsolate and grave, and I hear that he
  • returns to London in a few days. Indeed, he told me so himself, for I
  • requested permission to come over to see your grandfather. He said that
  • I might go, but must return soon, as he must go back to London. I
  • believe, from what Miss Patience told me, and what I have seen myself,
  • that he is sincerely amazed and vexed at what has taken place; and so,
  • indeed, are many more, who, although opposed to the king's method of
  • government, never had an idea that things should have turned out as
  • they have done. I have a message from him to you, which is, that he
  • begs you will come to see him, that he may thank you for the
  • preservation of his child."
  • "I will take his thanks from you, Oswald: that will do as well as if he
  • gave them me in person."
  • "Yes, perhaps so; but I have another message from another party, which
  • is--the young lady herself. She desires me to tell you that she will
  • never be happy till she has seen you, and thanked you for your courage
  • and kindness; and that you have no right to put her under such an
  • obligation, and not give her an opportunity of expressing what she
  • feels. Now, Mr. Edward, I am certain that she is earnest in what she
  • says, and she made me promise that I would persuade you to come. I
  • could not refuse her, for she is a dear little creature; as her father
  • will go to London in a few days, you may ride over and see her without
  • any fear of being affronted by any offers which he may make to you."
  • "Well," replied Edward, "I have no great objection to see her again,
  • for she was very kind to me; and as you say that the intendant will not
  • be there, I perhaps may come. But now I must talk to you about other
  • matters."
  • Edward then put many questions to Oswald relative to the value of
  • various articles, and to the best method of disposing of his venison.
  • Oswald answered all his questions, and Edward took down notes and
  • directions on paper.
  • Oswald remained with them for two days, and then bade them farewell,
  • exacting a promise from Edward that he would come to the ranger's
  • cottage as soon as he could. "Should the intendant come back before he
  • is expected I will come over and let you know; but I think, from what I
  • heard him say he expected to be at least a month in London."
  • Edward promised that Oswald should see him in less than ten days, and
  • Oswald set out on his journey.
  • "Humphrey," said Edward, as soon as Oswald was gone, "I have made up my
  • mind to go to Lymington to-morrow We must have some flour, and many
  • other articles, which Alice says she can no longer do without."
  • "Why should we not both go, Edward?" replied Humphrey.
  • "No, not this time," replied Edward. "I have to find out many things
  • and many people, and I had rather go by myself; besides, I can not
  • allow my sisters to be left alone. I do not consider there is any
  • danger, I admit; but should any thing happen to them, I should never
  • forgive myself. Still, it is necessary that you should go to Lymington
  • with me some time or another, that you may know where to purchase and
  • sell, if required. What I propose is, that I will ask Oswald to come
  • and stay here a couple of days. We will then leave him in charge of our
  • sisters, and go to Lymington together."
  • "You are right, Edward, that will be the best plan."
  • As Humphrey made this remark, Oswald re-entered the cottage.
  • "I will tell you why I have returned, Mr. Edward," said Oswald. "It is
  • of no consequence whether I return now or to-morrow. It is now early,
  • and as you intend going to Lymington, it occurred to me that I had
  • better go with you. I can then show you all you want, which will be
  • much better than going by yourself."
  • "Thank you, Oswald, I am much obliged to you," said Edward.
  • "Humphrey, we will get the cart out immediately, or we shall be late.
  • Will you get it, Humphrey, for I must go for some money, and speak to
  • Alice."
  • Humphrey went immediately to put the pony in the cart, when Edward said,
  • "Oswald, you must not call me Mr. Edward, even when we are alone: if
  • you do you will be calling me so before other people, and, therefore,
  • recollect in future, it must be plain Edward."
  • "Since you wish it, certainly," replied Oswald; "indeed it would be
  • better, for a slip of the tongue before other people might create
  • suspicion."
  • The pony and cart were soon at the door, and Edward having received
  • further instructions from Alice, set off for Lymington, accompanied by
  • Oswald.
  • CHAPTER XI.
  • "Would you have found your way to Lymington?" said Oswald, as the pony
  • trotted along.
  • "Yes; I think so," replied Edward; "but I must have first gone to
  • Arnwood. Indeed, had I been alone I should have done so; but we have
  • made a much shorter cut."
  • "I did not think that you would have liked to have seen the ruins of
  • Arnwood," replied Oswald.
  • "Not a day passes without my thinking of them," replied Edward. "I
  • should like to see them. I should like to see if any one has taken
  • possession of the property, for they say it is confiscated."
  • "I heard that it was to be, but not that it was yet," said Oswald; "but
  • we shall know more when we get to Lymington. I have not seen it for
  • more than a year. I hardly think that any one will recognize you."
  • "I should think not; but I care little if they do. Indeed, who is thee
  • to know me?"
  • "Well, my introduction of you will save some surmises, probably; and I
  • shall not take you among those who may be inclined to ask questions.
  • See, there is the steeple; we have not more than a quarter of an hour's
  • drive."
  • As soon as they arrived at Lymington, Oswald directed the way to a
  • small hostelry to which the keepers and verderers usually resorted. In
  • fact, the landlord was the party who took all the venison off their
  • hands, and disposed of it. They drove into the yard, and, giving the
  • pony and cart in charge of the hostler, went into the inn, where they
  • found the landlord, and one or two other people, who were drinking.
  • "Well, Master Andrew, how fare you?" said Oswald.
  • "Let me see," said the corpulent landlord, throwing back his head, and
  • putting out his stomach, as he peered at Oswald. "Why, Oswald
  • Partridge, as I am a born man. Where have you been this many a day!"
  • "In the forest, Master Andrew, where there are no few chops and
  • changes."
  • "Yes, you have a sort of Parliamentary keeper, I'm told; and who is
  • this with you?"
  • "The grandson of an old friend of yours, now dead, poor old Jacob
  • Armitage."
  • "Jacob dead, poor fellow! As true as flint was Jacob Armitage, as I'm a
  • born man! And so he is dead! Well, we all owe Heaven a death. Foresters
  • and landlords, as well as kings, all must die!"
  • "I have brought Edward Armitage over here to introduce him to you,
  • Master Andrew. Now that the old man is dead, you must look to him for
  • forest meat."
  • "Oh, well, well, it is scarce now. I have not had any for some time.
  • Old Jacob brought me the last. You are not one of the Parliamentary
  • foresters, then, I presume?" continued the landlord, turning to Edward.
  • "No," replied Edward, "I kill no venison for Roundheads."
  • "Right, my sapling; right and well said. The Armitages were all good
  • men and true, and followed the fortunes of the Beverleys; but there are
  • no Beverleys to follow now. Cut off--root and branch--more's the pity.
  • That was a sad business. But come in; we must not talk here, for walls
  • have ears, they say, and one never knows who one dares to speak before
  • now."
  • Oswald and Edward then entered with the landlord, and arrangements were
  • made between Master Andrew and the latter for a regular supply of
  • venison during the season, at a certain price; but as it would now be
  • dangerous to bring it into the town, it was agreed that when there was
  • any ready, Edward should come to Lymington and give notice, and the
  • landlord would send out people to bring it in during the night. This
  • bargain concluded, they took a glass with the landlord, and then went
  • into the town to make the necessary purchases. Oswald took Edward to
  • all the shops where the articles he required were to be purchased; some
  • they carried away with them; others, which were too heavy, they left,
  • to be called for with the cart as they went away. Among other articles,
  • Edward required powder and lead, and they went to a gunsmith's where it
  • was to be procured. While making his purchases, Edward perceived a
  • sword, which he thought he had seen before, hanging up against the wall
  • among other weapons.
  • "What sword is that?" said he, to the man who was measuring out the
  • powder.
  • "It's not my sword, exactly," replied the man; "and yet I can not
  • return it to its owner or to the family. It was brought me to be
  • cleaned by one of Colonel Beverley's people, and before it was called
  • for the house was burned, and every soul perished. It was one of the
  • colonel's swords, I am sure, as there is E. B. on a silver plate
  • engraved on it. I have a bill owing me for work done at Arnwood, and I
  • have no chance of its being paid now; so, whether I am to sell the
  • sword, or what to do, I hardly know."
  • Edward remained silent for some little while, for he could not trust
  • himself to speak; at last he replied: "To be candid with you, I am, and
  • all my family have been, followers of the Beverley family, and I should
  • be sorry if the colonel's sword was to fall into any other hands. I
  • think, therefore, if I pay the bill which is due, you may safely let me
  • hold the sword as a security for the money, with the express
  • understanding that if it is ever claimed by the Beverley family I am to
  • give it up."
  • "Certainly," said Oswald; "nothing can be fairer or more clearly put."
  • "I think so, too, young man," replied the shopkeeper. "Of course you
  • will leave your name and address?"
  • "Yes; and my friend here will vouch for its being correct," replied
  • Edward.
  • The shopkeeper then produced the account, which Edward paid; and giving
  • on the paper the name of Edward Armitage, he took possession of the
  • sword. He then paid for the powder and lead, which Oswald took charge
  • of, and, hardly able to conceal his joy, hastened out of the shop.
  • "Oswald," cried Edward, "I would not part with it for thousands of
  • pounds. I never will part with it but with my life."
  • "I believe so," replied Oswald; "and I believe more, that it will never
  • be disgraced in your hands; but do not talk so loud, for there are
  • listeners and spies everywhere. Is there any thing else that you
  • require?"
  • "No, I think not; the fact is, that this sword has put every thing out
  • of my head. If there was anything else, I have forgotten it. Let us go
  • back to the inn, and we will harness the pony, and call for the flour
  • and oatmeal."
  • When they arrived at the inn, Oswald went out to the yard to get the
  • cart ready, while Edward went into the landlord's room to make
  • inquiries as to the quantity of venison he would be able to take off
  • his hands at a time. Oswald had taken the sword from Edward, and had
  • put it in the cart while he was fastening the harness, when a man came
  • up to the cart and looked earnestly at the sword. He then examined it,
  • and said to Oswald,
  • "Why that was Colonel Beverley's, my old master's sword. I knowed it
  • again directly. I took it to Phillips, the gun maker, to be cleaned."
  • "Indeed!" replied Oswald; "I pray, what may be your name?"
  • "Benjamin White," replied the man; "I served at Arnwood till the night
  • it was burned down; and I have been here ever since."
  • "And what are you doing now?"
  • "I'm tapster at the 'Commonwealth,' in Fish-street--not much of a
  • place."
  • "Well, well, you stand by the pony, and look that nobody takes any
  • thing out of the cart, while I go in for some parcels."
  • "Yes, to be sure I will; but, I say, forester, how came you by that
  • sword?'
  • "I will tell you when I come out again," replied Oswald.
  • Oswald then went in to Edward, and told him what had occurred.
  • "He will certainly know you, sir, and you must not come out till I can
  • get him away," said he.
  • "You are right, Oswald; but before he goes, ask him what became of my
  • aunt, and where she was buried; and also ask him where the other
  • servants are--perhaps they are at Lymington as well as he."
  • "I will find it all out," replied Oswald, who then left Edward, and
  • returned to the landlord and recommenced conversation.
  • Oswald on his return, told Benjamin in what manner the sword had been
  • procured from the shopman, by the grandson of old Armitage.
  • "I never knew that he had one," replied Benjamin; "nor did I know that
  • old Jacob was dead."
  • "What became of all the women who were at Arnwood?" inquired Oswald.
  • "Why, Agatha married one of the troopers, and went away to London."
  • "And the others?"
  • "Why, cook went home to her friends, who live about ten miles from
  • here, and I have never heard of her since."
  • "But there were three of them," said Oswald.
  • "Oh, yes; there was Phoebe," relied Benjamin, looking rather confused.
  • "She married a trooper--the jilt!--and went off to London when Agatha
  • did. If I'd have thought that she would have done so, I would not have
  • earned her away from Arnwood behind me, on a pillion, as I did; she
  • might have been burned with the poor children, for all as I cared."
  • "Was not the old lady killed?"
  • "Yes; that is to say, she killed herself, rather than not kill
  • Southwold."
  • "Where was she buried?"
  • "In the church-yard at St. Faith's, by the mayor and the corporation;
  • for there was not money enough found upon her person to pay the
  • expenses of her burial."
  • "And so you are tapster at the Commonwealth. Is it a good inn?"
  • "Can't say much for it. I shan't stay longer than I can help, I can
  • tell you."
  • "Well, but you must have an easy place, if you can stay away as long as
  • you do now."
  • "Won't I be mobbed when I go back! but that's always the case, make
  • haste or not, so it's all one. However, I do think I must be agoing
  • now, so good-by, Mr. Forester; and tell Jacob Armitage's grandson that
  • I shall be glad to see him, for old Jacob's sake; and it's hard, but
  • I'll find him something to drink when he calls."
  • "I will: I shall see him to-morrow." replied Oswald, getting into the
  • cart; "so good-by, Benjamin," much to the satisfaction of Oswald, who
  • thought that he would never go.
  • They went away at a rapid pace to make up for lost time, and soon
  • disappeared around the corner of the street. Oswald then got out again,
  • summoned Edward, and having called for the flour and other heavy
  • articles, they set off on their return.
  • During the drive, Oswald made known to Edward the information which he
  • had gained from Benjamin, and at a late hour they arrived safely at the
  • cottage.
  • They staid up but a short time, as they were tired; and Oswald had
  • resolved upon setting off before daylight on the following morning,
  • which he did without disturbing any one; for Humphrey was up and
  • dressed as soon as Oswald was and gave him something to eat as he went
  • along. All the others remained fast asleep. Humphrey walked about a
  • mile with Oswald, and was returning to the farm when he thought, as he
  • had not examined his pitfall for many days, that he might as well look
  • at it before he went back. He therefore struck out in the direction in
  • which it lay, and arrived there just as the day began to dawn.
  • It was the end of March, and the weather was mild for the season.
  • Humphrey arrived at the pit, and it was sufficiently light for him to
  • perceive that the covering had been broken in, and therefore, in all
  • probability, something must have been trapped. He sat down and waited
  • for daylight, but at times he thought he heard a heavy breathing, and
  • once a low groan. This made him more anxious, and he again and again
  • peered into the pit, but could not for a long while discover any thing,
  • until at last he thought that he could make out a human figure lying at
  • the bottom. Humphrey called out, asking if there was any one there. A
  • groan was the reply, and now Humphrey was horrified with the idea that
  • somebody had fallen into the pit, and had perished, or was perishing
  • for want of succor. Recollecting that the rough ladder which he had
  • made to take the soil up out of the pit was against an oak-tree, close
  • at hand, he ran for it, and put it down the pit, and then cautiously
  • descended. On his arrival at the bottom, his fears were found to be
  • verified, for he saw the body of a lad, half clothed, lying there. He
  • turned it up as it was lying with its face to the ground, and attempted
  • to remove it, and to ascertain if there was life in it, which he was
  • delighted to find was the case. The lad groaned several times, and
  • opened his eyes. Humphrey was afraid that he was not strong enough to
  • lift him on his shoulders and carry him up the ladder; but, on making
  • the attempt he found out, from exhaustion, the poor lad was light
  • enough for him to carry him, which he did, and safely landed him by the
  • side of the pit.
  • Recollecting that the watering-place of the herd of cattle was not far
  • off, Humphrey then hastened to it, and filled his hat half full of
  • water. The lad, although he could not speak, drank eagerly, and in a
  • few minutes appeared much recovered. Humphrey gave him some more, and
  • bathed his face and temples. The sun had now risen, and it was broad
  • daylight. The lad attempted to speak, but what he did say was in so low
  • a tone, and evidently in a foreign language, that Humphrey could not
  • make him out. He, therefore, made signs to the lad that he was going
  • away, and would be back soon; and having, as he thought, made the lad
  • comprehend this, Humphrey ran away to the cottage as fast as he could;
  • and as soon as he arrived he called for Edward, who came out, and when
  • Humphrey told him in few words what had happened, Edward went into the
  • cottage again for some milk and some cake, while Humphrey put the pony
  • into the cart.
  • In a few moments they were off again, and soon arrived at the pitfall,
  • where they found the lad, still lying where Humphrey had left him. They
  • soaked the cake in the milk, and as soon as it was soft gave him some;
  • after a time, he swallowed pretty freely, and was so much recovered as
  • to be able to sit up. They then lifted him into the cart, and drove
  • gently home to their cottage.
  • "What do you think he is, Edward?" said Humphrey.
  • "Some poor beggar lad, who has been crossing the forest."
  • "No, not exactly: he appears to me to be one of the Zingaros or
  • Gipsies, as they call them: he is very dark, and has black eyes and
  • white teeth, just like those I saw once near Arnwood, when I was out
  • with Jacob. Jacob said that no one knew where they came from, but that
  • they were all over the country, and that they were great thieves, and
  • told fortunes, and played all manner of tricks."
  • "Perhaps it may be so; I do not think that he can speak English."
  • "I am most thankful to Heaven that I chanced this morning to visit the
  • pitfall. Only suppose that I had found the poor boy starved and dead! I
  • should have been very unhappy, and never should have had any pleasure
  • in looking at the cows, as they would always have reminded me of such a
  • melancholy accident."
  • "Very true, Humphrey; but you have been saved that misfortune, and
  • ought to be grateful to Heaven that such is the case. What shall we do
  • with him now we have him?"
  • "Why if he chooses to remain with us, he will be very useful in the
  • cow-yard," said Humphrey.
  • "Of course," replied Edward, laughing, "as he was taken in the
  • pit-fall, he must go into the yard with all the others who were
  • captured in the same way."
  • "Well, Edward, let us get him all right again first, and then we will
  • see what is to be done with him; perhaps he will refuse to remain with
  • us."
  • As soon as they arrived at the cottage, they lifted the lad out of the
  • cart, and carried him into Jacob's room, and laid him on the bed, for
  • he was too weak to stand.
  • Alice and Edith, who were much surprised at the new visitor and the way
  • in which he had been caught, hastened to get some gruel ready for him.
  • As soon as it was ready, they gave it to the boy, who then fell back on
  • the bed with exhaustion, and was soon in a sound sleep. He slept
  • soundly all that night; and the next morning, when he awoke, he
  • appeared much better, although very hungry. This last complaint was
  • easy to remedy, and then the lad got up, and walked into the
  • sitting-room.
  • "What's your name?" said Humphrey to the lad.
  • "Pablo," replied the lad.
  • "Can you speak English?"
  • "Yes, little," replied he.
  • "How did you happen to fall into the pit?"
  • "Not see hole."
  • "Are you a gipsy?"
  • "Yes, gitano--same thing."
  • Humphrey put a great many more questions to the lad, and elicited from
  • him, in his imperfect English, the following particulars:
  • That he was in company with several others of his race, going down to
  • the sea-coast on one of their usual migrations, and that they had
  • pitched their tents not far from the pitfall. That during the night he
  • had gone out to set some snares for rabbits, and going back to the
  • tents, it being quite dark, he had fallen into the hole; that he had
  • remained there three days and nights, having in vain attempted to get
  • out. His mother was with the party of gipsies to which he belonged, but
  • he had no father. He did not know where to follow the gang, as they had
  • not said where they were going, farther than to the sea-coast. That it
  • was no use looking for them; and that he did not care much about
  • leaving them, as he was very unkindly treated. In reply to the question
  • as to whether he would like to remain with them, and work with them on
  • the farm, he replied that he should like it very much if they would be
  • kind to him, and not make him work too hard; that he would cook the
  • dinner, and catch them rabbits and birds, and make a great many things.
  • "Will you be honest, if we keep you, and not tell lies?" said Edward.
  • The lad thought a little while, and then nodded his head in the
  • affirmative.
  • "Well, Pablo, we will try you, and if you are a good lad we will do all
  • we can to make you happy," said Edward; "but if you behave ill we shall
  • be obliged to turn you out of doors: do you understand?"
  • "Be as good as I can," replied Pablo; and here the conversation ended
  • for the present.
  • Pablo was a very short-built lad, of apparently fifteen or sixteen
  • years of age, very dark in complexion, but very handsome in features,
  • with beautiful white teeth and large dark eyes; and there was certainly
  • something in his intelligent countenance which recommended him,
  • independent of his claim to their kindness from his having been left
  • thus friendless in consequence of his misadventure. Humphrey was
  • particularly pleased with and interested about him, as the lad had so
  • nearly lost his life through his means.
  • "I really think, Edward," said Humphrey, as they were standing outside
  • of the door of the cottage, "that the lad may be very useful to us, and
  • I sincerely hope that he may prove honest and true. We must first get
  • him into health and spirits, and then I will see what he can do."
  • "The fact is, my dear Humphrey, we can do no otherwise; he is separated
  • from his friends, and does not know where to go. It would be inhuman,
  • as we have been the cause of his misfortune, to turn him away; but
  • although I feel this, I do not feel much security as to his good
  • behavior and being very useful. I have always been told that these
  • gipsies were vagrants, who lived by stealing all they could lay their
  • hands upon; and, if he has been brought up in that way, I fear that he
  • will not easily be reformed. However, we can but try, and hope for the
  • best."
  • "What you say is very just, Edward; at the same time there is an honest
  • look about this lad, although he is a gipsy, that makes me put a sort
  • of confidence in him. Admitting that he has been taught to do wrong, do
  • you not think that when told the contrary he may be persuaded to do
  • right?"
  • "It is not impossible, certainly," replied Edward; "but, Humphrey, be
  • on the safe side, and do not trust him too far until you know more of
  • him."
  • "That I most certainly will not," replied Humphrey. "When do you
  • purpose going over to the keepers cottage, Edward?"
  • "In a day or two; but I am not exactly in a humor now to be very civil
  • to the Roundheads, although the one I have promised to visit is a lady,
  • and a very amiable, pretty little girl in the bargain."
  • "Why, Edward, what has made you feel more opposed to them than usual?"
  • "In the first place, Humphrey, the murder of the king--for it was
  • murder and nothing better--I can not get that out of my head; and
  • yesterday I obtained what I consider as almost a gift from Heaven, and
  • if it is so it was not given but with the intention that I should make
  • use of it."
  • "And what was that, Edward?"
  • "Our gallant father's sword, which he drew so nobly and so well in
  • defense of his sovereign, Humphrey, and which I trust his son may one
  • day wield with equal distinction, and, it may be, better fortune. Come
  • in with me, and I will show it to you."
  • Edward and Humphrey went into the bedroom, and Edward brought out the
  • sword, which he had placed by his side on the bed.
  • "See, Humphrey, this was our father's sword; and," continued Edward,
  • kissing the weapon, "I trust I may be permitted to draw it to revenge
  • his death, and the death of one whose life ever should have been
  • sacred."
  • "I trust that you will, my dear brother," replied Humphrey; "you will
  • have a strong arm and a good cause. Heaven grant that both may prosper!
  • But tell me how you came by it."
  • Edward then related all that had passed during his visit with Oswald to
  • Lymington, not forgetting to tell him of Benjamin's appearance, and the
  • arrangements he had made relative to the sale of the venison.
  • As soon as dinner was over, Edward and Humphrey took down their guns,
  • having agreed that they would go and hunt the wild cattle.
  • "Humphrey, have you any idea where the herd of cattle are feeding at
  • this time?"
  • "I know where they were feeding yesterday and the day before, and I do
  • not think that they will have changed their ground, for the grass is
  • yet very young and only grown on the southern aspects. Depend upon it
  • we shall fall in with them not four miles from where we now are, if not
  • nearer."
  • "We must stalk them as we do the deer, must we not? They won't allow us
  • to approach within shot, Humphrey, will they?" said Edward.
  • "We have to take our chance, Edward; they will allow us to advance
  • within shot, but the bulls will then advance upon us, while the herd
  • increase their distance. On the other hand, if we stalk them, we may
  • kill one, and then the report of the gun will frighten the others away.
  • In the first instance there is a risk; in the second there is none, but
  • there is more fatigue and trouble. Choose as you please; I will act as
  • you decide."
  • "Well, Humphrey, since you give me the choice, I think that this time I
  • shall take the bull by the horns, as the saying is; that is, if there
  • are any trees near us, for if the herd are in an open place I would not
  • run such a risk; but if we can fire upon them and fall back upon a tree
  • in case of a bull charging, I will take them openly."
  • "With all my heart, Edward; I think it will be very hard if, with our
  • two guns and Smoker to back us, we do not manage to be masters of the
  • field. However, we must survey well before we make our approach; and if
  • we can get within shot without alarming or irritating them, we, of
  • course, will do so."
  • "The bulls are very savage at this spring time," observed Edward.
  • "They are so at all times, as far as I can see of them," replied
  • Humphrey; "but we are near to them now, I should think--yes, there is
  • the herd."
  • "There they are, sure enough," replied Edward; "now we have not to do
  • with deer, and need not to be so very cautious; but still the animals
  • are wary, and keep a sharp look-out. We must approach them quietly, by
  • slipping from tree to tree. Smoker, to heel!--down---quiet,
  • Smoker!--good dog!"
  • Edward and Humphrey stopped to load their guns, and then approached the
  • herd in manner which had been proposed, and were very soon within two
  • hundred yards of the cattle, behind a large oak, when they stopped to
  • reconnoiter. The herd contained about seventy head of cattle, of
  • various sizes and ages. They were feeding in all directions, scattered,
  • as the young grass was very short; but although the herd was spread
  • over many acres of land, Edward pointed out to Humphrey that all the
  • full-grown large bulls were on the outside, as if ready to defend the
  • others in case of attack.
  • "Humphrey," said Edward, "one thing is clear--as the herd is placed at
  • present, we must have a bull or nothing. It is impossible to get within
  • shot of the others without passing a bull, and depend upon it, our
  • passage will be disputed; and moreover the herd will take to flight,
  • and we shall get nothing at all."
  • "Well," replied Humphrey, "beef is beef; and, as they say, beggars must
  • not be choosers, so let it be a bull if it must be so."
  • "Let us get nearer to them, and then we will decide what we shall do.
  • Steady, Smoker!"
  • They advanced gradually, hiding from tree to tree, until they were
  • within eighty yards of one of the bulls. The animal did not perceive
  • them, and as they were now within range, they again stepped behind the
  • tree to consult.
  • "Now, Edward, I think that it would be best to separate. You can fire
  • from where we are, and I will crawl through the fern, and get behind
  • another tree."
  • "Very well, do so," replied Edward: "if you can manage, get to that
  • tree with the low branches, and then perhaps you will be within shot of
  • the white bull, which is coming down in this direction. Smoker, lie
  • down! He can not go with you, Humphrey; it will not be safe."
  • The distance of the tree which Humphrey ventured to get to was one
  • about one hundred and fifty yards from where Edward was standing.
  • Humphrey crawled along for some time in the fern, but at last he came
  • to a bare spot of about ten yards wide, which they were not aware of,
  • and where he could not be concealed. Humphrey hesitated, and at last
  • decided upon attempting to cross it. Edward, who was one moment
  • watching the motions of Humphrey, and at another that of the two
  • animals nearest to them, perceived that the white bull farthest from
  • him, but nearest to Humphrey, threw its head in the air, pawed with his
  • foot, and then advanced with a roar to where Humphrey was on the
  • ground, still crawling toward the tree, having passed the open spot,
  • and being now not many yards from the tree. Perceiving the danger that
  • his brother was in, and that, moreover, Humphrey himself was not aware
  • of it, he hardly knew how to act. The bull was too far from him to fire
  • at it with any chance of success; and how to let Humphrey know that the
  • animal had discovered him and was making toward him, without calling
  • out, he did not know. All this was the thought of a moment, and then
  • Edward determined to fire at the bull nearest to him, which he had
  • promised not to do till Humphrey was also ready to fire, and after
  • firing to call to Humphrey. He therefore, for one moment, turned away
  • from his brother, and, taking aim at the bull, fired his gun; but
  • probably from his nerves being a little shaken at the idea of Humphrey
  • being in danger, the wound was not mortal, and the bull galloped back
  • to the herd, which formed a closed phalanx about a quarter of a mile
  • distant. Edward then turned to where his brother was, and perceived
  • that the bull had not made off with the rest of the cattle, but was
  • within thirty yards of Humphrey, and advancing upon him, and that
  • Humphrey was standing up beside the tree with his gun ready to file.
  • Humphrey fired, and, as it appeared, he also missed his aim; the animal
  • made at him; but Humphrey, with great quickness, dropped his gun, and,
  • swinging by the lower boughs, was into the tree, and out of the bull's
  • reach in a moment. Edward smiled when he perceived that Humphrey was
  • safe; but still he was a prisoner, for the bull went round and round
  • the tree roaring and looking up at Humphrey. Edward thought a minute,
  • then loaded his gun, and ordered Smoker to run in to the bull. The dog,
  • who had only been restrained by Edward's keeping him down at his feet,
  • sprung forward to the attack. Edward had intended, by calling to the
  • dog, to induce the bull to follow it till within gun-shot; but before
  • the bull had been attacked, Edward observed that one or two more of the
  • bulls had left the herd, and were coming at a rapid pace toward him.
  • Under these circumstances, Edward perceived that his only chance was to
  • climb into a tree himself, which he did, taking good care to take his
  • gun and ammunition with him. Having safely fixed himself in a forked
  • bough, Edward then surveyed the position of the parties. There was
  • Humphrey in the tree, without his gun. The bull who had pursued
  • Humphrey was now running at Smoker, who appeared to be aware that he
  • was to decoy the bull toward Edward, for he kept retreating toward him.
  • In the mean time, the two other bulls were quite close at hand,
  • mingling their bellowing and roaring with the first; and one of them as
  • near to Edward as the first bull, which was engaged with Smoker. At
  • last, one of the advancing bulls stood still, pawing the ground as if
  • disappointed at not finding an enemy, not forty yards from where Edward
  • was perched. Edward took good aim, and when he fired the bull fell
  • dead. Edward was reloading his piece when he heard a howl, and looking
  • round, saw Smoker flying up in the air, having been tossed by the first
  • bull; and at the same time he observed that Humphrey had descended from
  • the tree, recovered his gun, and was now safe again upon the lower
  • bough.
  • The first bull was advancing again to attack Smoker, who appeared
  • incapable of getting away, so much was he injured by the fall, when the
  • other bull, who apparently must have been an old antagonist of the
  • first, roared and attacked him; and now the two boys were up in the
  • tree, the two bulls fighting between them, and Smoker lying on the
  • ground, panting and exhausted. As the bulls, with locked horns, were
  • furiously pressing each other, both guns were discharged, and both
  • animals fell. After waiting a little while to see if they rose again,
  • or if any more of the herd came up, Edward and Humphrey descended from
  • the trees and heartily shook hands.
  • CHAPTER XII.
  • "A narrow escape, Humphrey!" said Edward as he held his brother's hand.
  • "Yes, indeed, we may thank Heaven for our preservation," replied
  • Humphrey; "and poor Smoker! let us see if he is much hurt."
  • "I trust not," said Edward, going up to the dog, who remained quite
  • still on the ground, with his tongue out, and panting violently.
  • They examined poor Smoker all over very carefully, and found that there
  • was no external wound; but on Edward pressing his side, the animal gave
  • a low howl.
  • "It is there where the horn of the bull took him," observed Humphrey.
  • "Yes," said Edward, pressing and feeling softly: "and he has two of his
  • ribs broken. Humphrey, see if you can get him a little water, that will
  • recover him more than any thing else; the bull has knocked the breath
  • out of his body. I think he will soon be well again, poor fellow."
  • Humphrey soon returned with some water from a neighboring pool. He
  • brought it in his hat and gave it to the dog, who lapped it slowly at
  • first, but afterward much faster, and wagging his tail.
  • "He will do now," said Edward; "we must give him time to recover
  • himself. Now then, let us examine our quarry. Why, Humphrey, what a
  • quantity of meat we have here! It will take three journeys to Lymington
  • at least."
  • "Yes, and no time to lose, for the weather is getting warm already,
  • Edward. Now what to do? Will you remain while I go home for the cart?"
  • "Yes, it's no use both going; I will stay here and watch poor Smoker,
  • and take off the skins ready by the time you are back again. Leave me
  • your knife as well as my own, for one will soon be blunt."
  • Humphrey gave his knife to Edward, and taking up his gun, set off for
  • the cottage. Edward had skinned two of the bulls before Humphrey's
  • return; and Smoker, although he evidently was in great pain, was on his
  • legs again. As soon as they had finished and quartered the beasts, the
  • cart was loaded and they returned home; they had to return a second
  • time, and both the pony and they were very tired before they sat down
  • to supper They found the gipsy boy very much recovered and in good
  • spirits. Alice said that he had been amusing Edith and her by tossing
  • up three potatoes at a time, and playing them like balls; and that he
  • has spun a platter upon an iron skewer and balanced it on his chin.
  • They gave him some supper, which he ate in the chimney corner, looking
  • up and staring every now and then at Edith, to whom he appeared very
  • much attached already.
  • "Is it good?" said Humphrey to the boy, giving him another venison
  • steak.
  • "Yes; not have so good supper in pithole," replied Pablo, laughing.
  • Early on the following morning, Edward and Humphrey set off to
  • Lymington with the cart laden with meat. Edward showed Humphrey all the
  • shops and the streets they were in where the purchases were to be
  • made--introduced him to the landlord of the hostelry--and having sold
  • their meat, they returned home. The rest of the meat was taken to
  • Lymington and disposed of by Humphrey on the following day; and the day
  • after that the three skins were carried to the town and disposed of.
  • "We made a good day's work, Edward," said Humphrey, as he reckoned up
  • the money they had made.
  • "We earned it with some risk, at all events," replied Edward; "and now,
  • Humphrey, I think it is time that I keep my promise to Oswald, and go
  • over to the intendant's house, and pay my visit to the young lady, as I
  • presume she is--and certainly she has every appearance of being one. I
  • want the visit to be over, as I want to be doing."
  • "How do you mean, Edward?"
  • "I mean that I want to go out and kill some deer, but I will not do it
  • till after I have seen her: when I shall have acquitted myself of my
  • visit, I intend to defy the intendant and all his verderers."
  • "But why should this visit prevent you going out this very day, if so
  • inclined?"
  • "I don't know, but she may ask me if I have done so, and I do not want
  • to tell her that I have; neither do I want to say that I have not, if I
  • have; and therefore I shall not commence till after I have seen her."
  • "When will you set off?"
  • "To-morrow morning; and I shall take my gun, although Oswald desired me
  • not; but after the fight we had with the wild cattle the other day, I
  • don't think it prudent to be unarmed; indeed, I do not feel comfortable
  • without I have my gun, at any time."
  • "Well, I shall have plenty to do when you are away--the potatoes must
  • be hoed up, and I shall see what I can make of Master Pablo. He appears
  • well enough, and he has played quite long enough, so I shall take him
  • with me to the garden to-morrow, and set him to work. What a quantity
  • of fruit there is a promise of in the orchard this year! And Edward, if
  • this boy turns out of any use, and is a help to me, I think that I
  • shall take all the orchard into garden, and then inclose another piece
  • of ground, and see if we can not grow some corn for ourselves. It is
  • the greatest expense that we have at present, and I should like to take
  • my own corn to the mill to be ground."
  • "But will not growing corn require plow and horses?" said Edward.
  • "No; we will try it by hand: two of us can dig a great deal at odd
  • times, and we shall have a better crop with the spade than with the
  • plow. We have now so much manure that we can afford it."
  • "Well, if it is to be done, it should be done at once, Humphrey, before
  • the people from the other side of the forest come and find us out, or
  • they will dispute our right to the inclosure."
  • "The forest belongs to the king, brother, and not to the Parliament;
  • and we are the king's liege men, and only look to him for permission,"
  • replied Humphrey; "but what you say is true: the sooner it is done the
  • better, and I will about it at once."
  • "How much do you propose fencing in?"
  • "About two or three acres."
  • "But that is more than you can dig this year or the next."
  • "I know that; but I will manure it without digging, and the grass will
  • grow so rich to what it will outside of the inclosure, that they will
  • suppose it has been inclosed a long while."
  • "That's not a bad idea, Humphrey; but I advise you to look well after
  • that boy, for he is of a bad race, and has not been brought up, I am
  • afraid, with too strict notions of honesty. Be careful, and tell your
  • sisters also to be cautious not to let him suppose that we have any
  • money in the old chest, till we find out whether he is to be trusted or
  • not."
  • "Better not let him know it under any circumstances," replied Humphrey;
  • "he may continue honest, if not tempted by the knowledge that there is
  • any thing worth stealing."
  • "You are right, Humphrey. Well, I will be off to-morrow morning and get
  • this visit over. I hope to be able to get all the news from her, now
  • that her father is away.
  • "I hope to get some work out of this Pablo," replied Humphrey; "how
  • many things I could do, if he would only work! Now, I'll tell you one
  • thing--I will dig a sawpit and get a saw, and then I can cut out boards
  • and build any thing we want. The first time I go to Lymington I will
  • buy a saw--I can afford it now; and I'll make a carpenter's bench for
  • the first thing, and then, with some more tools, I shall get on; and
  • then, Edward, I'll tell you what else I will do."
  • "Then, Humphrey," replied Edward, laughing, "you must tell me some
  • other time, for it is now very late, and I must go to bed, as I have to
  • rise early. I know you have so many projects in your mind that it would
  • take half the night to listen to them."
  • "Well, I believe what you say is true," replied Humphrey, "and it will
  • be better to do one thing at a time than to talk about doing a hundred;
  • so we will, as you say, to bed."
  • At sunrise, Edward and Humphrey were both up; Alice came out when they
  • tapped at her door, as she would not let Edward go without his
  • breakfast. Edith joined them, and they went to prayers. While they were
  • so employed, Pablo came out and listened to what was said. When prayers
  • were over, Humphrey asked Pablo if he knew what they had been doing.
  • "No, not much; suppose you pray sun to shine."
  • "No, Pablo," said Edith, "pray to God to make us good."
  • "You bad then?" said Pablo; "me not bad."
  • "Yes, Pablo, every body very bad," said Alice; "but if we try to be
  • good, God forgives us."
  • The conversation was then dropped, and as soon as Edward had made his
  • breakfast, he kissed his sisters, and wished Humphrey farewell.
  • Edward threw his gun over his arm, and calling his puppy, which he had
  • named Holdfast, bade Humphrey and his sisters farewell, and set off on
  • his journey across the forest.
  • Holdfast, as well as Humphrey's puppy, which had been named Watch, had
  • grown very fine young animals. The first had been named Holdfast,
  • because it would seize the pigs by the ears and lead them into the sty,
  • and the other because it was so alert at the least noise; but, as
  • Humphrey said, Watch ought to have learned to lead the pigs, it being
  • more in his line of business than Holdfast's, which was to be brought
  • up for hunting in the forest, while Watch was being educated as a house
  • and farmyard dog.
  • Edward had refused to take the pony, as Humphrey required it for the
  • farm-work, and the weather was so fine that he preferred walking; the
  • more so, as it would enable him on his return across the forest to try
  • for some venison, which he could not have done if he had been mounted
  • on Billy's back. Edward walked quick, followed by his dog, which he had
  • taught to keep to heel. He felt happy, as people do who have no cares,
  • from the fine weather--the deep green of the verdure checkered by the
  • flowers in bloom, and the majestic scenery which met his eye on every
  • side. His heart was as buoyant as his steps, as he walked along, the
  • light summer breeze fanning his face. His thoughts, however, which had
  • been more of the chase than any thing else, suddenly changed, and he
  • became serious. For some time he had heard no political news of
  • consequence, or what the Commons were doing with the king. This revery
  • naturally brought to his mind his father's death, the burning of his
  • property, and its sequestration. His cheeks colored with indignation,
  • and his brow was moody. Then he built castles for the future. He
  • imagined the king released from his prison, and leading an army against
  • his oppressors; he fancied himself at the head of a troop of cavalry,
  • charging the Parliamentary horse. Victory was on his side. The king was
  • again on his throne, and he was again in possession of the family
  • estate. He was rebuilding the hall, and somehow or another it appeared
  • to him that Patience was standing by his side, as he gave directions to
  • the artificers, when his revery was suddenly disturbed by Holdfast
  • barking and springing forward in advance.
  • Edward, who had by this time got over more than half his journey,
  • looked up, and perceived himself confronted by a powerful man,
  • apparently about forty years of age, and dressed as a verderer of the
  • forest. He thought at the time that he had seldom seen a person with a
  • more sinister and forbidding countenance.
  • "How now, young fellow, what are you doing here?" said the man, walking
  • up to him and cocking the gun which he held in hand as he advanced.
  • Edward quietly cocked his own gun, which was loaded, when he perceived
  • that hostile preparation on the part of the other person, and then
  • replied, "I am walking across the forest, as you may perceive."
  • "Yes, I perceive you are walking, and you are walking with a dog and a
  • gun: you will now be pleased to walk with me. Deer-stealers are not any
  • longer permitted to range this forest."
  • "I am no deer-stealer," replied Edward. "It will be quite sufficient to
  • give me that title when you find me with venison in my possession; and
  • as for going with you, that I certainly shall not. Sheer off, or you
  • may meet with harm."
  • "Why, you young good-for-nothing, if you have not venison, it is not
  • from any will not to take it; you are out in pursuit of it, that is
  • clear. Come, come, you've the wrong person to deal with; my orders are
  • to take up all poachers, and take you I will."
  • "If you can," replied Edward; "but you must first prove that you are
  • able so to do; my gun is as good and my aim is as sure as yours,
  • whoever you may be. I tell you again, I am no poacher, nor have I come
  • out to take the deer, but to cross over to the intendant's cottage,
  • whither I am now going. I tell you thus much, that you may not do any
  • thing foolish; and having said this, I advise you to think twice before
  • you act once. Let me proceed in peace, or you may lose your place, if
  • you do not, by your own rashness, lose your life."
  • There was something so cool and so determined in Edward's quiet manner,
  • that the verderer hesitated. He perceived that any attempt to take
  • Edward would be at the risk of his own life; and he knew that his
  • orders were to apprehend all poachers, but not to shoot people. It was
  • true, that resistance with firearms would warrant his acting in
  • self-defense; but admitting that he should succeed, which was doubtful,
  • still Edward had not been caught in the act of killing venison, and he
  • had no witnesses to prove what had occurred. He also knew that the
  • intendant had given very strict orders as to the shedding of blood,
  • which he was most averse to, under any circumstances; and there was
  • something in Edward's appearance and manner so different from a common
  • person, that he was puzzled. Moreover, Edward had stated that he was
  • going to the intendant's house. All things considered, as he found that
  • bullying would not succeed, he thought it advisable to change his tone,
  • and therefore said, "You tell me that you are going to the intendant's
  • house; you have business there, I presume? If I took you prisoner, it
  • is there I should have conducted you, so, young man, you may now walk
  • on before me."
  • "I thank you," replied Edward, "but walk on before you I will not: but
  • if you choose to half-cock your gun again, and walk by my side, I will
  • do the same. Those are my terms, and I will listen to no other; so be
  • pleased to make up your mind, as I am in haste."
  • The verderer appeared very indignant at this reply, but after a time
  • said, "Be it so."
  • Edward then uncocked his gun, with his eyes fixed upon the man, and the
  • verderer did the same: and then they walked side by side, Edward
  • keeping at the distance of three yards from him, in case of treachery.
  • After a few moments' silence, the verderer said, "You tell me you are
  • going to the intendant's house; he is not at home."
  • "But young Mistress Patience is, I presume," said Edward.
  • "Yes," replied the man, who, finding that Edward appeared to know so
  • much about the intendant's family, began to be more civil. "Yes, she is
  • at home, for I saw her in the garden this morning."
  • "And Oswald, is he at home?" rejoined Edward.
  • "Yes, he is. You appear to know our people, young man; who may you be,
  • if it is a fair question?"
  • "It would have been a fair question had you treated me fairly," replied
  • Edward; "but as it is no concern of yours, I shall leave you to find it
  • out."
  • This reply puzzled the man still more; and he now, from the tone of
  • authority assumed by Edward, began to imagine that he had made some
  • mistake, and that he was speaking to a superior, although clad in a
  • forester's dress. He therefore answered humbly, observing that he had
  • only been doing his duty.
  • Edward walked on without making any reply.
  • As they arrived within a hundred yards of the intendant's house Edward
  • said--
  • "I have now arrived at my destination, and am going into that house, as
  • I told you. Do you choose to enter it with me, or will you go to Oswald
  • Partridge and tell him that you have met with Edward Armitage in the
  • forest, and that I should be glad to see him? I believe you are under
  • his orders, are you not?"
  • "Yes I am," replied the verderer, "and as I suppose that all's right, I
  • shall go and deliver your message."
  • Edward then turned away from the man, and went into the wicket-gate of
  • the garden, and knocked at the door of the House. The door was opened
  • by Patience Heatherstone herself, who said, "Oh, how glad I am to see
  • you! Come in." Edward took off his hat and bowed. Patience led the way
  • into her father's study, where Edward had been first received.
  • "And now," said Patience, extending her hand to Edward, "thanks, many
  • thanks, for your preserving me from so dreadful a death. You don't know
  • how unhappy I have been at not being able to give you my poor thanks
  • for your courageous behavior."
  • Her hand still remained in Edward's while she said this.
  • "You rate what I did too highly," replied Edward; "I would have done
  • the same for any one in such distress: it was my duty as a--man,"
  • Cavalier he was about to say, but he checked himself.
  • "Sit down," said Patience, taking a chair; "nay, no ceremony; I can not
  • treat as an inferior one to whom I owe such a debt of gratitude."
  • Edward smiled as he took his seat.
  • "My father is as grateful to you as I am--I'm sure that he is--for I
  • heard him, when at prayer, call down blessings on your head. What can
  • he do for you? I begged Oswald Partridge to bring you here that I might
  • find out. Oh, sir, do, pray, let me know how we can show our gratitude
  • by something more than words."
  • "You have shown it already, Mistress Patience," replied Edward; "have
  • you not honored a poor forester with your hand in friendship, and even
  • admitted him to sit down before you?"
  • "He who has preserved my life at the risk of his own becomes to me as a
  • brother--at least I feel as a sister toward him: a debt is still a
  • debt, whether indebted to a king or to a--"
  • "Forester, Mistress Patience; that is the real word that you should not
  • have hesitated to have used. Do you imagine that I am ashamed of my
  • calling?"
  • "To tell you candidly the truth, then," replied Patience: "I can not
  • believe that you are what you profess to be. I mean to say that,
  • although a forester now, you were never brought up as such. My father
  • has an opinion allied to mine."
  • "I thank you both for your good opinion of me, but I fear that I can
  • not raise myself above the condition of a forester; nay, from your
  • father's coming down here, and the new regulations, I have every chance
  • of sinking down to the lower grade of a deer-stealer and poacher;
  • indeed, had it not been that I had my gun with me, I should have been
  • seized as such this very day as I came over."
  • "But you were not shooting the deer, were you, sir?" inquired Patience.
  • "No, I was not; nor have I killed any since last I saw you."
  • "I am glad that I can say that to my father," replied Patience; "it
  • will much please him. He said to me that he thought you capable of much
  • higher employment than any that could be offered here, and only wished
  • to know what you would accept. He has interest--great
  • interest--although just now at variance with the rulers of this
  • country, on account of the--"
  • "Murder of the king, you would or you should have said, Mistress
  • Patience. I have heard how much he was opposed to that foul deed, and I
  • honor him for it."
  • "How kind, how truly kind you are to say so!" said Patience, the tears
  • starting in her eyes; "what pleasure to hear my father's conduct
  • praised by you!"
  • "Why, of course, Mistress Patience, all of my way of thinking must
  • praise him. Your father is in London, I hear?"
  • "Yes, he is; and that reminds me that you must want some refreshment
  • after your walk. I will call Phoebe." So saying, Patience left the room.
  • The fact was, Mistress Patience was reminded that she had been sitting
  • with a young man some time, and alone with him--which was not quite
  • proper in those times; and when Phoebe appeared with the cold viands,
  • she retreated out of hearing, but remained in the room.
  • Edward partook of the meal offered him in silence, Patience occupying
  • herself with her work, and keeping her eyes fixed on it, unless when
  • she gave a slight glance at the table to see if any thing was required.
  • When the meal was over, Phoebe removed the tray, and then Edward rose
  • to take his leave.
  • "Nay, do not go yet--I have much to say first; let me again ask you how
  • we can serve you."
  • "I never can take any office under the present rulers of the nation, so
  • that question is at rest."
  • "I was afraid that you would answer so," replied Patience, gravely: "do
  • not think I blame you; for many are there already who would gladly
  • retrace their steps if it were possible. They little thought, when they
  • opposed the king, that affairs would have ended as they have done.
  • Where do you live, sir?"
  • "At the opposite side of the forest, in a house belonging to me now,
  • but which was inherited by my grandfather."
  • "Do you live alone--surely not?"
  • "No, I do not."
  • "Nay, you may tell me any thing, for I would never repeat what might
  • hurt you, or you might not wish to have known."
  • "I live with my brother and two sisters, for my grandfather is lately
  • dead."
  • "Is your brother younger than you are?"
  • "He is."
  • "And your sisters, what are their ages?"
  • "They are younger still."
  • "You told my father that you lived upon your farm?"
  • "We do."
  • "Is it a large farm?"
  • "No; very small."
  • "And does that support you?"
  • "That and killing wild cattle has lately."
  • "Yes, and killing deer also, until lately?"
  • "You have guessed right."
  • "You were brought up at Arnwood, you told my father; did you not?"
  • "Yes, I was brought up there, and remained there until the death of
  • Colonel Beverley."
  • "And you were educated, were you not?"
  • "Yes; the chaplain taught me what little I do know."
  • "Then, if you were brought up in the house and educated by the
  • chaplain, surely Colonel Beverley never intended you for a forester?"
  • "He did not; I was to have been a soldier as soon as I was old enough
  • to bear arms."
  • "Perhaps you are distantly related to the late Colonel Beverley."
  • "No; I am not _distantly_ related," replied Edward, who began to feel
  • uneasy at this close cross-examination; "but still, had Colonel
  • Beverley been alive, and the king still required his services, I have
  • no doubt that I should have been serving under him at this time. And
  • now, Mistress Patience, that I have answered so many questions of
  • yours, may I be permitted to ask a little about yourself in return?
  • Have you any brothers?"
  • "None; I am an only child."
  • "Have you only one parent alive?"
  • "Only one."
  • "What families are you connected with?"
  • Patience looked up with surprise at this last question.
  • "My mother's name was Cooper; she was sister to Sir Anthony Ashley
  • Cooper, who is a person well known."
  • "Indeed! then you are of gentle blood?"
  • "I believe so," replied Patience, with surprise.
  • "Thank you for your condescension, Mistress Patience; and now, if you
  • will permit me, I will take my leave."
  • "Before you go, let me once more thank you for saving a worthless
  • life," said Patience. "Well, you must come again, when my father is
  • here; he will be but too glad to have an opportunity of thanking one
  • who has preserved his only child. Indeed, if you knew my father, you
  • would feel as much regard for him as I do. He is very good, although he
  • looks so stern and melancholy; but he has seldom smiled since my poor
  • mother's death."
  • "As to your father, Mistress Patience, I will think as well as I can of
  • one who is joined to a party which I hold in detestation; I can say no
  • more."
  • "I must not say all that I know, or you would, perhaps, find out that
  • he is not quite so wedded to that party as you suppose. Neither his
  • brother-in-law nor he are great friends of Cromwell's, I can assure
  • you; but this is in confidence."
  • "That raises him in my estimation; but why then does he hold office?"
  • "He did not ask it; it was given to him, I really believe, because they
  • wished him out of the way; and he accepted it because he was opposed to
  • what was going on, and wished himself to be away. At least I infer so
  • much from what I have learned. It is not an office of power or trust
  • which leagues him with the present government."
  • "No; only one which opposes him to me and my malpractices," replied
  • Edward, laughing. "Well, Mistress Patience, you have shown great
  • condescension to a poor forester, and I return you many thanks for your
  • kindness toward me: I will now take my leave."
  • "And when will you come and see my father?"
  • "I can not say; I fear that I shall not be able very soon to look in
  • his injured face, and it will not be well for a poacher to come near
  • him," replied Edward: "however, some day I may be taken and brought
  • before you as a prisoner, you know, and then he is certain to see me."
  • "I will not tell you to kill deer," replied Patience; "but if you do
  • kill them no one shall harm you--or I know little of my power or my
  • father's. Farewell then, sir, and once more gratitude and thanks."
  • Patience held out her hand again to Edward, who this time, like a true
  • Cavalier, raised it respectfully to his lips. Patience colored a
  • little, but did not attempt to withdraw it, and Edward, with a low
  • obeisance, quitted the room.
  • CHAPTER XIII.
  • As soon as he was out of the intendant's house, Edward hastened to the
  • cottage of Oswald Partridge, whom he found waiting for him, for the
  • verderer had not failed to deliver his message.
  • "You have had a long talk with Mistress Patience," said Oswald, after
  • the first greeting, "and I am glad of it, as it gives you consequence
  • here. The Roundhead rascal whom you met was inclined, to be very
  • precise about doing his duty, and insisted that he was certain that you
  • were on the look-out for deer; but I stopped his mouth by telling him
  • that I often took you out with me, as you were the best shot in the
  • whole forest, and that the intendant knew that I did so. I think that
  • if you were caught in the act of killing a deer, you had better tell,
  • them that you killed it by my request, and I will bear you out if they
  • bring you to the intendant, who will, I'm sure, thank me for saying so;
  • you might kill all the deer in the forest, after what you have done for
  • him."
  • "Many thanks; but I do not think I can take advantage of your offer.
  • Let them catch me if they can, and if they do catch me, let them take
  • me if they can."
  • "I see, sir, that you will accept no favor from the Roundheads,"
  • replied Oswald. "However, as I am now head keeper, I shall take care
  • that my men do not interfere with you, if I can help it; all I wish is
  • to prevent any insult or indignity being offered to you, they not being
  • aware who you are, as I am."
  • "Many thanks, Oswald; I must take my chance."
  • Edward then told Oswald of their having taken the gipsy boy in the pit,
  • at which he appeared much amused.
  • "What is the name of the verderer whom I met in the forest?" inquired
  • Edward.
  • "James Corbould; he was discharged from the army," replied Oswald.
  • "I do not like his appearance," said Edward.
  • "No; his face tells against him," replied Oswald; "but I know nothing
  • of him; he has been here little more than a fortnight."
  • "Can you give me a corner to put my head in to-night, Oswald? for I
  • shall not start till to-morrow morning."
  • "You may command all I have, sir," replied Oswald; "but I fear there is
  • little more than a hearty welcome; I have no doubt that you could be
  • lodged at the intendant's house if you choose."
  • "No, Oswald, the young lady is alone, and I will not trust to Phoebe's
  • accommodation again; I will stay here, if you will permit me."
  • "And welcome, sir; I will put your puppy in the kennel at once."
  • Edward remained that night at Oswald's, and at daylight he rose, and
  • having taken a slight breakfast, throwing his gun over his shoulder,
  • went to the kennel for Holdfast, and set off on his return home.
  • "That's a very nice little girl," were the words which Edward found
  • himself constantly saying to himself as he walked along; "and she is of
  • a grateful disposition, or she would not have behaved as she has done
  • toward me--supposing me to be of mean birth;" and then he thought of
  • what she had told him relative to her father, and Edward felt his
  • animosity against a Roundhead wasting fast away. "I am not likely to
  • see her again very soon," thought Edward, "unless, indeed, I am brought
  • to the intendant as a prisoner." Thus thinking upon, one subject or
  • another, Edward had gained above eight miles of his journey across the
  • forest, when he thought that he was sufficiently far away to venture to
  • look out for some venison. Remembering there was a thicket not far from
  • him in which there was a clear pool of water, Edward thought it very
  • likely that he might find a stag there cooling himself, for the weather
  • was now very warm at noonday. He therefore called Holdfast to him, and
  • proceeded cautiously toward the thicket. As soon as he arrived at the
  • spot, he crouched and crept silently through the underwood. At last he
  • arrived close to the cleared spot by the pool. There was no stag there,
  • but fast asleep upon the turf lay James Corbould, the sinister-looking
  • verderer who had accosted him in the forest on the previous day.
  • Holdfast was about to bark, when Edward silenced him, and then advanced
  • to where the verderer was lying; and who, having no dog with him to
  • give notice of Edward's approach, still remained snoring with the sun
  • shining on his face. Edward perceived that his gun was under him on the
  • grass, he took it up, gently opened the pan and scattered the powder,
  • and then laid it down again--for Edward said to himself, "That man has
  • come out after me, that I am certain; and as there are no witnesses, he
  • may be inclined to be mischievous, for a more wretched-looking person I
  • never saw. Had he been deer-hunting, he would have brought his dog; but
  • he is man-hunting, that is evident. Now I will leave him, and should he
  • fall in with anything, he will not kill at first shot, that's certain;
  • and if he follows me, I shall have the same chance of escape as
  • anything else he may fire at." Edward then walked out of the covert,
  • thinking that if ever there was a face which proclaimed a man to be a
  • murderer, it was that of James Corbould. As he was threading his way,
  • he heard the howl of a dog, and on looking round, perceived that
  • Holdfast was not with him. He turned back, and Holdfast came running to
  • him--the fact was, that Holdfast had smelled some meat in the pocket of
  • the verderer, and had been putting his nose in to ascertain what it
  • was: in so doing, he had wakened up Corbould, who had saluted him with
  • a heavy blow on the head: this occasioned the puppy to give the howl,
  • and also occasioned Corbould to seize his gun, and follow stealthily in
  • the track of the dog, which he well knew to be the one he had seen the
  • day before with Edward.
  • Edward waited for a short time, and not perceiving that Corbould made
  • his appearance, continued on his way home, having now given up all
  • thoughts of killing any venison. He walked fast, and was within six
  • miles of the cottage, when he stopped to drink at a small rill of
  • water, and then sat down to rest himself for a short time. While so
  • doing, he fell into one of his usual reveries, and forgot how time
  • passed away. He was, however, aroused by a low growl on the part of
  • Holdfast, and it immediately occurred to him that Corbould must have
  • followed him. Thinking it as well to be prepared, he quietly loaded his
  • gun, and then rose up to reconnoiter. Holdfast sprung forward, and
  • Edward, looking in the direction, perceived Corbould partly hidden
  • behind a tree, with his gun leveled at him. He heard the trigger
  • pulled, and snap of the lock, but the gun did not go off; and then
  • Corbould made his appearance, striking at Holdfast with the butt-end of
  • his gun. Edward advanced to him and desired him to desist, or it would
  • be the worse for him.
  • "Indeed, younker! it may be the worse for you," cried Corbould.
  • "It might have been if your gun had gone off," replied Edward.
  • "I did not aim at you. I aimed at the dog, and I will kill the brute if
  • I can."
  • "Not without danger to yourself; but it was not him that you aimed
  • at--your gun was not pointed low enough to hit the dog--it was leveled
  • at me, you sneaking wretch; and I have only to thank my own prudence
  • and your sleepy head for having escaped with my life. I tell you
  • candidly, that I threw the powder out of your pan while you were
  • asleep. If I served you as you deserve, I should now put my bullet into
  • you; but I can not kill a man who is defenseless--and that saves your
  • life; but set off as fast as you can away from me, for if you follow me
  • I will show no more forbearance. Away with you directly," continued
  • Edward, raising his gun to his shoulder and pointing it at Corbould;
  • "if you do not be off, I'll fire."
  • Corbould saw that Edward was resolute, and thought proper to comply
  • with his request: he walked away till he considered himself out of
  • gunshot, and then commenced a torrent of oaths and abusive language,
  • with which we shall not offend our readers. Before he went farther, he
  • swore that he would have Edward's life before many days had passed, and
  • then shaking his fist, he went away. Edward remained where he was
  • standing till the man was fairly out of sight, and then proceeded on
  • his journey. It was now about four o'clock in the afternoon, and
  • Edward, as he walked on, said to himself, "That man must be of a very
  • wicked disposition, for I have offended him in nothing except in not
  • submitting to be made his prisoner; and is that an offense to take a
  • man's life for? He is a dangerous man, and will be more dangerous after
  • being again foiled by me as he has been to-day. I doubt if he will go
  • home; I am almost sure that he will turn and follow me when he thinks
  • that he can without my seeing him; and if he does, he will find out
  • where our cottage is--and who knows what mischief he may not do, and
  • how he may alarm my little sisters? I'll not go home till dark; and
  • I'll now walk in another direction, that I may mislead him." Edward
  • then walked away more to the north, and every half hour shifted his
  • course so as to be walking in a very different direction from where the
  • cottage stood. In the mean time it grew gradually dark; and as it
  • became so, every now and then when Edward passed a large tree, he
  • turned round behind it and looked to see if Corbould was following him.
  • At last, just as it was dark, he perceived the figure of a man at no
  • great distance from him, who was following him, running from tree to
  • tree, so as to make his approach. "Oh, you are there!" thought Edward;
  • "now will I give you a nice dance, and we will see whose legs are tired
  • soonest. Let me see, where am I?" Edward looked round, and then
  • perceived that he was close to the clump of trees where Humphrey had
  • made his pitfall for the cattle, and there was a clear spot of about a
  • quarter of a mile between it and where he now stood. Edward made up his
  • mind, and immediately walked out to cross the clearing, calling
  • Holdfast to heel. It was now nearly dark, for there was only the light
  • of the stars, but still there was sufficient light to see his way. As
  • Edward crossed the cleared spot, he once looked round and perceived
  • that Corbould was following him, and nearer than he was before,
  • trusting probably to the increased darkness to hide his approach. "That
  • will do," thought Edward; "come along, my fine fellow." And Edward
  • walked on till he came to the pitfall; there he stopped and looked
  • round, and soon discovered the verderer at a hundred yards' distance.
  • Edward held his dog by the mouth, that he should not growl or bark, and
  • then went on in a direction so as to bring the pitfall exactly between
  • Corbould and himself. Having done so, he proceeded at a more rapid
  • pace; and Corbould, following him, also increased his, till he arrived
  • at the pitfall, which he could not perceive, and fell into it headlong;
  • and as he fell into the pit, at the same time Edward heard the
  • discharge of his gun, the crash of the small branches laid over it, and
  • a cry on the part of Corbould. "That will do," thought Edward, "now you
  • may lie there as long as the gipsy did, and that will cool your
  • courage. Humphrey's pitfall is full of adventure. In this case it has
  • done me a service. Now I may turn and go home as fast as I can. Come
  • Holdfast, old boy, we both want our suppers. I can answer for one, for
  • I could eat the whole of that pasty which Oswald set before me this
  • morning." Edward walked at a rapid pace, quite delighted at the issue
  • of the adventure. As he arrived near to the cottage he found Humphrey
  • outside, with Pablo, on the look-out for him. He soon joined them, and
  • soon after embraced Alice and Edith, who had been anxiously waiting for
  • his return, and who had wondered at his being out so late. "Give me my
  • supper, my dear girls," said Edward, "and then you shall know all about
  • it."
  • As soon as Edward had satisfied his craving appetite--for he had not,
  • as my readers must recollect, eaten any thing since his departure early
  • in the morning from the house of Oswald Partridge--he entered into a
  • narrative of the events of the day. They all listened with great
  • interest; and when Edward had finished, Pablo, the gipsy boy, jumped up
  • and said,
  • "Now he is in the pit, to-morrow morning I take gun and shoot him."
  • "No, no, Pablo, you must not do that," replied Edward, laughing.
  • "Pablo," said little Edith, "go and sit down; you must not shoot
  • people."
  • "He shoot master then," said Pablo; "he very bad man."
  • "But if you shoot him, you will be a bad boy, Pablo," replied Edith,
  • who appeared to have assumed an authority over him. Pablo did not
  • appear to understand this, but he obeyed the order of his little
  • mistress, and resumed his seat at the chimney corner.
  • "But, Edward," said Humphrey, "what do you propose to do?"
  • "I hardly know; my idea was to let him remain there for a day or two,
  • and then send to Oswald to let him know where the fellow was."
  • "The only objection to that is," replied Humphrey, "that you say his
  • gun went off as he fell into the pit; it may be probable that he is
  • wounded, and if so, he might die if he is left there."
  • "You are right, Humphrey, that is possible; and I would not have the
  • life of a fellow-creature on my conscience."
  • "I think it would be advisable, Edward, that I should set off early
  • to-morrow on the pony, and see Oswald, tell him all that has occurred,
  • and show him where the pitfall is."
  • "I believe that would be the best plan, Humphrey."
  • "Yes," said Alice, "it would be dreadful that a man should die in so
  • wicked a state; let him be taken out, and perhaps he will repent."
  • "Won't God punish him, brother?" said Edith.
  • "Yes, my dear; sooner or later the vengeance of Heaven overtakes the
  • wicked. But I am very tired after so long a walk to Prayers, and then
  • to bed."
  • The danger that Edward had incurred that day was felt strongly by the
  • whole party; and, with the exception of Pablo there was earnest
  • devotion and gratitude to Heaven when their orisons were offered up.
  • Humphrey was off before daybreak, and at nine o'clock had arrived at
  • the cottage of Oswald, by whom he was warmly greeted before the cause
  • of his unexpected arrival was made known. Oswald was greatly annoyed at
  • Humphrey's narration, and appeared to be very much of the opinion of
  • Pablo, which was, to leave the scoundrel where he was; but, on the
  • remonstrance of Humphrey, he set off, with two of the other verderers,
  • and before nightfall Humphrey arrived at the pitfall, where they heard
  • Corbould groaning below.
  • "Who's there?" said Oswald, looking into the pit.
  • "It's me, it's Corbould," replied the man.
  • "Are you hurt?"
  • "Yes, badly," replied Corbould; "when I fell, my gun went off, and the
  • ball has gone through my thigh. I have almost bled to death."
  • Humphrey went for the ladder, which was at hand, and, with much
  • exertion on the part of the whole four of them, they contrived to drag
  • out Corbould, who groaned heavily with pain. A handkerchief was tied
  • tightly round his leg, to prevent any further bleeding, and they gave
  • him some water, which revived him.
  • "Now, what's to be done?" said Oswald; "we can never get him home."
  • "I will tell you," said Humphrey, walking with him aside. "It will not
  • do for any of these men to know our cottage, and we can not take them
  • there. Desire them to remain with the man, while you go for a cart to
  • carry him home. We will go to the cottage, give Billy his supper, and
  • then return with him in the cart, and bring your men something to eat.
  • Then I will go with you, and bring the cart back again before daylight.
  • It will be a night's work, but it will be the safest plan."
  • "I think so, too," replied Oswald, who desired the men to wait till his
  • return, as he was going to borrow a cart, and then set off with
  • Humphrey.
  • As soon as they arrived at the cottage, Humphrey gave the pony to Pablo
  • to put into the stable and feed, and then communicated to Edward the
  • state of Corbould.
  • "It's almost a pity that he had not killed himself outright." observed
  • Oswald; "it would have been justice to him, for attempting your life
  • without any cause; he is a bloodthirsty scoundrel, and I wish he was
  • any where but where he is. However, the intendant shall know of it, and
  • I have no doubt that he will be discharged.
  • "Do nothing in a hurry, Oswald," replied Edward; "at present let him
  • give his own version of the affair, for he may prove more dangerous
  • when discharged than when under your control. Now sit down and take
  • your supper. Billy must have an hour to get his, and therefore there is
  • no hurry for you."
  • "That is your gipsy lad, Edward, is he not?" said Oswald.
  • "Yes."
  • "I like the boy's looks; but they are a queer race. You must not trust
  • him too much," continued Oswald, in an undertone, "until you have tried
  • him, and are satisfied of his fidelity. They are very excitable, and
  • capable of strong attachment if well treated. That I know, for I did a
  • gipsy a good turn once, and it proved to be the saving of my life
  • afterward."
  • "Oh, tell us how, Oswald," said Alice.
  • "It is too long a story now, my dear little lady," replied Oswald; "but
  • I will another time. Whatever he may do, do not strike him; for they
  • never forgive a blow, I am told by those who know them, and it never
  • does them any good; as I said before, they are a queer race."
  • "He will not be beaten by us," replied Humphrey, "depend upon it,
  • unless Edith slaps him, for she is the one who takes most pains with
  • him, and I presume he would not care much about her little hand."
  • "No, no," replied Oswald, laughing; "Edith may do as she pleases. What
  • does he do for you?"
  • "Oh, nothing as yet, for he is hardly recovered, poor fellow," replied
  • Humphrey. "He follows Edith, and helps her to look for the eggs; and
  • last night he set some springes after his own fashion, and certainly
  • beat me, for he took three rabbits and a hare, while I, with all my
  • traps, only took one rabbit."
  • "I think you had better leave that part of your livelihood entirely to
  • him; he has been bred up to it, Humphrey, and it will be his amusement.
  • You must not expect him to work very hard; they are not accustomed to
  • it. They live a roving and never work if they can help it: still, if
  • you can make him fond of you, he may be very useful, for they are very
  • clever and handy."
  • "I hope to make him useful," replied Humphrey; "but still I will not
  • force him to do what he does not like. He is very fond of the pony
  • already, and likes to take care of him."
  • "Bring him over to me one of these days, so that he may know where to
  • find me. It may prove of consequence if you have a message to send, and
  • can not come yourselves."
  • "That is very true," replied Edward; "I shall not forget it. Humphrey,
  • shall you or I go with the cart?"
  • "Humphrey, by all means; it will not do for them to suppose I had the
  • cart from you, Edward; they do not know Humphrey, and he will be off
  • again in the morning before they are up."
  • "Very true," replied Edward.
  • "And it is time for us to set off," replied Oswald. "Will Mistress
  • Alice oblige me with something for my men to eat, for they have fasted
  • the whole day."
  • "Yes," replied Alice; "I will have it ready before the pony is in the
  • cart. Edith, dear, come with me."
  • Humphrey then went out to harness the pony, and when all was ready, he
  • and Oswald set off again.
  • When they arrived at the pitfall, they found Corbould lying between the
  • two other verderers, who were sitting by his side. Corbould was much
  • recovered since his wound had been bound up, and he was raised up and
  • put on the fodder which Humphrey had put into the cart; and they
  • proceeded on their journey to the other side of the forest, the
  • verderers eating what Humphrey had brought for them as they walked
  • along. It was a tedious and painful journey for the wounded man, who
  • shrieked out when the cart was jolted by the wheel getting into a rut
  • or hole; but there was no help for it, and he was very much exhausted
  • when they arrived, which was not till past midnight. Corbould was then
  • taken to his cottage and put on the bed, and another verderer sent for
  • a surgeon; those who had been with Oswald were glad to go to bed, for
  • it had been a fatiguing day. Humphrey remained with Oswald for three
  • hours, and then again returned with Billy, who, although he had crossed
  • the forest three times in the twenty-four hours, appeared quite fresh
  • and ready to go back again.
  • "I will let you know how he gets on, Humphrey, and what account he
  • gives of his falling into the pit; but you must not expect me for a
  • fortnight at least."
  • Humphrey wished Oswald good-by; and Billy was so anxious to get back to
  • his stable, that Humphrey could not keep him at a quiet pace. "Horses,
  • and all animals indeed, know that there is no place like home; it is a
  • pity that men who consider themselves much wiser, have not the same
  • consideration," thought Humphrey, as the pony trotted along. Humphrey
  • thought a good deal about the danger that Edward had been subjected to,
  • and said to himself, "I really think that I should be more comfortable
  • if Edward was away. I am always in a fidget about him. I wish the new
  • king, who is now in France would raise an army and come over. It is
  • better that Edward should be fighting in the field than remain here and
  • risk being shot as a deer-stealer, or put in prison. The farm is
  • sufficient for us all; and when I have taken in more ground it will be
  • much more than sufficient, even if I do not kill the wild cattle. I am
  • fit for the farm, but Edward is not. He is thrown away, living in this
  • obscurity, and he feels it. He will always be in hot water some way or
  • another, that is certain. What a narrow escape he has had with that
  • scoundrel, and yet how little he cares for it! He was intended for a
  • soldier, that is evident; and, if ever he is one, he will be in his
  • element, and distinguish himself, if it pleases God to spare his life.
  • I'll persuade him to stay at home a little while to help me to inclose
  • the other piece of ground; and, after that is done, I'll dig a saw-pit,
  • and see if I can coax Pablo to saw with me. I must go to Lymington and
  • buy a saw. If I once could get the trees sawed up into planks, what a
  • quantity of things I could make, and how I could improve the place!"
  • Thus thought Humphrey, as he went along; he was all for the farm and
  • improvements, and was always calculating when he should have another
  • calf, or a fresh litter of pigs. His first idea was that he would make
  • Pablo work hard, but the advice he had received from Oswald was not
  • forgotten; and he now was thinking how he should coax Pablo into
  • standing below in the sawpit, which was not only hard work, but
  • disagreeable from the sawdust falling into the eyes. Humphrey's
  • cogitations were interrupted by a halloo, and turning round in the
  • direction of the voice, he perceived Edward, and turned the cart to
  • join him.
  • "You've just come in time, Humphrey; I have some provision for Alice's
  • larder. I took my gun and came on the path which I knew you would
  • return by, and I have killed a young buck. He is good meat, and we are
  • scarce of provisions."
  • Humphrey helped Edward to put the venison in the cart, and they
  • returned to the cottage, which was not more than three miles off.
  • Humphrey told Edward the result of his journey, and then proposed that
  • Edward should stop at home for a few days and help him with the new
  • inclosure. To this Edward cheerfully consented; and as soon as they
  • arrived at the cottage, and Humphrey had his breakfast, they took their
  • axes and went out to fell at a cluster of small spruce-fir about a mile
  • off.
  • CHAPTER XIV.
  • "Now, Humphrey, what do you propose to do?"
  • "This," replied Humphrey: "I have marked out three acres or thereabout
  • of the land running in a straight line behind the garden. There is not
  • a tree on it, and it is all good feeding-ground. What I intend to do is
  • to inclose it with the spruce-fir posts and rails that we are about to
  • cut down, and then set a hedge upon a low bank which I shall raise all
  • round inside the rails. I know where there are thousands of
  • seedling-thorns, which I shall take up in the winter, or early in the
  • spring, to put in, as the bank will be ready for them by that time."
  • "Well, that's all very good; but I fear it will be a long while before
  • you have such a quantity of land dug up."
  • "Yes, of course it will; but, Edward, I have plenty of manure to spare,
  • and I shall put it all over this land, and then it will become a rich
  • pasture, and also an earlier pasture than what we can get from the
  • forest, and will be very handy to turn the cows and the calves upon; or
  • even Billy, if we want him in a hurry."
  • "All that is very true," replied Edward; "so that it will be useful at
  • all events, if you do not dig it up."
  • "Indeed it will," replied Humphrey; "I only wish it were six acres
  • instead of three."
  • "I can't say I do," replied Edward, laughing; "you are too grand in
  • your ideas; only think what a quantity of spruces we shall have to cut
  • down on it, to post and rail what you just propose. Let it be three
  • acres first, Humphrey; and when they are inclosed, you may begin to
  • talk of three more."
  • "Well, perhaps you are right, Edward," said Humphrey.
  • "Why, here's Pablo coming after us; he's not coming to work, I presume,
  • but to amuse himself by looking on."
  • "I don't think he's strong enough to do much hard work, Humphrey,
  • although he appears very ingenious."
  • "No, I agree with you; and if he is to work, depend upon it it must not
  • be by having work set out for him; he would take a disgust to it
  • directly. I have another plan for him."
  • "And what is that, Humphrey?"
  • "I shall not set him any thing to do, and shall make him believe that I
  • do not think he is able to do any thing. That will pique him, and I
  • think by that means I shall get more work out of him than you would
  • think, especially when, after he has done it, I express my wonder and
  • give him praise."
  • "Not a bad idea, that; you will work upon his pride, which is probably
  • stronger than his laziness."
  • "I do not think him lazy, but I think him unused to hard work, and
  • having lived a life of wandering and idleness, not very easy to be
  • brought to constant and dayly work, except by degrees, and by the means
  • which I propose. Here we are," continued Humphrey, throwing his ax and
  • bill-hook down, and proceeding to take off his doublet; "now for an
  • hour or two's fulfillment of the sentence of our first parents--to wit,
  • 'the sweat of the brow.'"
  • Edward followed Humphrey's example in taking off his doublet; they
  • selected the long thin trees most fitted for rails, and were hard at
  • work when Pablo came up to them. More than a dozen trees had fallen,
  • and lay one upon the other, before they stopped a while to recover
  • themselves a little.
  • "Well, Pablo," said Humphrey, wiping his forehead, "I suppose you think
  • looking on better than cutting down trees; and so it is."
  • "What cut down trees for?"
  • "To make posts and rails to fence in more ground. I shall not leave the
  • boughs on."
  • "No cut them off by-and-by, and then put poles on the cart and carry
  • them home."
  • Edward and Humphrey then recommenced their labor, and worked for
  • another half hour, when they paused to recover their wind.
  • "Hard work, Pablo," said Humphrey.
  • "Yes, very hard work; Pablo not strong enough."
  • "Oh no, you are not able to do any thing of this kind, I know. No work
  • this for gipsies; they take birds' nests and catch rabbits."
  • "Yes," replied Pablo, nodding, "and you eat them."
  • "So he does, Pablo," said Edward, "so you are useful in your way; for
  • if he had nothing to eat, he would not be able to work. Strong man cut
  • down trees, weak man catch rabbits."
  • "Both good," said Pablo.
  • "Yes, but strong man like work; not strong man not like work, Pablo. So
  • now look on again, for we must have another spell."
  • "Strong man cut down trees, not strong man cut off branches," said
  • Pablo, taking up the bill-hook and setting to work to cut off the
  • boughs, which he did with great dexterity and rapidity.
  • Edward and Humphrey exchanged glances and smiles, and then worked away
  • in silence till it was, as they supposed, dinner time. They were not
  • wrong in their supposition, although they had no other clock than their
  • appetites, which, however, tell the time pretty correctly to those who
  • work hard. Alice had the platters on the table, and was looking out to
  • see if they were coming.
  • "Why, Pablo, have you been at work?" said Edith.
  • "Yes, little missy, work all the morning."
  • "Indeed he has, and has worked very well, and been very useful," said
  • Edward.
  • "It has given you an appetite for your dinner, Pablo, has it not?" said
  • Humphrey.
  • "Have that without work," replied the boy.
  • "Pablo, you are a very good gipsy boy," said Edith, patting his head
  • with a patronizing air; "I shall let you walk out with me and carry the
  • basket to put the eggs in when you come home in the evening."
  • "That is a reward," said Humphrey, laughing.
  • After dinner they continued their labor, and by supper time had so many
  • trees cut down, that they determined to carry home the next day, and
  • lay them along to see how many more they would want. While they put the
  • trees in the cart and took them home, Pablo contrived to lop off the
  • boughs and prepare the poles for them to take away. As soon as they had
  • cut down sufficient and carted them home, they then selected shorter
  • trees for posts; and when Pablo had cleared them of the boughs, they
  • sawed them out the proper lengths, and then carted them home. This
  • occupied nearly the whole week, and then they proceeded to dig holes
  • and set the posts in. The railing was then to be nailed to the posts,
  • and that occupied them three days more; so that it was altogether a
  • fortnight of hard work before the three acres were inclosed.
  • "There," said Humphrey, "that's a good job over; many thanks, Edward,
  • for your assistance; and thank you, too, Pablo, for you really have
  • helped us very much indeed, and are a very useful, good boy. Now for
  • raising the bank; that I must do when I can spare time; but my garden
  • is overrun with weeds, and I must get Edith and Alice to help me there."
  • "If you don't want me any longer, Humphrey," said Edward, "I think I
  • shall go over to see Oswald, and take Pablo with me. I want to know how
  • that fellow Corbould is, and what he says; and whether the intendant
  • has come back; not that I shall go near him or his good little
  • daughter, but I think I may as well go, and it will be a good
  • opportunity of showing Pablo the way to Oswald's cottage."
  • "I think so too; and when you come back, Edward, one of us must go to
  • Lymington, for I require some tools, and Pablo is very ragged. He must
  • have some better clothes than these old ones of ours, if he is to be
  • sent messages. Don't you think so?"
  • "Certainly I do."
  • "And I want a thousand things," said Alice.
  • "Indeed, mistress, won't less than a thousand content you?"
  • "Yes, perhaps not quite a thousand, but I really do want a great many,
  • and I will make you a list of them. I have not pans enough for my milk;
  • I want salt; I want tubs; but I will make out a list, and you will find
  • it a very long one."
  • "Well, I hope you have something to sell to pay for them?"
  • "Yes; I have plenty of butter salted down."
  • "What have you, Edith?"
  • "Oh, my chickens are not large enough yet; as soon as they are Humphrey
  • must get me some ducks and geese; for I mean to keep some; and
  • by-and-by I will have some turkeys, but not yet. I must wait till
  • Humphrey builds me the new house for them he has promised me."
  • "I think you are right, Edith, about the ducks and geese; they will do
  • well on the water behind the yard, and I will dig you out a bigger pool
  • for them."
  • "Edith, my dear, your little fingers are just made to weed my onions
  • well, and I wish you would do it to-morrow morning, if you have time."
  • "Yes, Humphrey, but my little fingers won't smell very nice afterward."
  • "Not till you have washed them, I guess; but there is soap and water,
  • you know."
  • "Yes, I know there is; but if I weed the onions, I can not help Alice
  • to make the butter; however, if Alice can do without me, I will do it."
  • "I want some more seeds sadly," said Humphrey, "and I must make out my
  • list. I must go to Lymington myself this time, Edward, for you will be
  • puzzled with all our wants."
  • "Not if I know exactly what you do want; but as I really do not, and
  • probably should make mistakes, I think it will be better if you do go.
  • But it is bedtime, and as I shall start early, good-night, sisters; I
  • beg you will let me have something to eat before I start. I shall try
  • for some venison as I come back, and shall take Smoker with me; he is
  • quite well again, and his ribs are as stout as ever."
  • "And, Edward," said Alice, "I wish, when you kill any venison, that you
  • would bring home some of those parts which you usually throw away, for
  • I assure you, now that we have three dogs, I hardly know how to find
  • enough for them to eat."
  • "I'll not fail, Alice," replied Edward, "and now once more good-night."
  • Early the next morning Edward took his gun, and, with Pablo and Smoker,
  • set off for Oswald's cottage.
  • Edward talked a great deal with Pablo relative to his former life; and,
  • by the answers which the boy gave him, was satisfied that,
  • notwithstanding his doubtful way of bringing up, the lad was not
  • corrupted, but was a well-minded boy. As they walked through a grove of
  • trees, Edward still talking, Pablo stopped and put his hand before
  • Edward's mouth, and then stooping down, at the same time seizing Smoker
  • by the neck, he pointed with his finger. Edward at first could see
  • nothing, but eventually he made out the horns of an animal just rising
  • above a hillock. It was evidently one of the wild cattle. Edward cocked
  • his gun and advanced cautiously, while Pablo remained where he was,
  • holding Smoker. As soon as he was near enough to hit the head of the
  • animal, Edward leveled and fired, and Pablo let Smoker loose, who
  • bounded forward over the hillock. They followed the dog and found him
  • about to seize a calf which stood by a heifer that Edward had shot.
  • Edward called him over and went up to the animal; it was a fine young
  • heifer, and the calf was not more than a fortnight old.
  • "We can not stop now, Pablo," said Edward. "Humphrey would like to have
  • the calf, and we must take our chance of its remaining by its mother
  • till we come back. I think it will for a day or two, so let us push on."
  • No further adventure happened, and they arrived a little after noon at
  • Oswald's cottage. He was not at home, his wife saying that she believed
  • that he was with the intendant, who had come back from London the day
  • before.
  • "But I will put on my hood and see," said the young woman.
  • In a few minutes she returned with Oswald.
  • "I am glad that you have come, sir," said Oswald, as Edward extended
  • his hand, "as I have just seen the intendant, and he has been asking
  • many questions about you. I am certain he thinks that you are not the
  • grandson of Jacob Armitage, and that he supposes I know who you are. He
  • asked me where your cottage was, and whether I could take him to it, as
  • he wished to speak to you, and said that he felt great interest about
  • you."
  • "And what did you say?"
  • "I said that your cottage was a good day's journey from here, and I was
  • not certain that I knew the exact way, as I had been there but seldom,
  • but that I knew where to find it after I saw the forests of Arnwood; I
  • told him about Corbould and his attempt upon you, and he was very
  • wroth. I never saw him moved before; and young Mistress Patience, she
  • was indeed angry and perplexed, and begged her father to send the
  • assailant away as soon as he could be moved. Master Heatherstone
  • replied, 'Leave it to me, my dear;' and then asked me what account
  • Corbould gave of himself, and his falling into the pit. I told him that
  • Corbould stated that he was following a deer, which he had severely
  • wounded about noonday, and having no dog with him he could not overtake
  • it, although he knew by its bleeding track that it could not hold out
  • much longer. That he followed it until nightfall, and had it in view
  • and close to him, when he fell into the pit."
  • "Well, the story was not badly made up," said Edward, "only for _a
  • deer_ read _man:_ and what did the intendant say to that?"
  • "He said that he believed you, and that Corbould's story was false--as,
  • if it had been a stag that he was following, no one would have known
  • that he had fallen into the pit, and he would have remained there till
  • now. I quite forgot to say, that when the intendant said that he wished
  • to call at your cottage, the young mistress said that she wished to go
  • with him, as you had told her that you had two sisters living with you,
  • and she wished very much to see them and make their acquaintance."
  • "I am afraid that we shall not be able to prevent this visit, Oswald,"
  • replied Edward. "He is in command here, and the forest is in his
  • charge. We must see to it. I only should like, if possible, to have
  • notice of his coming, that we may be prepared."
  • "You need no preparation, sir, if he should come," replied Oswald.
  • "Very true," said Edward; "we have nothing to conceal, and if he finds
  • us in a pickle, it is of no consequence."
  • "Rather the better, sir," replied Oswald. "Let your sisters be at the
  • wash-tub, and you and your brother carting manure; he will then be more
  • likely to have no suspicion of your being otherwise than what you
  • assume to be."
  • "Have you heard any news from London, Oswald?"
  • "Not as yet. I was away yesterday evening, when Master Heatherstone
  • came back, and I have not seen his man this morning. While you eat your
  • dinner, I will go into the kitchen; and if he is not there, Phoebe will
  • be sure to tell me all that she has heard."
  • "Do not say that I am here, Oswald, as I do not wish to see the
  • intendant."
  • "Mum's the word, sir; but you must stay in the cottage, or others will
  • see you, and it may come to his ears."
  • Oswald's wife then put before him a large pie, and some wheaten bread,
  • with a biggin of good beer. Edward helped Pablo to a large allowance,
  • and then filled his own platter; while thus occupied, Oswald Partridge
  • had left the cottage, as agreed.
  • "What do you say, Pablo? do you think you can walk back to-night?"
  • "Yes; like walking at night. My people always do; sleep in a daytime."
  • "Well, I think it will be better to go home: Oswald has only one bed,
  • and I do not wish them to know that I am here; so, Pablo, eat heartily,
  • and then we shall not be so tired. I want to get home, that I may send
  • Humphrey after the calf."
  • "One bed here; you stay," replied Pablo. "I go home, and tell Master
  • Humphrey."
  • "Do you think you would be able to find your way, Pablo?"
  • "Once go one way, always know same way again."
  • "You are a clever fellow, Pablo, and I have a mind to try you. Now
  • drink some beer. I think, Pablo, you shall go home, and tell Humphrey
  • that I and Smoker will be where the heifer lies dead, and have it
  • skinned by nine o'clock tomorrow morning; so, if he comes, he will find
  • me there."
  • "Yes, I go now."
  • "No, not now; you must rest yourself a little more."
  • "Pablo not tired," replied the gipsy, getting up; "be back before
  • supper. As I go along, look at calf and dead cow--see if calf stay with
  • mother."
  • "Very well, then, if you wish it, you may go now," said Edward.
  • Pablo nodded his head and disappeared.
  • A few minutes afterward, Oswald made his appearance.
  • "Is the boy gone?"
  • "Yes; he is gone back to the cottage;" and Edward then stated how he
  • had killed the heifer, and wanted to obtain the calf.
  • "I've an idea that you will find that boy very useful, if he is
  • properly managed."
  • "I think so too," replied Edward; "and I am glad to perceive that he is
  • already attached to all of us. We treat him as ourselves."
  • "You are right; and now for the news that I have to tell you. The Duke
  • Hamilton, the Earl of Holland, and Lord Capel have been tried,
  • condemned, and executed."
  • Edward sighed. "More murder! but we must expect it from those who have
  • murdered their king. Is that all?"
  • "No. King Charles the Second has been proclaimed in Scotland, and
  • invited to come over."
  • "That is indeed news," replied Edward. "Where is he now?"
  • "At the Hague; but it was said that he was going to Paris."
  • "That is all that you have heard?"
  • "Yes; that was what was current when Master Heatherstone, was in town.
  • His man, Samson, gave me the news; and he further said, 'that his
  • master's journey to London was to oppose the execution of the three
  • lords; but it was all in vain.'"
  • "Well," replied Edward, after a pause, "if the king does come over,
  • there will be some work cut out for some of us, I expect. Your news has
  • put me in a fever," continued Edward, taking up the biggin and drinking
  • a large draught of beer.
  • "I thought it would," replied Oswald; "but until the time comes, the
  • more quiet you keep the better."
  • "Yes, Oswald; but I can't talk any more; I must be left alone to think.
  • I will go to bed, as I shall be off early in the morning. Is that
  • fellow, Corbould, getting well?"
  • "Yes, sir; he is out of bed, and walks a little with a stick; but he is
  • still very lame, and will be for some time."
  • "Good-night, Oswald; if I have any thing to say, I will write and send
  • the boy. I do not want to be seen here any more."
  • "It will be best, sir. Good-night; I will put Smoker in the kennel to
  • the right, as he will not be friendly with the other dogs."
  • Edward retired to bed, but not to sleep. The Scots had proclaimed the
  • king, and invited him over. "He will surely come," thought Edward, "and
  • he will have an army round him as soon as he lands." Edward made up his
  • resolution to join the army, as soon as he should hear that the king
  • had landed; and what with considering how he should be able so to do,
  • and afterward building castles as to what he would do, it was long
  • before he fell asleep; and when he did he dreamed of battles and
  • victory--he was charging at the head of his troops--he was surrounded
  • by the dying and the dead. He was wounded, and he was somehow or other
  • well again, as if by magic; and then the scene was changed, and he was
  • rescuing Patience Heatherstone from his own lawless men, and preserving
  • the life of her father, which was about to be sacrificed; and at last
  • he awoke, and found that the daylight peeped through the windows, and
  • that he had slept longer than he intended to do. He arose and dressed
  • himself quickly, and, not waiting for breakfast, went to the kennel,
  • released Smoker from his durance, and set off on his return.
  • Before nine o'clock, he had arrived at the spot where the heifer lay
  • dead. He found the calf still by its side, bleating and walking round
  • uneasily. As he approached with the dog, it went to a farther distance,
  • and there remained. Edward took out his knife and commenced skinning
  • the heifer, and then took out the inside. The animal was quite fresh
  • and good, but not very fat, as may be supposed. While thus occupied,
  • Smoker growled and then sprung forward, bounding away in the direction
  • of the cottage, and Edward thought Humphrey was at hand. In a few
  • minutes, the pony and cart appeared between the trees, with Humphrey
  • and Pablo in it, and Smoker leaping up at his friend Billy.
  • "Good-morning, Humphrey," said Edward: "I am almost ready for you; but
  • the question is, how are we to take the calf? It is as wild as a deer."
  • "It will be a puzzler, without Smoker can run it down," said Humphrey.
  • "I take him, with Smoker," said Pablo.
  • "How will you take it?"
  • Pablo went to the cart, and took out a long small cord, which Humphrey
  • had brought with them, and made a noose at one end; he coiled the rope
  • in his hand, and then threw it out to its full length, by way of trial.
  • "This way I take him, suppose I get near enough. This way take bulls in
  • Spain; call him Lasso. Now come with me." Pablo had his rope again
  • coiled in his hand, and then went round to the other side of the calf,
  • which still remained lowing at about two hundred yards' distance.
  • "Now tell Smoker," cried Pablo.
  • Humphrey set Smoker upon the calf, which retreated from the dog,
  • presenting his head to run at it; and Pablo kept behind the animal,
  • while Smoker attacked it, and drove it near to him.
  • As soon as the calf, which was so busy with the dog that it did not
  • perceive Pablo, came sufficiently near to him, Pablo threw his rope,
  • and caught the loop round the animal's neck. The calf set off galloping
  • toward Humphrey, and dragging Pablo after him, for the latter was not
  • strong enough to hold it.
  • Humphrey went to his assistance, and then Edward; and the calf was
  • thrown down by Smoker, who seized it by the neck, and it was tied and
  • put on the cart in a few minutes.
  • "Well done, Pablo! you are a clever fellow," said Edward, "and this
  • calf shall be yours."
  • "It is a cow calf," said Humphrey, "which I am glad of. Pablo, you did
  • that well, and, as Edward says, the calf belongs to you."
  • Pablo look pleased, but said nothing.
  • The meat and hide were put into the cart, with some of the offal which
  • Alice had asked for the dogs, and they set off on their return home.
  • Humphrey was very anxious to go to Lymington, and was not sorry that he
  • had some meat to take with him: he determined to get off the next
  • morning, and Edward proposed that he should take Pablo with him, that
  • he might know the way there in case of any emergency, for they both
  • felt that Pablo could be trusted. Edward said he would remain at home
  • with his sisters, and see if he could be of any use to Alice; if not,
  • there would be work in the garden. Humphrey and Pablo went away after
  • breakfast, with Billy, and the meat and skin of the heifer in the cart.
  • Humphrey had also a large basket of eggs and three dozen of chickens
  • from Alice to be disposed of, and a list as long as the tail of a kite,
  • of articles which she and Edith required; fortunately there was nothing
  • very expensive on the list, long as it was--but women in those days
  • required needles, pins, buttons, tapes, thread, worsted, and a hundred
  • other little necessaries, as they do now. As soon as they were gone,
  • Edward, who was still castle-building, instead of offering his services
  • to Alice, brought out his father's sword and commenced cleaning it.
  • When he had polished it up to his satisfaction, he felt less inclined
  • than ever to do any thing; so after dinner he took his gun and walked
  • out into the forest that he might indulge in his reveries. He walked
  • on, quite unconscious of the direction in which he was going, and more
  • than once finding his hat knocked off by the branch of a tree which he
  • had not perceived--for the best of all possible reasons, because his
  • eyes were cast on the ground--when his ears were saluted with the
  • neighing of a horse. He looked up and perceived that he was near to a
  • herd of forest ponies, the first that he had seen since he had lived in
  • the forest.
  • This roused him, and he looked about him. "Where can I have been
  • wandering to?" thought Edward; "I never fell in with any of the forest
  • ponies before; I must, therefore, have walked in a direction quite
  • contrary to what I usually do. I do not know where I am--the scenery is
  • new to me. What a fool I am! It's lucky that nobody except Humphrey
  • digs pitfalls, or I should probably have been in one by this time; and
  • I've brought out my gun and left the dog at home. Well, I suppose I can
  • find my way back." Edward then surveyed the whole herd of ponies, which
  • were at no great distance from him. There was a fine horse or two among
  • them, which appeared to be the leaders of the herd. They allowed Edward
  • to approach to within two hundred yards, and then, with manes and tails
  • streaming in the air, they darted off with the rapidity of the wind.
  • "Now I'll puzzle Humphrey when I go back," thought Edward. "He says
  • that Billy is getting old, and that he wishes he could get another
  • pony. I will tell him what a plenty there are, and propose that he
  • should invent some way of catching one. That will be a poser for him;
  • yet I'm sure that he will try, for he is very ingenious. And now, which
  • way am I to turn to find my way home? I think it ought to be to the
  • north; but which is north? for there is no sun out, and now I perceive
  • it looks very like rain. I wonder how long I have been walking! I am
  • sure I don't know." Edward then hurried in a direction which he
  • considered might lead him homeward, and walked fast; but he once more
  • fell into his habit of castle-building, and was talking to himself:
  • "The king proclaimed in Scotland! he will come over of course: I will
  • join his army, and then--" Thus he went on, again absorbed in the news
  • which he had gained from Oswald, till on a sudden he again recollected
  • himself, and perceived that he had lost sight of the copse of trees on
  • a high hill, to which he had been directing his steps. Where was it? He
  • turned round and round, and at last found out that he had been walking
  • away from it. "I must dream no more," thought he, "or if I do indulge
  • in any more daydreams, I certainly shall neither sleep nor dream
  • to-night. It is getting dark already, and here I am lost in the forest,
  • and all through my own foolishness. If the stars do not shine, I shall
  • not know how to direct my steps; indeed, if they do, I don't know
  • whether I have walked south or north, and I am in a pretty pickle; not
  • that I care for being out in the forest on a night like this, but my
  • sisters and Humphrey will be alarmed at my absence. The best thing that
  • I can do, is to decide upon taking some straight line, and continue in
  • it: I must then get out the forest at last, even if I walk right across
  • it. That will be better than going backward and forward, or round and
  • round, as I shall otherwise do, just like a puppy running alter its own
  • tail. So now shine out, stars!" Edward waited until he could make out
  • Charles's Wain, which he well knew, and then the Polar Star. As soon as
  • he was certain of that, he resolved to travel by it due north, and he
  • did so, sometimes walking fast, and at others keeping up a steady trot
  • for a half a mile without stopping. As he was proceeding on his
  • travels, he observed, under some trees ahead of him, a spark of fire
  • emitted; he thought it was a glow-worm at first, but it was more like
  • the striking of a flint against steel; and as he saw it a second time,
  • he stopped that he might ascertain what it might be, before he advanced
  • farther.
  • CHAPTER XV.
  • It was now very dark, as there was no moon, and the stars were often
  • obscured by the clouds, which were heavy and borne along by the wind,
  • which was very high. The light again appeared, and this time Edward
  • heard the clash of the flint against the steel, and he was quite
  • certain that it was somebody striking a light. He advanced very
  • cautiously, and arrived at a large tree, behind which he remained to
  • reconnoiter. The people, whoever they might be, were not more than
  • thirty yards from him; a light spread its rays for a moment or two, and
  • he could make out a figure kneeling and holding his hat to protect it
  • from the wind; then it burned brighter, and he saw that a lantern had
  • been lighted, and then again, of a sudden, all was dark: so Edward
  • immediately satisfied himself that a dark lantern had been lighted and
  • then closed. Who the parties might be, he of course had no idea; but he
  • was resolved that he would ascertain, if he could, before he accosted
  • them and asked his way.
  • "They have no dog," thought Edward, "or it would have growled before
  • this; and it's lucky that I have none either." Edward then crept softly
  • nearer to them: the wind, which was strong, blew from where they were
  • to where Edward stood, so that there was less chance of their hearing
  • his approach.
  • Edward went on his hands and knees, and crawled through the fern until
  • he gained another tree, and within ten yards of them, and from where he
  • could hear what they might say. He was thus cautious, as he had been
  • told by Oswald that there were many disbanded soldiers who had taken up
  • their quarters in the forest, and had committed several depredations
  • upon the houses adjacent to it, always returning to the forest as a
  • rendezvous. Edward listened, and heard one say--
  • "It is not time yet! No, no: too soon by half an hour or more. The
  • people from Lymington, who buy him what he wants, always bring it to
  • him at night, that his retreat may not be discovered. They sometimes do
  • not leave the cottage till two hours after dark, for they do not leave
  • Lymington to go there till it is dark."
  • "Do you know who it is who supplies him with food?"
  • "Yes, the people at the inn in Parliament-street--I forget the sign."
  • "Oh, I know. Yes, the landlord is a downright Malignant in his heart!
  • We might squeeze him well, if we dared show ourselves in Lymington."
  • "Yes, but they would squeeze our necks tighter than would be agreeable,
  • I expect," replied the other.
  • "Are you sure that he has money?"
  • "Quite sure; for I peeped through the chinks of the window-shutters,
  • and I saw him pay for the things brought to him; it was from a canvas
  • bag, and it was gold that he took out."
  • "And where did he put the bag after he had paid them?"
  • "That I can't tell, for, as I knew that they would come out as soon as
  • they were paid, I was obliged to beat a retreat, lest I should be seen."
  • "Well, then, how is it to be managed?"
  • "We must first tap at the door, and try if we can get in as benighted
  • travelers; if that won't do--and I fear it will not--while you remain
  • begging for admittance at the door, and keep him occupied, I will try
  • the door behind, that leads into the garden; and if not the door, I
  • will try the window. I have examined them both well, and have been
  • outside when he has shut up his shutters, and I know the fastenings.
  • With a pane out, I could open them immediately."
  • "Is there any body else besides him in the cottage?"
  • "Yes, a lad who attends him, and goes to Lymington for him."
  • "No women?"
  • "Not one."
  • "But do you think we two are sufficient? Had we not better get more
  • help? There is Broom, and Black the gipsy, at the rendezvous. I can go
  • for them, and be back in time; they are stout and true."
  • "Stout enough, but not true. No, no, I want no sharers in this
  • business, and you know how ill they behaved in the last affair. I'll
  • swear that they only produced half the swag. I like honor between
  • gentlemen and soldiers; and that's why I have chosen you. I know I can
  • trust you, Benjamin. It's time now--what do you say? We are two to one,
  • for I count the boy as nothing. Shall we start?"
  • "I am with you. You say there's a bag of gold, and that's worth
  • fighting for."
  • "Yes, Ben, and I'll tell you: with what I've got buried, and my share
  • of that bag, I shall have enough, I think; and I'll start for the Low
  • Countries, for England's getting rather too warm for me."
  • "Well, I shan't go yet," replied Benjamin. "I don't like your foreign
  • parts; they have no good ale, and I can't understand their talk. I'd
  • sooner remain in jolly old England with a halter twisted ready for me,
  • than pass my life with such a set of chaps, who drink nothing but
  • scheidam, and wear twenty pair of breeches. Come, let's be off; if we
  • get the money, you shall go to the Low Countries, Will, and I'll start
  • for the North, where they don't know me; for if you go, I won't stay
  • here."
  • The two men then rose up; and the one whose name appeared to be Will
  • first examined if the candle in his dark lantern burned well; and then
  • they both set off, followed by Edward, who had heard quite enough to
  • satisfy him that they were bent upon a burglary, if not murder. Edward
  • followed them, so as to keep their forms indistinctly in sight, which
  • was as much as he could do at twenty yards' distance; fortunately the
  • wind was so high that they did not hear his footsteps, although he
  • often trod upon a rotten stick, which snapped as it broke in twain. As
  • near as Edward could guess, he had tracked them about three miles, when
  • they stopped, and he perceived that they were examining their pistols,
  • which they took from their belts. They then went on again, and entered
  • a small plantation of oak-trees, of about forty years' growth--very
  • thick and very dark, with close underwood below. They followed each
  • other through a narrow path, until they came to a cleared place in the
  • middle of the plantation, in which there stood a low cottage,
  • surrounded with covert on every side, with the exception of some thirty
  • yards of land around it. All was still, and as dark as pitch; Edward
  • remained behind the trees, and when the two men again stopped, he was
  • not six feet from them. They consulted in a low tone but the wind was
  • so high that he could not distinguish what they said. At last they
  • advanced to the cottage, and Edward, still keeping within the trees,
  • shifted his position, so that he should be opposite the gable end of
  • the cottage. He observed one man to go up to the front door, while the
  • other went round to the door behind, as had been agreed. Edward threw
  • open the pan of the lock of the gun, and reprimed it, that he might be
  • sure, and then waited for what was to follow. He heard the man Will at
  • the front door, talking and asking for shelter in a plaintive but loud
  • voice; and shortly afterward he perceived a light through the chinks of
  • the shutters--for Edward was continually altering his position to see
  • what was going on in the front and in the back. At one time, he thought
  • of leveling his gun and killing one of the men at once; but he could
  • not make up his mind to do that, as a burglary, although intended, had
  • not yet been committed; so he remained passive until the attack was
  • really made, when he resolved that he would come to the rescue. After
  • some minutes of entreaty that they would open the door, the man in
  • front commenced thumping and beating against it, as if he would make
  • them open the door by force; but this was to attract the attention of
  • those within, and divert it from the attempts that the other was making
  • to get in behind. Edward was aware of this; he now kept his eye upon
  • what was going on at the back. Advancing nearer--which he ventured to
  • do now that both the men were so occupied--he perceived that the fellow
  • had contrived to open the window close to the back door, and was
  • remaining quite close to it with a pistol in his hand, apparently not
  • wishing to run the risk of climbing in. Edward slipped under the eaves
  • of the cottage, not six feet from the man, who remained with his back
  • partly turned to him. Edward then, finding he had obtained this
  • position unperceived, crouched down with his gun ready pointed.
  • As Edward remained in this position, he heard a shrill voice cry out,
  • "They are getting in behind!" and a movement in cottage. The man near
  • him, who had his pistol in his hand, put his arm through the window and
  • fired inside. A shriek was given, and Edward fired his gun into the
  • body of the man, who immediately fell. Edward lost no time in reloading
  • his gun, during which he heard the bursting open of the front door and
  • the report of firearms; then all was silent for a moment, excepting the
  • wailing of somebody within. As soon as his gun was reloaded, Edward
  • walked round to the front of the cottage, where he found the man who
  • was called Ben, lying across the threshold of the open door. He stepped
  • across the body, and, looking into the room within, perceived a body
  • stretched on the floor, and a young lad weeping over it.
  • "Don't be alarmed, I am a friend," said Edward, going in to where the
  • body lay; and, taking the light which was at the farther end of the
  • chamber, he placed it on the floor, that he might examine the state of
  • the person, who was breathing heavily, and apparently badly wounded.
  • "Rise up, my lad," said Edward, "and let me see if I can be of any use."
  • "Ah, no!" cried the boy, throwing back his long hair from his temples,
  • "he bleeds to death!"
  • "Bring me some water, quick," said Edward, "there's a good lad, while I
  • see where he is hurt."
  • The boy ran up to fetch the water, and Edward discovered that the ball
  • had entered the neck above the collar-bone, and that the blood poured
  • out of the man's mouth, who was choking with the effusion. Although
  • ignorant of surgery, Edward thought that such a wound must be mortal;
  • but the man was not only alive but sensible, and although he could not
  • utter a word, he spoke with his eyes and with signs. He raised his hand
  • and pointed to himself first, and shook his head, as if to say that it
  • was all over with him; and then he turned round his head, as if looking
  • for the lad, who was now returning with the water. When the lad again
  • knelt by his side, weeping bitterly, the man pointed to him, and gave
  • such an imploring look that Edward immediately comprehended what he
  • wished: it was to ask protection for the boy. It could not be
  • misunderstood, and could Edward do otherwise than promise it to the
  • dying man? His generous nature could not refuse it, and he said, "I
  • understand you; you wish me to take care of your boy when you are gone.
  • Is it not so?"
  • The man signified assent.
  • "I promise you I will do so. I will take him into my own family, and he
  • shall share with us."
  • The man raised his hand again, and a gleam of joy passed over his
  • features, as he took the hand of the lad and put it into that of
  • Edward. His eyes were then fixed upon Edward as if to scrutinize into
  • his character by his features, while the former bathed his temples and
  • washed the blood from his mouth with the water brought by the boy, who
  • appeared in a state of grief so violent as to paralyze his senses.
  • After a minute or two, another effusion of blood choked the wounded
  • man, who, after a short struggle, fell back dead.
  • "He is gone!" thought Edward, "and now what is to be done? I must first
  • ascertain whether the two villains are dead or not. Edward took a light
  • and examined the body of Ben, lying over the threshold of the door; the
  • man was quite dead, the ball having entered his brain. He was
  • proceeding round the outside of the cottage to examine the state of the
  • other man, whom he had shot himself; but the wind nearly blew out the
  • light, and he therefore returned to the chamber and placed it on the
  • floor, near to where the boy lay insensible over the corpse of the man
  • who had died in the arms of Edward; and then went out without a light,
  • and with his gun, to the other side of the cottage, where the other
  • robber had fallen. As he approached the man, a faint voice was heard to
  • say--
  • "Ben, Ben! some water, for the love of God! Ben, I'm done for!"
  • Edward, without giving an answer, went back to the room for the water,
  • which he took round to the man, and put it to his lips; he felt that he
  • was bound by humanity so to do to a dying man, scoundrel though he
  • might be. It was still dark, but not so dark as it had previously been,
  • for the late moon was just rising.
  • The man drank the water eagerly, and said, "Ben, I can speak now, but I
  • shan't long." He then pulled the basin toward him again, and after he
  • had drank, ho said, in broken sentences, "I feel--that I'm bleeding--to
  • death--inside." Then he paused. "You know the oak--struck by
  • lightning--a mile north--of this. Oh! I'm going fast. Three yards from
  • it south--I buried all my--money; it's yours. Oh! another drink!" The
  • man again attempted to drink out of the basin proffered by Edward, but
  • as he made the attempt, he fell back with a groan.
  • Edward perceiving that he was dead, returned to the cottage to look
  • after the lad, who still remained prostrate and embracing the corpse in
  • the chamber. Edward then reflected upon what had best be done. After a
  • time, he decided upon dragging away the body of the robber named Ben
  • outside of the threshold, and then securing the door. This, with some
  • trouble, he effected, and he then made fast the window that had been
  • forced open behind. Before he removed the boy, who lay with his face
  • buried on the corpse, and appeared to be in a state of insensibility,
  • Edward examined the corpse as it lay. Although plainly dressed, yet it
  • was evident that it was not the body of a rustic; the features were
  • fair, and the beard was carefully cut; the hands were white, and the
  • fingers long, and evidently had never been employed in labor. That the
  • body was that of some superior person disguised as a rustic, was
  • evident, and this was corroborated by the conversation which took place
  • between the two robbers. "Alas!" thought Edward, "the family of Arnwood
  • appear not to be the only people who are in disguise in this forest.
  • That poor boy! he must not remain there." Edward looked round, and
  • perceived that there was a bed in the adjoining room, the door of which
  • was open; he lifted up the boy, and carried him, still insensible, into
  • the room, and laid him on the bed. He then went for some more water,
  • which he found and threw into his face, and poured a little into his
  • mouth. Gradually the boy stirred, and recovered from his stupor, and
  • then Edward held the water to his mouth, and made him drink some, which
  • he did; and then, suddenly aroused to a recollection of what had
  • passed, the boy gave a shriek of woe, and burst into a paroxysm of
  • tears. This ended in convulsive sobbings and low moanings. Edward felt
  • that he could do no more at present, and that it would be better if he
  • was left for a time to give vent to his grief. Edward sat down on a
  • stool by the side of the orphan, and remained for some time in deep and
  • melancholy thought. "How strange," thought he at last, "it is, that I
  • should feel so little as I do now, surrounded by death, compared to
  • what I did when good old Jacob Armitage died! Then I felt it deeply,
  • and there was an awe in death. Now I no longer dread it. Is it because
  • I loved the good old man, and felt that I had lost a friend? No, that
  • can not be the cause; I may have felt more grief, but not awe or dread.
  • Or is it because that was the first time that I had seen death, and it
  • is the first sight of death which occasions awe? or is it because that
  • every day I have fancied myself on the battle-field, with hundreds
  • lying dead and wounded around me, in my dreamings? I know not. Poor old
  • Jacob died peaceably in his bed, like a good Christian and trusting,
  • after a blameless life, to find mercy through his Savior. Two of these
  • who are now dead, out of the three, have been, summoned away in the
  • height of their wickedness, and in the very commission of crime; the
  • third has been foully murdered, and out of three lying dead, one has
  • fallen by my own hand, and yet I feel not so much as when I attended
  • the couch, and listened to the parting words of a dying Christian! I
  • cannot account for it, or reason why; I only know that it is so, and I
  • now look upon death unconcerned. Well, this is a kind of preparation
  • for the wholesale murder and horrors of the battlefield, which I have
  • so long sighed for: God forgive me if I am wrong! And this poor boy! I
  • have promised to protect him, and I will. Could I fail my promise, I
  • should imaging the spirit of his father (as I presume he was) looking
  • down and upbraiding me. No, no, I will protect him. I and my brother
  • and sisters have been preserved and protected, and I were indeed vile
  • if I did not do to others as I have been done by. And now let me
  • reflect what is to be done. I must not take the boy away, and bury the
  • bodies; this person has friends at Lymington, and they will come here.
  • The murder has taken place in the forest: then I must let the intendant
  • know what has occurred. I will send over to Oswald; Humphrey shall go.
  • Poor fellow! what a state of anxiety must he and my little sisters be
  • in, at my not returning home! I had quite forgotten that, but it can
  • not be helped. I will wait till sunrise, and then see if the boy will
  • be more himself, and probably from him I shall be able to find out what
  • part of the forest I am in."
  • Edward took up the candle and went into the room in which he had laid
  • the boy on the bed. He found him in a sound sleep. "Poor fellow," said
  • Edward, "he has for a time forgotten his misery. What a beautiful boy
  • he is! I long to know his history. Sleep on, my poor fellow! it will do
  • you service."
  • Edward then returned to the other room, and recollected, or, rather,
  • was reminded, that he had had no supper, and it was now nearly dawn of
  • day. He looked into a cupboard and found plenty of provisions, and some
  • flasks of wine. "I have earned my supper," thought he, "and I will not,
  • therefore, deny myself." So ho brought out the viands and a flask of
  • wine, and made a hearty meal. "It is long since I have tasted wine,"
  • thought he, "and it maybe long ere I drink it again. I have little
  • relish for it now: it is too fiery to the palate. I recollect, when a
  • child, how my father used to have me at the table, and give me a stoup
  • of claret, which I could hardly lift to my lips, to drink to the health
  • of the king." The memory of the king raised other thoughts in Edward's
  • mind, and he again sunk into one of his reveries, which lasted till he
  • fell into a slumber. When he woke up, it was at the voice of the boy,
  • who in his sleep had cried out "Father!" Edward started up, and found
  • that the sun was an hour high, and that he must have slept some time.
  • He gently opened the cottage door, looked at the bodies of the two men,
  • and then walked out to survey the locality of the cottage, which he had
  • but faintly made out during the night. He found that it was surrounded
  • by a thicket of trees and underwood, so close and thick that there
  • appeared to him no outlet in any direction. "What a place for
  • concealment!" thought Edward, "but still these prowling thieves
  • discovered it. Why, troops of horse might scour the forest for months,
  • and never discover such a hiding-place." Edward walked round by the
  • side of the thicket, to find out the track by which the robbers had
  • entered when he followed them, and at last succeeded in doing so. He
  • followed the path through the thicket until he was clear of it, and
  • again in the forest; but the scenery outside was unknown to him, and he
  • had not an idea as to what part of the forest it was in. "I must
  • question the boy," thought Edward. "I will go back and wake him up, for
  • it is time that I was moving." As he was again turning into the
  • thicket, he heard a dog giving tongue, as if on a scent. It came nearer
  • and nearer to him, and Edward remained to see what it might be. In a
  • moment more, he perceived his own dog, Smoker, come bounding out of a
  • neighboring copse, followed by Humphrey and Pablo. Edward hallooed.
  • Smoker sprung toward him, leaping up, and loading him with caresses,
  • and in another moment he was in Humphrey's arms.
  • "Oh, Edward, let me first thank God!" said Humphrey, as the tears
  • started and rolled down his cheeks. "What a night we have passed! What
  • has happened? That dear fellow, Pablo, thought of putting Smoker on the
  • scent; he brought out your jacket and showed it to Smoker, and gave it
  • him to smell, and then led him along till he was on your footsteps; and
  • the dog followed him, it seems, although it has been round and round in
  • every direction, till at last he has brought us to you."
  • Edward shook hands with Pablo, and thanked him. "How far are we from
  • the cottage, Humphrey?"
  • "About eight miles, I should say, Edward; not more."
  • "Well, I have much to tell you, and I must tell it to you in few words
  • before I go farther, and afterward I will tell you all in detail."
  • Edward then gave a succinct narration of what had occurred, and, having
  • thus prepared Humphrey and Pablo for what they were to see, led the way
  • back through the thicket to the cottage inside of it. Humphrey and
  • Pablo were much shocked at the scene of slaughter which presented
  • itself to their eyes; and, after having viewed the bodies, they began
  • to consult what had best be done.
  • The proposal of Edward, that Humphrey should go over and make known the
  • circumstances to Oswald, that they might be communicated to the
  • intendant, was readily acceded to; and Pablo, it was agreed, should go
  • home and tell Alice and Edith that Edward was safe.
  • "But now, Humphrey, about this boy; we can not leave him here."
  • "Where is he?"
  • "He still sleeps, I believe. The question is, whether you should ride
  • over with the pony, or walk, and leave Pablo to return with the pony
  • and cart; for I will not take the boy away, or leave the house myself,
  • without removing the property which belongs to the boy, and of which I
  • will make inquiry when he awakes. Besides, there is money, by what the
  • robbers stated in my hearing, which of course must be taken care of for
  • him."
  • "I think it will be best for me to walk over, Edward. If I ride, I
  • should arrive too late in the afternoon for any thing to be done till
  • next morning, and if I walk I shall be in time enough; so that is
  • settled. Besides, it will give you more time to remove the boy's
  • property, which, as his father was in all probability a Malignant, and
  • denounced man, they might think right to secure for the government."
  • "Very true; then be it so. Do you start for the intendant's; and,
  • Pablo, go home and fetch the pony and cart, while I remain here with
  • the boy, and get every thing ready."
  • Humphrey and Pablo both set off, and then Edward went to waken the boy,
  • still lying on the bed.
  • "Come, you must get up now. You know that what's done can not be
  • undone; and if you are a good boy, and have read the Bible, you must
  • know that we must submit to the will of God, who is our kind father in
  • heaven."
  • "Ah me!" said the boy, who was awake when Edward went to him; "I know
  • well it is my duty, but it is a hard duty, and I am heartbroken. I have
  • lost my father, the only friend I had in the world; who is there to
  • love and to cherish me now? What will become of me!"
  • "I promised your father, before he died, that I would take care of you,
  • my poor fellow; and a promise is sacred with me, even if it were not
  • made to a dying man. I will do my best, depend upon it, for I have
  • known myself what it is to want and to find a protector. You shall live
  • with me and my brother and sisters, and you shall have all we have."
  • "Have you sisters, then?" replied the boy.
  • "Yes; I have sent for the cart to take you away from this, and to-night
  • you shall be in our cottage; but now tell me--I do not ask who your
  • father was, or why he was living here in secret, as I found it out by
  • what I overheard the robbers say to one another--but how long have you
  • lived here?"
  • "More than a year."
  • "Whose cottage is it?"
  • "My father bought it when he came, as he thought it safer so, that he
  • might not be discovered or betrayed; for he had escaped from prison
  • after having been condemned to death by the Parliament."
  • "Then he was a loyal man to his king?"
  • "Yes, he was, and that was his only crime."
  • "Then fear not, my good boy; we are all loyal as well as he was, and
  • will never be otherwise. I tell you this that you may safely trust to
  • us. Now, if the cottage was his, the furniture and property were his
  • also?"
  • "Yes, all was his."
  • "And it is now yours, is it not?"
  • "I suppose so," said the boy, bursting into tears.
  • "Then listen to me: your father is safe from all persecution now; he
  • is, I trust, in heaven; and you they can not touch, as you have done
  • nothing to offend them; but still they will take possession of your
  • father's property as soon as they know of his death, and find out who
  • he was. This, for your sake I wish to prevent them from doing, and have
  • therefore sent for the cart, that I may remove to my cottage every
  • thing that is of value, that it may be held for your benefit; some day
  • or another you may require it. The murder having been committed in the
  • forest, and I having been a witness and, moreover, having shot one of
  • the robbers, I have considered it right to send to the intendant of the
  • forest, to give him notice of what has taken place within his
  • jurisdiction. I do not think he is so bad a man as the rest; but still,
  • when he comes here, he may consider it his duty to take possession of
  • every thing for the Parliament, as I have no doubt such are his orders,
  • or will be when he communicates with the Parliament. Now this is a
  • robbery which I wish to prevent, by carrying away your property before
  • they come over, which they will to-morrow; and I propose that you shall
  • accompany me, with all that you can take away, or that may be useful,
  • this evening."
  • "You are very kind," replied the boy. "I will do all you wish, but I
  • feel very weak, and very unwell."
  • "You must exert yourself, for your own sake, my poor fellow. Come, now,
  • sit up and put all your own clothes together. Collect every thing in
  • this room, while I look about the house. And tell me, had not your
  • father some money? for the robbers said that they saw him counting it
  • out of a sack, through the chinks of the shutters, and that was why
  • they made the attack."
  • "Hateful money!" cried the boy. "Yes, he had, I believe, a great deal
  • of money; but I can not say how much."
  • "Now get up, and do as I request, my dear boy," said Edward, raising
  • him up in his arms; "when your grief is lessened, you may have many
  • happy days yet in store for you; you have a Father in heaven that you
  • must put your trust in, and with him you will find peace."
  • The boy rose up, and Edward closed the door of the chamber that he
  • might not see his father's corpse.
  • "I do put my trust in Heaven, good sir," replied the boy; "for it has
  • already sent me a kind friend in my distress. You are good, I am sure;
  • I see that in your face. Alas! how much more wretched would have been
  • my condition if you had not fortunately come to our assistance! too
  • late indeed to save my poor father, but not too late to succor and
  • console his child. I will go away with you, for I can not stay here."
  • CHAPTER XVI.
  • Edward then took the counterpane off the bed, and went with it into the
  • next room. He gently drew the body to the corner of the room, and
  • covered it up with the counterpane, and then proceeded to examine the
  • cupboards, etc. In one he found a good store of books, in another there
  • was linen of all sorts, a great many curious arms, two suits of bright
  • armor such as was worn in those times, pistols, and guns, and
  • ammunition. On the floor of one of the cupboards was an iron chest
  • about two feet by eighteen inches. It was locked. Edward immediately
  • concluded that this chest held the money of the unfortunate man; but
  • where was the key? Most likely about his person. He did not like to
  • afflict the poor boy by putting the question to him, but he went to the
  • body and examined the pockets of the clothes; he found a bunch of
  • several keys, which he took, and then replaced the coverlid. He tried
  • one of the keys, which appeared to be of the right size, to the lock of
  • the iron chest, and found that it fitted it. Satisfied with this, he
  • did not raise the lid of the chest, but dragged it out into the center
  • of the room. There were many things of value about the room; the
  • candlesticks were silver, and there were goblets of the same metal.
  • Edward collected all these articles, and a timepiece, and put them into
  • a basket, of which there were two large ones at the end of the room,
  • apparently used for holding firewood. Every thing that he thought could
  • be useful, or of value, he gathered together for the benefit of the
  • poor orphan boy. He afterward went into another small room, where he
  • found sundry small trunks and cases locked up. These he brought out
  • without examining, as he presumed that they contained what was of
  • value, or they would not be locked. When he had collected every thing,
  • he found that he had already more than the cart could carry in one
  • trip; and he wanted to take some bedding with him, as he had not a
  • spare bed in the cottage to give to the boy. Edward decided in his own
  • mind that he would take the most valuable articles away that night, and
  • return with the cart for the remainder early on the following morning.
  • It was now past noon, and Edward took out of the cupboard what victuals
  • were left, and then went into the chamber where the boy was, and begged
  • that he would eat something. The poor boy said that he had no appetite;
  • but Edward insisted and at last prevailed upon him to eat some bread
  • and drink a glass of wine, which proved of great service to him. The
  • poor fellow shuddered as he saw the body covered up in the corner of
  • the room, but said nothing. Edward was trying to make him eat a little
  • more, when Pablo made his appearance at the door.
  • "Have you put up all that you want in the bedchamber?" said Edward.
  • "Yes, I have put up every thing."
  • "Then we will bring them out. Come, Pablo, you must help us."
  • Pablo made signs, and pointed to the door. Edward went out.
  • "First pull body away from this."
  • "Yes," replied Edward, "we must do so."
  • Edward and Pablo pulled the body of the robber on one side of the
  • doorway, and threw over it some dried fern which lay by; they then
  • backed the cart down to the door; the iron chest was first got in, then
  • all the heavy articles, such as armor, guns, and books, etc., and by
  • that time the cart was more than half loaded. Edward then went into the
  • chamber, and brought out the packages the boy had made up, and put them
  • all in the cart until it was loaded high up; they brought out some
  • blankets, and laid over all to keep things steady; and then Edward told
  • the boy that all was ready, and that they had better go.
  • "Yes, I am willing," replied he, with streaming eyes; "but let me see
  • him once more."
  • "Come, then," said Edward, leading him to the corpse, and uncovering
  • the face.
  • The boy knelt down, kissed the forehead and cold lips, covered up the
  • face again, and then rose and wept bitterly on Edward's shoulder.
  • Edward did not attempt to check his sorrow, he thought it better it
  • should have vent; but, after a time, he led the boy by degrees till
  • they were out of the cottage.
  • "Now then," said Edward, "we must go, or we shall be late. My poor
  • little sisters have been dreadfully alarmed at my not having come home
  • last night, and I long to clasp them in my arms."
  • "Indeed you must," replied the boy, wiping away his tears, "and I am
  • very selfish; let us go on."
  • "No room for cart to get through wood," said Pablo; "hard work, cart
  • empty--more hard work, cart full."
  • And so it proved to be; and it required all the united efforts of
  • Billy, Edward, and Pablo to force a passage for the cart through the
  • narrow pathway; but at last it was effected, and then they went on at a
  • quick pace, and in less than two hours the cottage was in sight. When
  • within two hundred yards of it, Edith, who had been on the watch, came
  • bounding out, and flew into Edward's arms, and covered him with kisses.
  • "You naughty Edward, to frighten us so!"
  • "Look, Edith, I have brought you a nice little playfellow. Welcome him,
  • dearest."
  • Edith extended her hand as she looked into the boy's face.
  • "He is a pretty boy, Edward, much prettier than Pablo."
  • "No, Missy Edith," said Pablo; "Pablo more man than he."
  • "Yes, you may be more man, Pablo; but you are not so pretty."
  • "And where is Alice?"
  • "She was getting supper ready, and I did not tell her that I saw you
  • coming, because I wanted first kiss."
  • "You little jealous thing! but here comes Alice. Dear Alice, you have
  • been very uneasy, but it was not my fault," said Edward, kissing her.
  • "If I had not been where I was, this poor boy would have been killed as
  • well as his father. Make him welcome, Alice, for he is an orphan now,
  • and must live with us. I have brought many things in the cart, and
  • tomorrow we will bring more, for we have no bed for him, and to-night
  • he must sleep with me."
  • "We will make him as happy as we can, Edward; and we will be sisters to
  • him," said Alice, looking at the boy, who was blushing deeply. "How old
  • are you, and what is your name?"
  • "I shall be thirteen years old next January," replied the boy.
  • "And your Christian name?"
  • "I will tell you by-and-by," replied he, confused.
  • They arrived at the cottage, and Edward and Pablo were busy unpacking
  • the cart, and putting all the contents into the inner chamber, where
  • Pablo now slept, when Alice, who, with Edith, had been talking to the
  • boy, came to Edward and said,
  • "Edward, she's a girl!"
  • "A girl!" replied Edward, astonished.
  • "Yes, she has told me so, and wished me to tell you."
  • "But why does she wear boys' clothes?"
  • "It was her father's wish, as he was very often obliged to send her to
  • Lymington to a friend's house, and he was afraid of her getting into
  • trouble; but she has not told me her story as yet--she says that she
  • will to-night."
  • "Well, then," replied Edward, "you must make up a bed for her in your
  • room to-night. Take Pablo's bed, and he shall sleep with me. To-morrow
  • morning I will bring some more bedding from her cottage."
  • "How Humphrey will be surprised when he comes back!" said Alice,
  • laughing..
  • "Yes; she will make a nice little wife for him some years hence; and
  • she may prove an heiress, perhaps, for there is an iron chest with
  • money in it."
  • Alice returned to her new companion, and Edward and Pablo continued to
  • unload the cart.
  • "Well, Pablo, I suppose you will allow that, now that you know she is a
  • girl, she is handsomer than you?"
  • "Oh yes," replied Pablo, "very handsome girl; but too much girl for
  • handsome boy."
  • At last every thing was out of the cart, the iron chest dragged into
  • Pablo's room, and Billy put into his stable and given his supper, which
  • he had well earned, for the cart had been very heavily loaded. They
  • then all sat down to supper, Edward saying to their new acquaintance,
  • "So I find that I am to have another sister instead of another brother.
  • Now you will tell me your name?"
  • "Yes; Clara is my name."
  • "And why did you not tell me that you were a girl?"
  • "I did not like, because I was in boys' clothes, and felt ashamed;
  • indeed I was too unhappy to think about what I was. My poor dear
  • father!" and she burst into tears.
  • Alice and Edith kissed her and consoled her, and she became calm again.
  • After supper was over, they busied themselves making arrangements for
  • her sleeping in their room, and then they went to prayers.
  • "We have much to be thankful for, my dears," said Edward. "I am sure I
  • feel that I have been in great danger, and I only wish that I had been
  • more useful than I have been; but it has been the will of God, and we
  • must not arraign his decrees. Let us return thanks for his great
  • mercies, and bow in submission to his dispensations, and pray that he
  • will give peace to poor little Clara, and soften her affliction."
  • And as Edward prayed, little Clara knelt and sobbed, while Alice
  • caressed her with her arm round her waist, and stopped at times her
  • prayer to kiss and console her. When they had finished, Alice led her
  • away to her bedroom, followed by Edith, and they put her to bed. Edward
  • and Pablo also retired, both worn out by the fatigue and excitement of
  • the day.
  • They were up on the following morning at day-dawn, and, putting Billy
  • in the cart, set off for the cottage of Clara. They found every thing
  • as they had left it, and, having loaded the cart with what had been
  • left behind the day before, and bedding for two beds, with several
  • articles of furniture which Edward thought might be useful, there being
  • still a little room left, Edward packed up, in a wooden case with dried
  • fern, all the wine that was in the cupboard; and, having assisted Pablo
  • in forcing the cart once more through the path in the wood, he left him
  • to return home with the cart, while he remained to wait the arrival of
  • Humphrey, and whoever might come with him from the intendant's. About
  • ten o'clock, as he was watching outside of the wood, he perceived
  • several people approaching him, and soon made out that Humphrey, the
  • intendant, and Oswald were among the number. When they came up to him,
  • Edward saluted the intendant in a respectful manner, and shook hands
  • with Oswald, and then led the way by the narrow path which led through
  • the wood to the cottage. The intendant was on horseback, but all the
  • rest were on foot.
  • The intendant left his horse to the care of one of the verderers, and
  • went through the wood on foot with the rest of the party, preceded by
  • Edward. He appeared to be very grave and thoughtful, and Edward thought
  • that there was a coolness in his manner toward himself--for it must be
  • recollected that Mr. Heatherstone had not seen Edward since he had
  • rendered him such service in saving the life of his daughter. The
  • consequence was that Edward felt somewhat indignant; but he did not
  • express his feelings, by his looks even, but conveyed the party in
  • silence to the cottage. On their arrival, Edward pointed to the body of
  • the robber, which had been covered with fern, and the verderers exposed
  • it.
  • "By whose hand did that man fall?" said the intendant.
  • "By the hand of the party who lived in the cottage."
  • Edward then led the way round to the back of the cottage where the
  • other robber lay--
  • "And this man was slain by my hand," replied Edward.
  • "We have one more body to see," continued Edward, leading the way into
  • the cottage, and uncovering the corpse of Clara's father.
  • Mr. Heatherstone looked at the face and appeared much moved. "Cover it
  • up," said he, turning away; and then sitting down on a chair close to
  • the table--
  • "And how was this found?" he said.
  • "I neither saw this person killed, nor the robber you first saw, but I
  • heard the report of the firearms at almost the same moment, and I
  • presume that they fell by each other's hands."
  • The intendant called his clerk, who had accompanied him, and desired
  • him to get ready his writing materials, and then said--
  • "Edward Armitage, we will now take down your deposition as to what has
  • occurred."
  • Edward then commenced by stating, "that he was out in the forest and
  • had lost his way, and was seeking a path home."
  • "You were out in the forest during the night?
  • "Yes, sir, I was."
  • "With your gun?"
  • "I always carry my gun," replied Edward.
  • "In pursuit of game?"
  • "No, sir; I was not. I have never been out in pursuit of game during
  • night-time in my life."
  • "What were you then about? you did not go out for nothing?"
  • "I went out to commune with my own thoughts; I was restless, and I
  • wandered about without knowing where I went, and that is the reason why
  • I lost my way."
  • "And pray what may have excited you?"
  • "I will tell you: I was over with Oswald Partridge the day before; you
  • had just arrived from London, and he gave me the news that King Charles
  • had been proclaimed in Scotland, and that news unsettled me."
  • "Well, proceed."
  • Edward met with no more interruption in his narrative. He stated
  • briefly all that had taken place, from the time he fell in with the
  • robbers till the winding up of the catastrophe.
  • The clerk took down all that Edward had stated, and then read it over
  • to him to ascertain if he had written it down correctly, and then
  • inquired of Edward "if he could read and write?"
  • "I should hope so," replied Edward, taking the pen and signing his name.
  • The clerk stared, and then said--"People in your condition do not often
  • know how to read and write, Mr. Forester, and therefore you need not be
  • offended at the question."
  • "Very true," replied Edward. "May I ask if my presence is considered
  • any longer to be necessary?"
  • "You stated that there was a boy in the house, young man," said the
  • intendant: "what has become of him?"
  • "He is removed to my cottage."
  • "Why did you do so?"
  • "Because when his father died I promised to him that I would take care
  • of his child; and I intend to keep my word."
  • "You had spoken with him, then, before he died?" said the intendant.
  • "Not so; it was all carried on by signs on his part, but it was as
  • intelligible as if he spoke, and what I replied he well understood; and
  • I really think I removed a great anxiety off his mind by giving him the
  • promise."
  • The intendant paused, and then said--"I perceive that some articles
  • have been removed--the bedding, for instance--have you taken any thing
  • away?"
  • "I have removed bedding, for I had no bed to offer to the lad, and he
  • told me that the cottage and furniture belonged to his father; of
  • course by his father's death it became his, and I felt that I was
  • warranted in so doing."
  • "May I ask, did you remove any papers?"
  • "I can not tell; the lad packed up his own things; there were some
  • boxes removed, which were locked up, and the contents are to me wholly
  • unknown. I could not leave the boy here in this scene of death, and I
  • could not well leave the property belonging to him to be at the mercy
  • of any other plunderers of the forest. I did as I considered right for
  • the benefit of the boy, and in accordance with the solemn promise which
  • I made to his father."
  • "Still the property should not have been removed. The party who now
  • lies dead there is a well-known Malignant."
  • "How do you know that, sir?" interrupted Edward; "did you recognize him
  • when you saw the body?"
  • "I did not say that I did," replied the intendant.
  • "You either must have so done, sir." replied Edward, "or you must have
  • been aware that he was residing in this cottage: you have to choose
  • between."
  • "You are bold, young man," replied the intendant, "and I will reply to
  • your observation. I did recognize the party when I saw his face, and I
  • knew him to be one who was condemned to death, and who escaped from
  • prison a few days before the one appointed for his execution. I heard
  • search had been made for him, but in vain, and it was supposed that he
  • had escaped beyond the seas. Now his papers may be the means of giving
  • the Parliament information against others as well as himself."
  • "And enable them to commit a few more murders," added Edward.
  • "Silence, young man; the authorities must not be spoken of in so
  • irreverent a manner. Are you aware that your language is treasonable?"
  • "According to act of Parliament, as now present constituted, it may
  • be," replied Edward, "but as a loyal subject of King Charles the
  • Second, I deny it."
  • "I have no concern with your loyalty, young man, but I will not admit
  • any language to be uttered in my presence against the ruling powers.
  • The inquest is over. Let every one leave the house except Edward
  • Armitage, to whom I would speak alone."
  • "Excuse me one moment, sir," said Edward, "and I will return."
  • Edward went out with the rest, and, calling Humphrey aside, said to
  • him, "Contrive to slip away unperceived; here are the keys; haste to
  • the cottage as fast as you can; look for all tho papers you can find in
  • the packages taken there; bury them and the iron chest in the garden,
  • or anywhere where they can not be discovered."
  • Humphrey nodded and turned away, and Edward re-entered the cottage.
  • He found the intendant was standing over the corpse; he had removed the
  • coverlid, and was looking mournfully down on the face disfigured with
  • blood. Perceiving the entrance of Edward, he again took his seat at the
  • table, and after a pause said,
  • "Edward Armitage, that you have been brought up very superior to your
  • station in life is certain; and that you are loyal, bold, and resolute
  • is equally so; you have put me under an obligation which I never can
  • repay, even if you allowed me to exert myself in your behalf. I take
  • this opportunity of acknowledging it; and now allow me to say, that,
  • for these times, you are much too frank and impetuous. This is no time
  • for people to give vent to their feelings and opinions. Even I am as
  • much surrounded with spies as others, and am obliged to behave myself
  • accordingly. Your avowed attachment to the king's cause has prevented
  • me from showing that more than cordiality that I really feel for you,
  • and to which you are in every way entitled."
  • "I can not conceal my opinions, sir; I was brought up in the house of a
  • loyal Cavalier, and never will be otherwise."
  • "Granted--why should you be? but do you not yourself see that you do
  • the cause more harm than good by thus avowing your opinions when such
  • avowal is useless? If every other man in the county, who is of your
  • opinion, was to express himself, now that your cause is hopeless, as
  • you have done, the prisons would be crowded, the executions would be
  • dayly, and the cause would be, in proportion, weakened by the loss of
  • the most daring. 'Bide your time' is a good motto, and I recommend it
  • to you. You must feel that, however we may be at variance in our
  • opinions, Edward Armitage, my hand and my authority never can be used
  • against one to whom I am so indebted; and, feeling this, you compel me,
  • in the presence of others, to use a harshness and coldness toward you,
  • contrary, wholly contrary, to what, you may believe me when I say it, I
  • really feel for one who so nobly rescued my only child."
  • "I thank you, sir, for your advice, which I feel to be good, and for
  • your good opinion, which I value."
  • "And which I feel that you deserve; and you shall have, young as you
  • are, my confidence, which I know you will not abuse. I did know this
  • man who now lies dead before us, and I did also know that he was
  • concealed in this cottage; Major Ratcliffe was one of my earliest and
  • dearest friends, and until this unhappy civil war, there never was any
  • difference between us, and even afterward only in politics, and the
  • cause we each espoused. I knew, before I came down here as intendant,
  • where his place of concealment was, and have been most anxious for his
  • safety."
  • "Excuse me, Mr. Heatherstone, but each day I find more to make me like
  • you than I did the day before; at first I felt most inimical; now I
  • only wonder how you can be leagued with the party you now are."
  • "Edward Armitage, I will now answer for myself and thousands more. You
  • are too young a man to have known the cause of the insurrection, or,
  • rather, opposition, to the unfortunate King Charles. He attempted to
  • make himself absolute, and to wrest the liberties from the people of
  • England: that his warmest adherents will admit. When I joined the party
  • which opposed him, I little thought that matters would have been
  • carried so far as they have been; I always considered it lawful to take
  • up arms in defense of our liberties, but at the same time I equally
  • felt that the person of the king was sacred."
  • "I have heard so, sir."
  • "Yes, and in truth; for never did any people strive more zealously to
  • prevent the murder of the king--for murder it was--than my relative
  • Ashley Cooper and myself--so much so, indeed, as to have incurred not
  • only the suspicion but the ill-will of Cromwell, who, I fear, is now
  • making rapid advances toward that absolute authority for which the king
  • has suffered, and which he would now vest in his own person. I
  • considered that our cause was just; and, had the power been left in the
  • hands of those who would have exercised it with discretion and
  • moderation, the king would even now have been on the throne, and the
  • liberties of his subjects sacred; but it is easier to put a vast and
  • powerful engine into motion than to stop it, and such has been the case
  • in this unfortunate civil war. Thousands who took an active part
  • against the king will, when the opportunity is ripe, retrace their
  • steps; but I expect that we have much to suffer before that time will
  • come. And now, Edward Armitage, I have said more to you than I have to
  • any person breathing, except my own kinsman."
  • "I thank you for your confidence, sir, which not only will not be
  • betrayed, but will act as a warning to guide my future conduct."
  • "I meant it should. Be no longer rash and careless in avowing your
  • opinions. You can do no good to the cause, and may do yourself much
  • harm. And now I must ask you another question, which I could not before
  • the other people. You have surprised me by stating that Major Ratcliffe
  • had a son here; there must be some mistake, or the boy must be an
  • impostor. He had a daughter, an only daughter, as I have; but he never
  • had a son."
  • "It is a mistake that I fell into, sir, by finding a boy here, as I
  • stated to you at the inquest; and I considered it to be a boy, until I
  • brought her home, and she then discovered to my sisters that she was a
  • girl dressed in boys' clothes. I did not give that as explanation at
  • the inquest, as it was not necessary."
  • "I am right, then. I must relieve you of that charge, Edward Armitage;
  • she shall be to me as a daughter, and I trust that you will agree with
  • me, without any disparagement to your feelings, that my house will be a
  • more fit residence for her than your cottage."
  • "I will not prevent her going, if she wishes it, after your explanation
  • and confidence, Mr. Heatherstone."
  • "One thing more. As I said to you before, Edward Armitage, I believe
  • many of these verderers, all of which have been selected from the army,
  • are spies upon me: I must therefore be careful. You said that you were
  • not aware that there were any papers?"
  • "I saw none, sir; but I suspect, from the many locked-up trunks and
  • small boxes, that there may be; but when I went out with the others
  • from the inquest, I dispatched my brother Humphrey to the cottage,
  • advising him to open all the locks and to remove any papers which he
  • might find."
  • The intendant smiled.
  • "Well, if such is the case, we have only to go to your cottage and make
  • an examination. We shall find nothing, and I shall have performed my
  • duty. I was not aware that your brother was here. I presume it was the
  • young man who walked with Oswald Partridge."
  • "It was, sir."
  • "By his appearance, I presume that he, also, was brought up at Arnwood?"
  • "He was, sir, as well as I," replied Edward.
  • "Well, then, I have but one word more to say--recollect, if I appear
  • harsh and severe in the presence of others, it is only assumed toward
  • you, and not real. You understand that?"
  • "I do, sir, and beg you will exercise your discretion."
  • The intendant then went out and said to the party, "It appears from
  • what I can extract from this lad Armitage, that there are boxes which
  • he removed to his cottage; we will go there to see what they may
  • contain. It is now noon. Have you any refreshment to offer us in your
  • cottage, young man, when we arrive?"
  • "I keep no hostelry, sir," replied Edward, somewhat gloomily; "my own
  • labor and my brother's is sufficient for the support of my own family,
  • but no more."
  • "Let us move on; and two of you keep your eye upon that young man,"
  • said the intendant aside.
  • They then proceeded through the wood; the intendant mounted his horse,
  • and they set off for the cottage, where they arrived at about two
  • o'clock in the afternoon.
  • CHAPTER XVII.
  • Humphrey came out as soon as he perceived the intendant and his party
  • approaching, and whispered to Edward that all was safe. The intendant
  • dismounted, and ordering every body but his clerk to wait outside, was
  • ushered into the cottage by Edward. Alice, Edith, and Pablo were in the
  • room; the two girls were not a little flushed and frightened by the
  • unusual appearance of so large a party of strangers.
  • "These are my sisters, sir," said Edward. "Where is Clara, Alice?"
  • "She is alarmed, and has gone into our bedroom."
  • "I hope you are not alarmed at my presence," said the intendant,
  • looking earnestly at the two girls. "It is my duty which obliges me to
  • pay this visit; but you have nothing to fear. Now, Edward Armitage, you
  • must produce all the boxes and packages which you took from the
  • cottage."
  • "I will, sir," replied Edward, "and here are the keys. Humphrey, do you
  • and Pablo bring them out."
  • The boxes were brought out, opened, and examined by the intendant and
  • his clerk, but of course no papers were found in them.
  • "I must now send in two of my people to search the house," said the
  • intendant. "Had you not better go to the little girl, that she may not
  • be frightened?"
  • "I will go to her," said Alice.
  • Two of the people, assisted by the clerk, then searched the house; they
  • found nothing worthy of notice, except the weapons and armor which
  • Edward had removed, and which he stated to the intendant that he took
  • away as valuable property belonging to the little girl.
  • "It is sufficient," said the intendant to his clerk; "undoubtedly there
  • are no papers; but I must, before I go, interrogate this child who has
  • been removed thus; but she will be frightened, and I shall obtain no
  • answer from her, if we are so many, so let every body leave the cottage
  • while I speak to her."
  • The clerk and the others left the cottage, and the intendant desired
  • Edward to bring Clara from the bedroom. She came out, accompanied by
  • and clinging indeed to Alice, for she was much alarmed.
  • "Come here, Clara," said the intendant, gently; "you do not know
  • perhaps that I am your sincere friend; and now that your father is
  • dead, I want you to come and live with my daughter, who will be
  • delighted to have you as a companion. Will you go with me, and I will
  • take care of you and be a father to you?"
  • "I do not like to leave Alice and Edith; they treat me so kindly, and
  • call me sister," replied Clara, sobbing.
  • "I am sure they do, and that you must be fond of them already, but
  • still it is your duty to come with me; and if your father could speak
  • to you now, he would tell you so. I will not force you away; but
  • remember, you are born a lady, and must be brought up and educated as a
  • lady, which can not be the case in this cottage, although they are very
  • kind to you, and very nice young people. You do not recollect me,
  • Clara; but you have often sat on my knee when you were a little girl
  • and when your father lived in Dorsetshire. You recollect the great
  • walnut-tree by the sitting-room window, which looked out in the garden;
  • don't you?"
  • "Yes," replied Clara, with surprise.
  • "Yes, so do I too, and how you used to sit on my knee; and do you
  • remember Jason, the big mastiff, and how you used to ride upon his
  • back?"
  • "Yes," replied Clara, "I do; but he died a long while ago."
  • "He did, when you were not more than six years old. And now tell me,
  • where did the old gardener bury him?"
  • "Under the mulberry-tree," replied Clara.
  • "Yes, so he did, and I was there when poor Jason was buried. You don't
  • recollect me. But I will take off my hat, for I did not wear the same
  • dress that I do now. Now look, Clara, and see if you remember me."
  • Clara, who was no longer alarmed, looked on the intendant's face, and
  • then said, "You called my father Philip, and he used to call you
  • Charles."
  • "You are right, my sweet one," replied the intendant, pressing Clara to
  • his bosom; "I did so, and we were great friends. Now, will you come
  • with me? and I have a little girl, older than you by three or four
  • years, who will be your companion, and love you dearly."
  • "May I come and see Alice and Edith sometimes?"
  • "Yes, you shall, and she will come with you and make their
  • acquaintance, if their brother will permit it. I will not take you away
  • now, dearest; you shall remain here for a few days, and then we will
  • come over and fetch you. I will send Oswald Partridge over to let you
  • know the day, Edward Armitage, when we will come for her. Good-by, dear
  • Clara; and good-by, my little girls. Humphrey Armitage, good-by. Who is
  • this lad you have here?"
  • "He is a gipsy whom Humphrey trapped in his pitfall, sir, and we have
  • soon tamed him," replied Edward.
  • "Well, then, Edward Armitage, good-by," said the intendant, extending
  • his hand to him, "we must meet soon again."
  • The intendant then went out of the cottage, and joined his people
  • outside. Edward went out after him; and as the intendant mounted his
  • horse, he said very coldly to Edward, "I shall keep a sharp look-out on
  • your proceedings, sir, depend upon it; I tell you so decidedly, so fare
  • you well."
  • With these words the intendant put the spurs to his horse, and rode
  • away.
  • "What made him speak so sharply to you, Edward?" said Humphrey.
  • "Because he means kindly, but does not want other people to know it,"
  • replied Edward. "Come in, Humphrey; I have much to tell you and much to
  • surprise you with."
  • "I have been surprised already," replied Humphrey. "How did this
  • Roundhead know Clara's father so well?"
  • "I will explain all before we go to bed," replied Edward; "let us go in
  • now."
  • The two brothers had a long conversation that evening, in which Edward
  • made Humphrey acquainted with all that had passed between him and the
  • intendant.
  • "It's my opinion, Edward," said Humphrey, "that he thinks matters have
  • been carried too far, and that he is sorry that he belongs to the
  • Parliamentary party. He finds out, now that it is too late, that he has
  • allied himself with those who have very different feelings and motives
  • than his own, and has assisted to put power into the hands of those who
  • have not the scruples which he has."
  • "Yes, and in ridding themselves of one tyranny, as they considered it,
  • they have every prospect of falling into the hands of a greater tyrant
  • than before; for, depend upon it, Cromwell will assume the sovereign
  • power, and rule this kingdom with a rod of iron."
  • "Well, many more are, I have no doubt, or soon will be, of his opinion;
  • and the time will come, be it sooner or later, when the king will have
  • his own again. They have proclaimed him in Scotland already. Why does
  • he not come over and show himself? His presence would, I think, induce
  • thousands to flock to him; I'm sure that it would me."
  • "I am very glad of this good intelligence with the intendant, Edward,
  • as it will not now be necessary for us to be so careful; we may go and
  • come when we please. I almost wish you could be persuaded to accept any
  • eligible offer he may make you. Many, no doubt, are in office, and
  • serving the present government, who have the same feelings as the
  • intendant, or even feelings as strong as your own."
  • "I can not bear the idea of accepting any thing from them or their
  • instruments, Humphrey; nor, indeed, could I leave my sisters."
  • "On that score you may make your mind easy: Pablo and I are quite
  • sufficient for the farm, or any thing else we may want to do. If you
  • can be more useful elsewhere, have no scruple in leaving us. If the
  • king was to come and raise an army, you would leave us, of course; and
  • I see no reason why, if an eligible offer is made you, you should not
  • do it now. You and your talents are thrown away in this forest; and you
  • might serve the king and the king's cause better by going into the
  • world and watching the times than you ever can by killing his venison."
  • "Certainly," replied Edward, laughing, "I do not much help his cause by
  • killing his deer, that must be admitted; all I shall say is this, if
  • any thing is offered to me which I can accept without injury to my
  • feelings and my honor, I shall not decline it, provided that I may, by
  • accepting it, prove of service to the king's cause."
  • "That is all I wish, Edward. And now I think we had better go to bed."
  • The next day they dug up the iron chest and the box into which Humphrey
  • had put all the papers he had collected together. Edward opened the
  • iron chest, and found in it a considerable quantity of gold in bags,
  • and many trinkets and jewels which he did not know the value of. The
  • papers he did not open, but resolved that they should be given to the
  • intendant, for Edward felt that he could trust in him. The other boxes
  • and trunks were also opened and examined, and many other articles of
  • apparent value discovered.
  • "I should think all these jewels worth a great deal of money,
  • Humphrey," said Edward; "if so, all the better for poor little Clara. I
  • am sorry to part with her, although we have known her so short a time;
  • she appears to be such an amiable and affectionate child."
  • "That she is; and certainly the handsomest little girl I ever saw. What
  • beautiful eyes! Do you know that on one of her journeys to Lymington
  • she was very nearly taken by a party of gipsies? and by what Pablo can
  • make out, it would appear that it was by the party to which he
  • belonged."
  • "I wonder at her father permitting her to go alone such a distance."
  • "Her father could not do otherwise. Necessity has no law. He could
  • trust no other person, so he put her in boys' clothes that there might
  • be less risk. Still, she must have been very intelligent to have done
  • the office."
  • "She is thirteen years old, although she is small," replied Edward.
  • "And intelligent she certainly is, as you may see by her countenance.
  • Who would ever have imagined that our sisters would have been able to
  • do what they are doing now? It's an old saying, 'We never know what we
  • can do till we try.' By-the-by Humphrey, I met a famous herd of forest
  • ponies the other day, and I said to myself, 'I wonder whether Humphrey
  • will be clever enough to take one of them, as he has the wild cattle?'
  • For Billy is getting old, and we want a successor."
  • "We want more than a successor to Billy, Edward: we want two more to
  • help him--and I have the means of maintaining two more ponies if I
  • could catch them."
  • "I fear that you will never manage that, Humphrey," said Edward,
  • laughing.
  • "I know well what you mean," replied Humphrey: "you wish to dare me to
  • it--well. I won't be dared to any thing, and I most certainly will try
  • to catch a pony or two; but I must think about it first, and when I
  • have arranged my plan in my mind, I will then make the attempt."
  • "When I see the ponies in the yard, I will believe it, Humphrey. They
  • are as wild as deer and as fleet as the wind, and you can not catch
  • them in a pitfall."
  • "I know that, good brother; but all I can say is, that I will try what
  • I can do, and I can do no more--but not at present, for I am too busy."
  • Three days after this conversation, Oswald Partridge made his
  • appearance, having been sent by the intendant to tell Edward that he
  • should come over on the following day to take away little Clara.
  • "And how is she to go?" said Edward.
  • "He will bring a little nag for her, if she can ride--if she can not,
  • she must ride in the cart which will come for the baggage."
  • "Clara, can you ride a horse?"
  • "Yes," replied Clara, "if it does not jump about too much. I always
  • rode one when I lived in Dorsetshire."
  • "This won't jump about, my little lady," said Oswald, "for he is thirty
  • years old, I believe, and as steady as an old gentleman ought to be."
  • "I have had some conversation with Master Heatherstone," continued
  • Oswald to Edward. "He is much pleased with you, I can tell you. He said
  • that in times like these he required young men like you about him; and
  • that, as you would not take the berth of verderer, he must find one
  • better suited for you; for he said you were too good for such an
  • office."
  • "Many thanks to him for his good opinion," replied Edward; "but I do
  • not think that he has any office in his gift which I can accept."
  • "So I thought, but I said nothing. He again asked many questions
  • relative to old Jacob Armitage, and he pressed me very hard. He said
  • that Humphrey was as much above his position in appearance as you were,
  • but as he was brought up at Arnwood, he presumed that he had had the
  • same advantages. And then he said--'But were his two sisters brought up
  • at Arnwood also?' I replied, that I believed not, although they were
  • often there, and were allowed to play with the children of the house.
  • He looked at me steadfastly, as if he would read my thoughts, and then
  • went on writing. I can not help thinking that he has a suspicion that
  • you are not the grandchildren of old Jacob; but at the same time I do
  • not think that he has an idea who you really are."
  • "You must keep our secret, Oswald," replied Edward. "I have a very good
  • opinion of the intendant, I acknowledge; but I will trust nobody."
  • "As I hope for future mercy, sir, I never will divulge it until you bid
  • me," replied Oswald.
  • "I trust to you, Oswald, and so there's an end of the matter. But tell
  • me, Oswald, what do they say about his taking charge of this little
  • girl?"
  • "Why, they did begin to talk about it; but when he gave out that it was
  • the order of Parliament that the child should remain with him until
  • further directions, of course they said nothing, for they dared not. It
  • seems that the Ratcliffe property is sequestrated, but not yet granted
  • to any one; and the Parliament will most likely, as soon as she is old
  • enough, give her as a wife, with the property, to one of their party;
  • they have done it before now, as it secures the property under all
  • changes."
  • "I perceive," replied Edward. "When did you hear that the little girl
  • was to live with him?"
  • "Not till yesterday morning; and it was not till the evening that we
  • knew it was the order of Parliament."
  • Edward did not think it right to tell Oswald what he knew, as it was a
  • secret confided to him by the intendant, and therefore merely
  • observed--"I presumed that the child would not be permitted to remain
  • on our hands;" and then the conversation dropped.
  • As Oswald had informed them, the intendant made his appearance in the
  • forenoon of the following day, and was accompanied by his daughter, who
  • rode by his side. A groom, on horse, led a pony for Clara to ride; and
  • a cart for the luggage followed at some distance. Edward went out to
  • assist Miss Heatherstone to dismount, and she frankly extended her hand
  • to him as she reached the ground. Edward was a little surprised as well
  • as pleased, at this condescension on her part toward a forester.
  • "You do me much honor, Mistress Patience," said he, bowing.
  • "I can not forget that I owe my life to you, Master Armitage," replied
  • Patience, "and I can not be too grateful. May I request another favor
  • of you?"
  • "Certainly, if it is in my power to do as you wish."
  • "It is this," said she, in a low voice--"that you will not hastily
  • reject any overtures which may be made to you by my father; that is
  • all. And now let me go in and see your sisters, for my father has
  • praised them very much, and I wish to know them."
  • Edward led the way into the cottage, and Patience followed him, while
  • the intendant was in conversation with Humphrey. Edward, having
  • introduced his sisters and Clara, then went out to pay his respects to
  • the intendant, who, now they were alone, was very candid toward both
  • him and Humphrey.
  • Edward then told the intendant that there was an iron chest with a good
  • deal of money in it, and jewels also, and many other articles of value
  • in the other boxes.
  • "I fear, sir, that the cart will hardly hold all the goods."
  • "I do not intend to take away the heavy or more bulky articles, such as
  • the bedding, armor, &c. I will only take Clara's own packages, and the
  • valuables and papers. The remainder may stay here, as they can be of no
  • use, till they are demanded from you. Where is Oswald Partridge?"
  • "In the stable with the horses, sir," replied Humphrey.
  • "Then, when the cart is loaded--and it had better be done by you while
  • the men are in the stable--Oswald shall take charge of it, and take the
  • things to my house."
  • "Here are the keys, sir," said Edward, presenting them.
  • "Good. And now, Edward Armitage, that we are alone, I want to have a
  • little conversation with you. You are aware how much I feel indebted to
  • you for the service you have rendered me, and how anxious I am to show
  • my gratitude. You are born for better things than to remain an obscure
  • forester, and perhaps a deer-stalker. I have now an offer to make to
  • you, which I trust, upon reflection, you will not refuse--and I say
  • reflection, because I do not wish you to give an answer till you have
  • well reflected. I know that you will not accept any thing under the
  • present government; but a private situation you can raise no objection
  • to; the more so as, so far from leaving your family, you will be more
  • in a position to protect them. I am in want of a secretary, and I wish
  • you to accept that office, to live entirely in my house, and to receive
  • a handsome salary for your services, which will not, I trust, be too
  • heavy. You will be near to your family here in the cottage, and be able
  • to protect them and assist them; and what is more, you will mix with
  • the world and know what is going on, as I am in the confidence of the
  • government. Of course, I put implicit confidence in you, or I would not
  • offer the situation. But you will not be always down here: I have my
  • correspondents and friends, to whom I shall have to send you
  • occasionally on most trusty missions. You, I am sure, will suit me in
  • every respect, and I hope you will undertake the post which I now offer
  • to you. Give me no answer just now; consult with your brother, and give
  • the offer due consideration, and when you have made up your mind you
  • can let me know."
  • Edward bowed, and the intendant went into the cottage.
  • Edward then assisted Humphrey and Pablo to get the iron chest on the
  • cart, and covered it with the other packages and boxes, till the cart
  • was well loaded. Leaving Pablo in charge till Oswald came from the
  • stables, Edward and Humphrey then went into the cottage, where they
  • found a very social party; Patience Heatherstone having succeeded in
  • making great friends with the other three girls, and the intendant, to
  • Edward's surprise, laughing and joking with them. Alice and Edith had
  • brought out some milk, biscuits, and all the fruit that was ripe, with
  • some bread, a cold piece of salt beef, and a ham; and they were eating
  • as well as talking.
  • "I have been praising your sisters' house-keeping, Armitage," said the
  • intendant. "Your farm appears to be very productive."
  • "Alice expected Miss Heatherstone, sir," replied Edward, "and made an
  • unusual provision. You must not think that we live on such fare every
  • day."
  • "No," replied the intendant, dryly; "on other days I dare say you have
  • other fare. I would almost make a bet that there is a pasty in the
  • cupboard which you dare not show to the intendant of the New Forest."
  • "You are mistaken, sir, for once," replied Humphrey. "Alice knows well
  • how to make one, but she has not one just now."
  • "Well, I must believe you, Master Humphrey," replied the intendant.
  • "And now, my dear child, we must think of going, for it is a long ride,
  • and the little girl is not used to a horse."
  • "Mistress Alice, many thanks for your hospitality; and now, farewell.
  • Edith, good-by, dear. Now, Clara, are you quite ready?"
  • They all went out of the cottage. The intendant put Clara on the pony,
  • after she had kissed Alice and Edith. Edward assisted Patience; and
  • when she was mounted, she said--
  • "I hope you will accept my father's offer--you will oblige me so much
  • if you do."
  • "I will give it every consideration it deserves," replied Edward.
  • "Indeed, it will depend more upon my brother than myself whether I
  • accept it or not."
  • "Your brother is a very sensible young man, sir; therefore, I have
  • hopes," replied Patience.
  • "A quality which it appears you do not give me credit for, Miss
  • Heatherstone."
  • "Not when pride or vindictive feelings obtain the mastery," replied she.
  • "Perhaps you will find that I am not quite so proud, or bear such
  • ill-will, as I did when I first saw your father, Miss Heatherstone; and
  • some allowance should be made, even if I did show such feelings, when
  • you consider that I was brought up at Arnwood."
  • "True--most true, Master Armitage. I had no right to speak so boldly,
  • especially to you, who risked your own life to save the daughter of one
  • of those Roundheads who treated the family of your protector so
  • cruelly. You must forgive me; and now, farewell!"
  • Edward bowed, and then turned to the intendant, who had apparently been
  • waiting while the conversation was going on. The intendant bade him a
  • cordial farewell; Edward shook Clara by the hand, and the cavalcade set
  • off. They all remained outside of the cottage till the party were at
  • some distance, and then Edward walked apart with Humphrey, to
  • communicate to him the offer made by the intendant, and ask his opinion.
  • "My opinion is made up, Edward, which is that you should accept it
  • immediately. You are under no obligation to the government, and you
  • have already conferred such an obligation upon the intendant that you
  • have a right to expect a return. Why stay here, when you can safely mix
  • with the world and know how things are going on? I do not require your
  • assistance, now that I have Pablo, who is more useful every day. Do not
  • lose such an opportunity of making a friend for yourself and all of
  • us--a protector, I may say--and who is, by what he has confided to you,
  • any thing but approving of the conduct of the present government. He
  • has paid you a deserved compliment by saying that he can and will trust
  • you. You must not refuse the offer, Edward--it would really be folly if
  • you did."
  • "I believe you are right, Humphrey; but I have been so accustomed to
  • range the forest--I am so fond of the chase--I am so impatient of
  • control or confinement, that I hardly know how to decide. A secretary's
  • life is any thing but pleasing to me, sitting at a table writing and
  • reading all day long. The pen is a poor exchange for the long-barreled
  • gun."
  • "It does more execution, nevertheless," replied Humphrey, "if what I
  • have read is true. But you are not to suppose that your life will be
  • such a sedentary one. Did he not say that he would have to trust you
  • with missions of importance? Will you not, by going to London and other
  • places, and mixing with people of importance, be preparing yourself for
  • your proper station in life, which I trust that one day you will
  • resume? And does it follow, that because you are appointed a secretary,
  • you are not to go out in the forest and shoot a deer with Oswald, if
  • you feel inclined--with this difference, that you may do it then
  • without fear of being insulted or persecuted by such a wretch as that
  • Corbould? Do not hesitate any longer, my dear brother; recollect that
  • our sisters ought not to live this forest life as they advance in
  • years--they were not born for it, although they have so well conformed
  • to it. It depends upon you to release them eventually from their false
  • position; and you can never have such an opening as is now offered you,
  • by one whose gratitude alone will make him anxious to serve you."
  • "You are right, Humphrey, and I will accept the offer; I can but return
  • to you if things do not go on well."
  • "I thank you sincerely for your decision, Edward," replied Humphrey.
  • "What a sweet girl that Patience Heatherstone is! I think I never saw
  • such an enchanting smile!"
  • Edward thought of the smile she gave him when they parted but an hour
  • ago, and agreed with Humphrey, but he replied--
  • "Why, brother, you are really in love with the intendant's daughter."
  • "Not so, my dear brother; but I am in love with her goodness and
  • sweetness of disposition, and so are Alice and Edith, I can tell you.
  • She has promised to come over and see them, and bring them flowers for
  • their garden, and I hardly know what; and I am very glad of it, as my
  • sisters have been buried here so long, that they can not but gain by
  • her company now and then. No! I will leave Mistress Heatherstone for
  • you; I am in love with little Clara."
  • "Not a bad choice, Humphrey: we both aspire high, for two young
  • foresters, do we not? However, they say 'Every dog has his day,' and
  • Cromwell and his Parliament may have theirs. King Charles may be on his
  • throne again now, long before you catch a forest pony, Humphrey."
  • "I hope he will, Edward; but recollect how you laughed at the idea of
  • my catching a cow--you may be surprised a second time. 'Where there is
  • a will there is a way,' the saying is. But I must go and help Alice
  • with the heifer: she is not very quiet yet, and I see her going out
  • with her pail."
  • The brothers then parted, and Edward then walked about, turning over in
  • his mind the events of the day, and very often finding his thoughts
  • broken in upon by sudden visions of Patience Heatherstone--and
  • certainly the remembrance of her was to him the most satisfactory and
  • pleasing portion of the prospect in his offered situation.
  • "I shall live with her, and be continually in her company," thought he.
  • "Well, I would take a less pleasing office if only for that. She
  • requested me to accept it to oblige her, and I will do so. How hasty we
  • are in our conclusions! When I first saw her father, what an aversion I
  • felt for him! Now, the more I know him the more I like him, nay,
  • more--respect him. He said that the king wished to be absolute, and
  • wrest the liberties from his subjects, and that they were justified in
  • opposing him; I never heard that when at Arnwood."
  • "If so, was it lawful so to do?"
  • "I think it was, but not to murder him; that I can never admit, nor
  • does the intendant; on the contrary, he holds his murderers in as great
  • detestation as I do. Why, then, we do not think far apart from one
  • another. At the commencement, the two parties were those who supported
  • him, not admitting that he was right, but too loyal to refuse to fight
  • for their king; and those who opposed, hoping to force him to do right;
  • the king for his supposed prerogatives, the people for their liberties.
  • The king was obstinate, the people resolute, until virulent warfare
  • inflamed both parties, and neither would listen to reason; and the
  • people gained the upper hand--they wreaked their vengeance, instead of
  • looking to the dictates of humanity and justice. How easy it had been
  • to have deposed him, and have sent him beyond the seas! instead of
  • which they detained him a prisoner and then murdered him. The
  • punishment was greater than the offense, and dictated by malice and
  • revenge; it was a diabolical act, and will soil the page of our
  • nation's history." So thought Edward, as he paced before the cottage,
  • until he was summoned in by Pablo to their evening meal.
  • CHAPTER XVIII.
  • "Edward," said Edith, "scold Pablo; he has been ill-treating my poor
  • cat; he is a cruel boy."
  • Pablo laughed.
  • "See, Edward, he's laughing; put him in the pitfall again, and let him
  • stay there till he says he's sorry."
  • "I very sorry now, Missy Edith--but cat bite me," said Pablo.
  • "Well, if pussy did, it didn't hurt you much; and what did I tell you
  • this morning out of the Bible?--that you must forgive them who behave
  • ill to you."
  • "Yes, Missy Edith, you tell me all that, and so I do; I forgive pussy
  • 'cause she bite me, but I kick her for it."
  • "That's not forgiveness, is it, Edward? You should have forgiven it at
  • once, and not kicked it at all."
  • "Miss Edith, when pussy bite me, pussy hurt me, make me angry, and I
  • give her a kick; then I think what you tell me, and I do as you tell
  • me. I forgive pussy with all my heart."
  • "I think you must forgive Pablo, Edith," said Edward, "if it is only to
  • set him a good example."
  • "Well, I will this time; but if he kicks pussy again he must be put in
  • the pitfall--mind that, Pablo."
  • "Yes, Missy Edith, I go into pitfall, and then you cry, and ask Master
  • Edward to take me out. When you have me put in pitfall, then you not
  • good Christian, 'cause you not forgive; when you cry and take me out,
  • then you good Christian once more."
  • By this conversation it will appear to the reader that they had been
  • trying to impress Pablo with the principles of the Christian
  • religion--and such was the case; Edith having been one of the most
  • active in the endeavor, although very young for a missionary. However,
  • Alice and Humphrey had been more successful, and Pablo was now
  • beginning to comprehend what they had attempted to instill, and was
  • really progressing dayly.
  • Edward remained at the cottage, expecting to bear some message from the
  • intendant. He was right in his conjecture, for, on the third day,
  • Oswald Partridge came over to say that the intendant would be happy to
  • see him, if he could make it convenient to go over; which Edward
  • assented to do on the following day. Oswald had ridden over on a pony;
  • Edward arranged to take Billy and return with him. They started early
  • the next morning, and Edward asked Oswald if he knew why the intendant
  • had sent for him.
  • "Not exactly," replied Oswald; "but I think, from what I heard Miss
  • Patience say, it is to offer you some situation, if you could be
  • prevailed upon to accept it."
  • "Very true," replied Edward; "he offers me the post of secretary. What
  • do you think?"
  • "Why, sir, I think I would accept it; at all events, I would take it on
  • trial--there can be no harm done. If you do not like it, you can only
  • go back to the cottage again. One thing I am sure of, which is, that
  • Master Heatherstone will make it as pleasant to you as he can, for he
  • is most anxious to serve you."
  • "That I really believe," replied Edward; "and I have pretty well made
  • up my mind to accept the office. It is a post of confidence, and I
  • shall know all that is going on, which I can not do while I am secluded
  • in the forest; and, depend upon it, we shall have stirring news."
  • "I suppose you think that the king will come over," replied Oswald.
  • "I feel certain of it, Oswald; and that is the reason why I want to be
  • where I can know all that is going on."
  • "Well, sir, it is my opinion that the king will come over, as well as
  • yours; yet I think at present he stands but a poor chance; but Master
  • Heatherstone knows more on that score than any one, I should think; but
  • he is very close."
  • The conversation then changed, and, after a ride of eight hours, they
  • arrived at the intendant's house. Edward gave Billy into Oswald's
  • charge, and knocked at the door. Phoebe let him in, and asked him into
  • the sitting-room, where he found the intendant alone.
  • "Edward Armitage, I am glad to see you, and shall be still more so if I
  • find that you have made up your mind to accept my proposition. What is
  • your reply?"
  • "I am very thankful to you for the offer, sir," replied Edward, "and
  • will accept it if you think that I am fitting for it, and if I find
  • that I am equal to it; I can but give it a trial, and leave if I find
  • it too arduous or too irksome."
  • "Too arduous it shall not be--that shall be my concern; and too irksome
  • I hope you will not find it. My letters are not so many but that I
  • could answer them myself, were it not that my eyes are getting weak,
  • and I wish to save them as much as possible. You will therefore have to
  • write chiefly what I shall dictate; but it is not only for that I
  • require a person that I can confide in. I very often shall send you to
  • London instead of going myself, and to that I presume you will have no
  • objection!"
  • "Certainly none, sir."
  • "Well, then, it is no use saying any more just now; you will have a
  • chamber in this house, and you will live with me, and at my table
  • altogether. Neither shall I say any thing just now about remuneration,
  • as I am convinced that you will be satisfied. All that I require now
  • is, to know the day that you will come, that every thing may be ready."
  • "I suppose, sir, I must change my attire?" replied Edward, looking at
  • his forester's dress; "that will hardly accord with the office of
  • secretary."
  • "I agree with you that it will be better to keep that dress for your
  • forest excursions, as I presume you will not altogether abandon them,"
  • replied the intendant. "You can provide yourself with a suit at
  • Lymington. I will furnish you the means."
  • "I thank you, sir, I have means, much more than sufficient," replied
  • Edward, "although not quite so wealthy as little Clara appeared to be."
  • "Wealthy, indeed!" replied the intendant. "I had no idea that poor
  • Ratcliffe possessed so much ready money and jewels. Well, then, this is
  • Wednesday; can you come over next Monday?"
  • "Yes, sir," replied Edward; "I see no reason to the contrary."
  • "Well, then, that is settled, and I suppose you would like to see your
  • accommodation. Patience and Clara are in the next room. You can join
  • them, and you will make my daughter very happy by telling her that you
  • are to become a resident with us. You will, of course, dine with us
  • to-day, and sleep here to-night."
  • Mr. Heatherstone then opened the door, and saying to his daughter
  • Patience, "My dear, I leave you to entertain Edward Armitage till
  • dinner time," he ushered Edward in, and closed the door again. Clara
  • ran up to Edward as soon as he went in, and having kissed him, Edward
  • then took Patience's offered hand.
  • "Then you have consented?" said Patience, inquiringly.
  • "Yes, I could not refuse such kindness," replied Edward.
  • "And when do you come?"
  • "On Monday night, if I can be ready by that time."
  • "Why, what have you to get ready?" said Clara.
  • "I must not appear in a forester's dress, my little Clara. I can wear
  • that with a gun in my hand, but not with a pen: so I must go to
  • Lymington and see what a tailor can do for me."
  • "You will feel as strange in a secretary's dress as I did in boys'
  • clothes," said Clara. "Perhaps I may," said Edward, although he felt
  • that such would not be the case, having been accustomed to much better
  • clothes when at Arnwood than what were usually worn by secretaries; and
  • this remembrance brought back Arnwood in its train, and Edward became
  • silent and pensive.
  • Patience observed it, and after a time said--
  • "You will be able to watch over your sisters, Mr. Armitage, as well
  • here, almost, as if you were at the cottage. You do not return till
  • to-morrow? How did you come over?"
  • "I rode the pony Billy, Mistress Patience."
  • "Why do you call her Mistress Patience, Edward?" said Clara. "You call
  • me Clara; why not call her Patience?"
  • "You forget that I am only a forester, Clara," replied Edward, with a
  • grave smile.
  • "No, you are a secretary now," replied Clara.
  • "Mistress Patience is older than you by several years. I call you
  • Clara, because you are but a little girl; but I must not take that
  • liberty with Mistress Heatherstone."
  • "Do you think so, Patience?" said Clara.
  • "I certainly do not think that it would be a liberty in a person, after
  • being well acquainted with me, to call me Patience," replied she;
  • "especially when that person lives in the house with us, eats and
  • associates with us as one of the family, and is received on an
  • equality; but I dare say, Clara, that Master Armitage will be guided by
  • his own feelings, and act as he considers to be proper."
  • "But you give him leave, and then it is proper," replied Clara.
  • "Yes, if he gave himself leave, Clara," said Patience. "But we will now
  • show him his own room, Clara," continued Patience, wishing to change
  • the subject of conversation. "Will you follow us, sir?" said Patience,
  • with a little mock ceremony.
  • Edward did so without replying, and was ushered into a large airy room,
  • very neatly furnished.
  • "This is your future lodging," said Patience; "I hope you will like it."
  • "Why, he never saw any thing like it before," said Clara.
  • "Yes I have, Clara," replied Edward.
  • "Where did you?"
  • "At Arnwood; the apartments were on a much larger scale."
  • "Arnwood! oh yes, I have heard my father speak of it," said Clara, with
  • the tears starting in her eyes at his memory. "Yes, it was burned down,
  • and all the children burned to death!"
  • "So they say, Clara; but I was not there when it was burned."
  • "Where were you then?"
  • "I was at the cottage where I now live." Edward turned round to
  • Patience, and perceived that her eyes were fixed upon him, as if she
  • would have read his thoughts. Edward smiled, and said--
  • "Do you doubt what I say?"
  • "No, indeed!" said she, "I have no doubt that you were at the cottage
  • at the time; but I was thinking that if the apartments at Arnwood were
  • more splendid, those at your cottage are less comfortable. You have
  • been used to better and to worse, and therefore will, I trust, be
  • content with these."
  • "I trust I have shown no signs of discontent. I should indeed be
  • difficult to please if an apartment like this did not suit me. Besides,
  • allow me to observe, that although I stated that the apartments at
  • Arnwood were on a grander scale, I never said that I had ever been a
  • possessor of one of them."
  • Patience smiled and made no reply.
  • "Now that you know your way to your apartment, Master Armitage, we
  • will, if you please, go back to the sitting-room," said she. As they
  • were going back into the sitting-room, she said--
  • "When you come over on Monday, you will, I presume, bring your clothes
  • in a cart? I ask it, because I promised some flowers and other things
  • to your sisters, which I can send back by the cart."
  • "You are very kind to think of them, Mistress Patience," replied
  • Edward; "they are fond of flowers, and will be much pleased with
  • possessing any."
  • "You sleep here to-night, I think my father said?" inquired Patience.
  • "He did make the proposal, and I shall gladly avail myself of it, as I
  • am not to trust to Phoebe's ideas of comfort this time," said Edward,
  • smiling.
  • "Yes, that was a cross action of Phoebe's; and I can tell you, Master
  • Armitage, that she is ashamed to look you in the face ever since; but
  • how fortunate for me that she was cross, and turned you out as she did!
  • You must forgive her, as she was the means of your performing a noble
  • action; and I must forgive her, as she was the means of my life being
  • saved."
  • "I have no feeling except kindness toward Phoebe," replied Edward;
  • "indeed I ought to feel grateful to her; for if she had not given me so
  • bad a bed that night, I never should have been so comfortably lodged as
  • it is proposed that I shall be now."
  • "I hope you are hungry, Edward," said Clara; "dinner is almost ready."
  • "I dare say I shall eat more than you do, Clara."
  • "So you ought, a great big man like you. How old are you, Edward?" said
  • Clara; "I am thirteen; Patience is past sixteen: now, how old are you?"
  • "I am not yet eighteen, Clara, so that I can hardly be called a man."
  • "Why, you are as tall as Mr. Heatherstone."
  • "Yes, I believe I am."
  • "And can't you do every thing that a man can do?"
  • "I really don't know; but I certainly shall always try so to do."
  • "Well, then, you must be a man."
  • "Well, Clara, if it pleases you, I will be a man."
  • "Here comes Mr. Heatherstone, so I know dinner is ready; is it not,
  • sir?"
  • "Yes, my child, it is," replied Mr. Heatherstone, kissing Clara, "so
  • let us all go in."
  • Mr. Heatherstone, as was usual at that time with the people to whose
  • party he ostensibly belonged, said a grace before meat, of considerable
  • length, and then they sat down to table. As soon as the repast was
  • over, Mr. Heatherstone returned to his study, and Edward went out to
  • find Oswald Partridge, with whom he remained the larger portion of the
  • afternoon, going to the kennel and examining the dogs, and talking of
  • matters connected with the chase.
  • "I have not two men that can stalk a deer," observed Oswald "the men
  • appointed here as verderers and keepers have not one of them been
  • brought up to the business. Most of them are men who have been in the
  • army, and I believe have been appointed to these situations to get rid
  • of them because they were troublesome; and they are any thing but good
  • characters: the consequence is, that we kill but few deer, for I have
  • so much to attend to here, as none of them know their duties, that I
  • can seldom take my own gun out. I stated so to the intendant, and he
  • said that if you accepted an offer he had made you, and came over here,
  • we should not want venison; so it is clear that he does not expect you
  • to have your pen always in your hand."
  • "I am glad to hear that," replied Edward; "depend upon it, his own
  • table, at all events, shall be well supplied. Is not that fellow
  • Corbould, who is leaning against the wall?"
  • "Yes; he is to be discharged as he can not walk well, and the surgeon
  • says he will always limp. He owes you a grudge, and I am glad that he
  • is going away, for he is a dangerous man. But the sun is setting, Mr.
  • Edward, and supper will soon be on the table; you had better go back to
  • the house."
  • Edward bade Oswald farewell, and returned to the intendant's, and found
  • that Oswald was correct, as supper was being placed on the table.
  • Soon after supper, Phoebe and the men-servants were summoned, and
  • prayers offered up by the intendant, after which Patience and Clara
  • retired. Edward remained in conversation with the intendant for about
  • an hour, and then was conducted by him to his room, which had already
  • been shown to him by Patience.
  • Edward did not sleep much that night. The novelty of his situation--the
  • novelty of his prospects, and his speculations thereon, kept him awake
  • till near morning: he was, however, up in good time, and having
  • assisted at the morning prayers, and afterward eaten a most substantial
  • breakfast, he took his leave of the intendant and the two girls, and
  • set off on his return to the cottage, having renewed his promise of
  • coming on the following Monday to take up his abode with them. Billy
  • was fresh, and cantered gayly along, so that Edward was back early in
  • the afternoon, and once more welcomed by his household. He stated to
  • Humphrey all that had occurred, and Humphrey was much pleased at Edward
  • having accepted the offer of the intendant. Alice and Edith did not
  • quite so much approve of it, and a few tears were shed at the idea of
  • Edward leaving the cottage. The next day, Edward and Humphrey set off
  • for Lymington, with Billy in the cart.
  • "Do you know, Edward," said Humphrey, "what I am going to try and
  • purchase? I will tell you: as many kids as I can, or goats and kids, I
  • don't care which."
  • "Why, have you not stock enough already? You will this year have four
  • cows in milk, and you have two cow calves bringing up."
  • "That is very true; but I do not intend to have goats for their milk,
  • but simply for eating in lieu of mutton. Sheep I can not manage, but
  • goats, with a little hay in winter, will do well, and will find
  • themselves in the forest all the year round. I won't kill any of the
  • females for the first year or two, and after that I expect we shall
  • have a flock sufficient to meet any demand upon it."
  • "It is not a bad idea, Humphrey; they will always come home if you have
  • hay for them during the winter."
  • "Yes, and a large shed for them to lie in when the snow is on the
  • ground."
  • "Now I recollect, when we used to go to Lymington, I saw a great many
  • goats, and I have no doubt that they are to be purchased. I will soon
  • ascertain that for you, from the landlord of the hostelry," replied
  • Edward. "We will drive there first, as I must ask him to recommend me
  • to a tailor."
  • On their arrival at Lymington, they went straight to the hostelry, and
  • found the landlord at home. He recommended a tailor to Edward, who sent
  • for him to the inn, and was measured by him for a plain suit of dark
  • cloth. Edward and Humphrey then went out, as Edward had to procure
  • boots, and many other articles of dress, to correspond with the one
  • which he was about to assume.
  • "I am most puzzled about a hat, Humphrey," said Edward: "I hate those
  • steeple-crowned hats worn by the Roundheads; yet the hat and feather is
  • not proper for a secretary."
  • "I would advise you to submit to wear the steeple-crowned hats,
  • nevertheless," said Humphrey. "Your dress, as I consider, is a sort of
  • disgrace to a Cavalier born, and the heir of Arnwood; why not,
  • therefore, take its hat as well? As secretary to the intendant, you
  • should dress like him; if not, you may occasion remarks, especially
  • when you travel on his concerns."
  • "You are right, Humphrey, I must not do things by halves; and unless I
  • wear the hat, I might be suspected."
  • "I doubt if the intendant wears it for any other reason," said Humphrey.
  • "At all events, I will not go to the height of the fashion," replied
  • Edward, laughing. "Some of the hats are not quite so tall as the
  • others."
  • "Here is the shop for the hat and for the sword-belt."
  • Edward chose a hat and a plain sword-belt, paid for them, and desired
  • the man to carry them to the hostelry.
  • While all these purchases on the part of Edward, and many others by
  • Humphrey, such as nails, saws, tools, and various articles which Alice
  • required for the household, were gathered together, the landlord had
  • sent out to inquire for the goats, and found out at what price they
  • were to be procured. Humphrey left Edward to put away these in the
  • cart, while he went out a second time to see the goats; he made an
  • agreement with the man who had them for sale, for a male and three
  • females with two kids each at their sides, and ten more female kids
  • which had just been weaned. The man engaged to drive them from
  • Lymington as far as the road went into the forest, on the following
  • day, when Humphrey would meet them, pay him his money, and drive them
  • to the cottage, which would be only three miles from the place agreed
  • upon. Having settled that satisfactorily, he returned to Edward, who
  • was all ready, and they went back home.
  • "We have dipped somewhat into the bag to-day, Edward," said Humphrey,
  • "but the money is well spent."
  • "I think so, Humphrey; but I have no doubt that I shall be able to
  • replace the money very soon, as the intendant will pay me for my
  • services. The tailor has promised the clothes on Saturday without fail,
  • so that you or I must go for them."
  • "I will go, Edward; my sisters will wish you to stay with them now, as
  • you are so soon to leave them; and I will take Pablo with me, that he
  • may know his way to the town; and I will show him where to buy things,
  • in case he goes there by himself."
  • "It appears to me to have been a most fortunate thing, your having
  • caught Pablo as you did, Humphrey, for I do not well know how I could
  • have left you, if you had not."
  • "At all events, I can do much better without you than I should have
  • done," replied Humphrey; "although I think now that I could get on by
  • myself; but still, Edward, you know we can not tell what a day may
  • bring forth, and I might fall sick, or something happen which might
  • prevent my attending to any thing; and then, without you or Pablo,
  • every thing might have gone to rack and ruin. Certainly, when we think
  • how we were left, by the death of old Jacob, to our own resources, we
  • have much to thank God for, in having got on so well."
  • "I agree with you, and also that it has pleased Heaven to grant us all
  • such good health. However, I shall be close at hand if you want me, and
  • Oswald will always call and see how you get on."
  • "I hope you will manage that he calls once a-week."
  • "I will if I can, Humphrey, for I shall be just as anxious as you are
  • to know if all goes on well. Indeed, I shall insist upon coming over to
  • you once a-fortnight; and I hardly think the intendant will refuse
  • me--indeed, I am sure that he will not."
  • "So am I," replied Humphrey. "I am certain that he wishes us all well,
  • and has, in a measure, taken us under his protection; but, Edward,
  • recollect, I shall never kill any venison after this, and so you may
  • tell the intendant."
  • "I will, and that will be an excuse for him to send some over, if he
  • pleases. Indeed, as I know I shall be permitted to go out with Oswald,
  • it will be hard if a stray buck does not find its way to the cottage."
  • Thus did they continue talking over matters till they arrived at the
  • cottage. Alice came out to them, saying to Humphrey,
  • "Well, Humphrey, have you brought my geese and ducks?"
  • Humphrey had forgotten them, but he replied, "You must wait till I go
  • to Lymington again on Saturday, Alice, and then I hope to bring them
  • with me. As it is, look how poor Billy is loaded. Where's Pablo?"
  • "In the garden. He has been working there all day, and Edith is with
  • him."
  • "Well, then, we will unload the cart, while you get us something to
  • eat, Alice, for we are not a little hungry. I can tell you."
  • "I have some rabbit-stew on the fire, Humphrey, all ready for you, and
  • you will find it very good."
  • "Nothing I like better, my dear girl. Pablo won't thank me for bringing
  • this home," continued Humphrey, taking the long saw out of the cart;
  • "he will have to go to the bottom of the pit again, as soon as the pit
  • is made."
  • The cart was soon unloaded, Billy taken out and turned out to feed, and
  • then they went in to the supper.
  • Humphrey was off the next morning, with Pablo, at an early hour, to
  • meet the farmer of whom he had purchased the goats and kids. He found
  • them punctual to the time, at the place agreed upon; and being
  • satisfied with the lot, paid the farmer his money, and drove them home
  • through the forest.
  • "Goat very good, kid better; always eat kid in Spain," said Pablo.
  • "Were you born in Spain, Pablo?"
  • "Not sure, but I think so. First recollect myself in that country."
  • "Do you recollect your father?"
  • "No; never see him."
  • "Did your mother never talk about him?"
  • "Call her mother, but think no mother at all. Custom with Gitanas."
  • "Why did you call her mother?"
  • "'Cause she feed me when little, beat me when I get big."
  • "All mothers do that. What made you come to England?"
  • "I don't know, but I hear people say, plenty of money in
  • England--plenty to eat--plenty to drink; bring plenty money back to
  • Spain."
  • "How long have you been in England?"
  • "One, two, three year; yes, three year and a bit."
  • "Which did you like best--England or Spain?"
  • "When with my people, like Spain best; warm sun--warm night. England,
  • little sun, cold night, much rain, snow, and air always cold; but now I
  • live with you, have warm bed, plenty victuals, like England best."
  • "But when you were with the gipsies, they stole every thing, did they
  • not?"
  • "Not steal every thing," replied Pablo, laughing; "sometimes take and
  • no pay when nobody there; farmer look very sharp--have big dog."
  • "Did you ever go out to steal?"
  • "Make me go out. Not bring back something, beat me very hard; suppose
  • farmer catch me, beat hard too; nothing but beat, beat, beat."
  • "Then they obliged you to steal?"
  • "Suppose bring nothing home, first beat, and then not have to eat for
  • one, two, three days. How you like that, Master Humphrey? I think you
  • steal, after no victuals for three days!"
  • "I should hope not," replied Humphrey, "although I have never been so
  • severely punished: and I hope, Pablo, you will never steal any more."
  • "Why steal any more?" replied Pablo. "I not like to steal, but because
  • hungry I steal. Now, I never hungry, always have plenty to eat; no one
  • beat me now; sleep warm all night. Why I steal, then? No, Master
  • Humphrey, I never steal more, 'cause I have no reason why, and 'cause
  • Missy Alice and Edith tell me how the good God up there say must not
  • steal."
  • "I am glad to hear you give that as a reason, Pablo," replied Humphrey,
  • "as it proves that my sisters have not been teaching you in vain."
  • "Like to hear Missy Alice talk; she talk grave. Missy Edith talk too,
  • but she laugh very much; very fond Missy Edith, very happy little girl;
  • jump about just like one of these kids we drive home; always merry.
  • Hah! see cottage now; soon get home, Massa Humphrey. Missy Edith like
  • see kids very much. Where we put them?"
  • CHAPTER XIX.
  • "We will put them into the yard for the present. I mean that Holdfast
  • shall take charge of them by-and-by. I will soon teach him."
  • "Yes, he take charge of coat, or any thing I tell him; why not take
  • charge of goats. Clever dog, Holdfast. Massa Humphrey, you think Massa
  • Edward take away both his dogs, Smoker and Watch? I say better not take
  • puppy. Take Smoker, and leave puppy."
  • "I agree with you, Pablo. We ought to have two dogs here. I will speak
  • to my brother. Now run forward and open the gate of the yard, and throw
  • them some hay, Pablo, while I go and call my sisters."
  • The flock of goats were much admired, and the next morning were driven
  • out into the forest to feed, attended by Pablo and Holdfast. When it
  • was dinner time, Pablo drove the flock near to the cottage, telling the
  • dog to mind them. The sensible animal remained at once with the goats
  • until Pablo's return from dinner; and it may be as well to observe
  • here, that in a few days the dog took charge of them altogether,
  • driving them home to the yard every evening; and as soon as the goats
  • were put into the yard, the dog had his supper; and the dog took care,
  • therefore, not to be too late. To return to our narrative.
  • On Saturday, Humphrey and Pablo went to Lymington, to bring home
  • Edward's clothes, and Humphrey made Pablo acquainted with all that he
  • wanted to know, in case it might be necessary to send Pablo there alone.
  • Edward remained with his sisters, as he was to leave them on the Monday.
  • Sunday was passed as usual; they read the service at old Armitage's
  • grave, and afterward they walked in the forest; for Sunday was the only
  • day on which Alice could find time to leave her duties in the cottage.
  • They were not more grave than usual at the idea of Edward's leaving
  • them; but they kept up their spirits, as they were aware that it was
  • for the advantage of all.
  • On Monday morning, Edward, to please his sisters, put on his new
  • clothes, and put his forester's dress in the bundle with his linen.
  • Alice and Edith thought he looked very well in them, and said that it
  • reminded them of the days of Arnwood. The fact was, that Edward
  • appeared as he was--a gentleman born; that could not well be concealed
  • under a forester's dress, and in his present attire it was undeniable.
  • After breakfast, Billy was harnessed and brought to the cottage-door.
  • Edward's linen was put in the cart, and as he had agreed with Humphrey,
  • he took only Smoker with him, leaving the puppy at the cottage. Pablo
  • went with him, to bring back the cart. Edward kissed his sisters, who
  • wept at the idea of his leaving them, and, shaking hands with Humphrey,
  • he set off to cross the forest.
  • "Who would ever have believed this?" thought Edward, as he drove across
  • the forest, "that I should put myself under the roof and under the
  • protection of a Roundhead--one in outward appearance, and in the
  • opinion of the world at least, if he is not so altogether in opinions.
  • There is surely some spell upon me, and I almost feel as if I were a
  • traitor to my principles. Why I know not, I feel a regard for that man,
  • and a confidence in him. And why should I not? He knows my principles,
  • my feelings against his party, and he respects them. Surely he can not
  • wish to gain me over to his party; that were indeed ridiculous--a young
  • forester--a youth unknown. No, he would gain nothing by that, for I am
  • nobody. It must be from goodwill, and no other feeling. I have obliged
  • him in the service I rendered his daughter, and he is grateful."
  • Perhaps, had Edward put the question to himself, "Should I have been on
  • such friendly terms with the intendant--should I have accepted his
  • offer, if there had been no Patience Heatherstone?" he might then have
  • discovered what was the "spell upon him" which had rendered him so
  • tractable; but of that he had no idea. He only felt that his situation
  • would be rendered more comfortable by the society of an amiable and
  • handsome girl, and he inquired no further.
  • His revery was broken by Pablo, who appeared tired of holding his
  • tongue, and said, "Massa Edward, you not like leave home--you think
  • very much. Why you go there?"
  • "I certainly do not like to leave home, Pablo, for I am very fond of my
  • brother and sisters; but we can not always do as we wish in this world,
  • and it is for their sakes, more than from my own inclinations, that I
  • have done so."
  • "Can't see what good you do Missy Alice and Missy Edith 'cause you go
  • away. How it possible do good, and not with them? Suppose bad accident,
  • and you away, how you do good? Suppose bad accident, and you at
  • cottage, then you do good. I think, Massa Edward, you very foolish."
  • Edward laughed at this blunt observation of Pablo's, and replied, "It
  • is very true, Pablo, that I can not watch over my sisters, and protect
  • them in person, when I am away; but there are reasons why I should go,
  • nevertheless, and I may be more useful to them by going than by
  • remaining with them. If I did not think so, I would not leave them.
  • They know nobody, and have no friends in the world. Suppose anything
  • was to happen to me--suppose both Humphrey and I were to die--for you
  • know that we never know how soon that event may take place--who would
  • there be to protect my poor sisters, and what would become of them? Is
  • it not, therefore, wise that I should procure friends for them, in case
  • of accident, who would look after them and protect them? and it is my
  • hope, that by leaving them now, I shall make powerful and kind friends
  • for them. Do you understand me?"
  • "Yes, I see now; you think more than me, Massa Edward. I say just now,
  • you foolish; I say now, Pablo great fool."
  • "Besides, Pablo, recollect that I never would have left them as long as
  • there was only Humphrey and I to look after them, because an accident
  • might have happened to one of us; but when you came to live with us,
  • and I found what a good, clever boy you were, and that you were fond of
  • us all, I then said, 'Now I can leave my sisters, for Pablo shall take
  • my place, and assist Humphrey to do what is required, and to take care
  • of them.' Am I not right, Pablo?"
  • "Yes, Massa Edward," replied Pablo, taking hold of Edward's wrist, "you
  • quite right. Pablo does love Missy Alice, Missy Edith, Massa Humphrey,
  • and you, Massa Edward; he love you all very much indeed; he love you so
  • much that he die for you! Can do no more."
  • "That is what I really thought of you, Pablo, and yet I am glad to hear
  • it from your own mouth. If you had not come to live with us, and not
  • proved so faithful, I could not have left to benefit my sisters; but
  • you have induced me to leave, and they have to thank you if I am able
  • to be of any service to them."
  • "Well, Massa Edward, you go; never mind us, we make plenty of work; do
  • every thing all the same as you."
  • "I think you will, Pablo, and that is the reason why I have agreed to
  • go away. But, Pablo, Billy is growing old, and you will want some more
  • ponies."
  • "Yes, Massa Edward; Massa Humphrey talk to me about ponies last night,
  • and say plenty in the forest. Ask me if I think us able catch them. I
  • say yes, catch one, two, twenty, suppose want them."
  • "Ah! how will you do that, Pablo?"
  • "Massa Edward, you tell Massa Humphrey no possible, so I no tell you
  • how," replied Pablo, laughing. "Some day you come and see us, see five
  • ponies in the stable. Massa Humphrey and I, we talk about, find out
  • how; you see."
  • "Well, then, I shall ask no more questions, Pablo; and when I see the
  • ponies in the stable, then I'll believe it, and not before."
  • "Suppose you want big horse for ride, catch big horse, Massa Edward,
  • you see. Massa Humphrey very clever, he catch cow."
  • "Catch gipsy," said Edward.
  • "Yes," said Pablo, laughing, "catch cow, catch gipsy, and by-and-by
  • catch horse."
  • When Edward arrived at the intendant's house, he was very kindly
  • received by the intendant and the two girls. Having deposited his
  • wardrobe in his bedroom, he went out to Oswald and put Smoker in the
  • kennel, and on his return found Pablo sitting on the carpet in the
  • sitting-room, talking to Patience and Clara, and they all three
  • appeared much amused. When Pablo and Billy had both had something to
  • eat, the cart was filled with pots of flowers, and several, other
  • little things as presents from Patience Heatherstone, and Pablo set off
  • on his return.
  • "Well, Edward, you do look like a--" said Clara, stopping.
  • "Like a secretary, I hope," added Edward.
  • "Well, you don't look like a forester; does he, Patience?" continued
  • Clara.
  • "You must not judge of people by their clothes, Clara."
  • "Nor do I," replied Clara. "Those clothes would not look well upon
  • Oswald, or the other men, for they would not suit them; but they do
  • suit you: don't they, Patience?"
  • Patience Heatherstone, however, did not make any answer to this second
  • appeal made by Clara.
  • "Why don't you answer me, Patience?", said Clara.
  • "My dear Clara, it's not the custom for young maidens to make remarks
  • upon people's attire. Little girls like you may do so."
  • "Why, did you not tell Pablo that he looked well in his new clothes?"
  • "Yes, but Pablo is not Mr. Armitage, Clara. That is very different."
  • "Well, it may be, but still you might answer a question, if put to you,
  • Patience: and I ask again, does not Edward look much better in the
  • dress he has on than in the one that he has generally worn?"
  • "I think it a becoming dress, Clara, since you will have an answer."
  • "Fine feathers make fine birds, Clara," said Edward, laughing; "and so
  • that is all we can say about it."
  • Edward then changed the conversation. Soon afterward dinner was
  • announced, and Clara again observed to Edward,
  • "Why do you always call Patience Mistress Heatherstone? Ought he not to
  • call her Patience, sir?" said Clara, appealing to the intendant.
  • "That must depend upon his own feelings, my dear Clara," replied Mr.
  • Heatherstone. "It is my intention to wave ceremony as much as possible.
  • Edward Armitage has come to live with us as one of the family, and he
  • will find himself treated by me as one of us. I shall, therefore, in
  • future address him as Edward; and he has my full permission, and I may
  • say it is my wish, that he should be on the same familiar terms with us
  • all. When Edward feels inclined to address my daughter as he does you,
  • by her name of baptism, he will, I dare say, now that he has heard my
  • opinion, do so; and reserve 'Mistress Heatherstone,' for the time when
  • they have a quarrel."
  • "Then I hope he will never again address me that way," observed
  • Patience, "for I am under too great obligations to him to bear even the
  • idea of being on bad terms with him."
  • "Do you hear that, Edward?" said Clara.
  • "Yes, I do, Clara, and after such a remark you may be sure that I shall
  • never address her in that way again."
  • In a few days, Edward became quite at home. In the forenoon, Mr.
  • Heatherstone dictated one or two letters to him, which he wrote; and
  • after that his time was at his own disposal, and was chiefly passed in
  • the company of Patience and Clara. With the first he had now become on
  • the most intimate and brotherly footing; and when they addressed each
  • other, Patience and Edward were the only appellations made use of. Once
  • Mr. Heatherstone asked Edward whether he would not like to go out with
  • Oswald to kill a deer, which he did; but the venison was hardly yet in
  • season. There was a fine horse in the stable at Edward's order, and he
  • often rode out with Patience and Clara; indeed his time passed so
  • agreeably that he could hardly think it possible that a fortnight had
  • passed away, when he asked permission to go over to the cottage and see
  • his sisters. With the intendant's permission, Patience and Clara
  • accompanied him; and the joy of Alice and Edith was great when they
  • made their appearance. Oswald had, by Edward's request, gone over a day
  • or two before, to tell them that they were coming, that they might be
  • prepared; and the consequence was, that it was a holyday at the
  • cottage. Alice had cooked her best dinner, and Humphrey and Pablo were
  • at home to receive them.
  • "How pleasant it will be, if we are to see you and Clara whenever we
  • see Edward!" said Alice to Patience. "So far from being sorry that
  • Edward is with you, I shall be quite glad of it."
  • "I water the flowers every day," said Edith, "and they make the garden
  • look so gay."
  • "I will bring you plenty more in the autumn, Edith; but this is not the
  • right time for transplanting flowers yet," replied Patience. "And now,
  • Alice, you must take me to see your farm, for when I was here last I
  • had no time; let us come now, and show me every thing."
  • "But my dinner, Patience; I can not leave it, or it will be spoiled,
  • and that will never do. You must either go with Edith now, or wait till
  • after dinner, when I can get away."
  • "Well, then, we will stay till after dinner, Alice, and we will help
  • you to serve it up."
  • "Thank you; Pablo generally does that, for Edith can not reach down the
  • things. I don't know where he is."
  • "He went away with Edward and Humphrey I think," said Edith. "I'll
  • scold him when he comes back, for being out of the way."
  • "Never mind, Edith, I can reach the dishes," said Patience, "and you
  • and Clara can then take them, and the platters, and put them on the
  • table for Alice."
  • And Patience did as she proposed, and the dinner was soon afterward on
  • the table. There was a ham, and two boiled fowls, and a piece of salted
  • beef, and some roasted kid, besides potatoes and green peas; and when
  • it is considered that such a dinner was bet on the table by such young
  • people left entirely to their own exertions and industry, it must be
  • admitted that it did then and their farm great credit.
  • In the mean time, Edward and Humphrey, after the first greetings were
  • over, had walked out to converse, while Pablo had taken the horses into
  • the stable.
  • "Well, Humphrey how do you get on?"
  • "Very well," replied Humphrey. "I have just finished a very tough job.
  • I have dug out the saw-pit, and have sawed the slabs for the sides of
  • the pit, and made it quite secure. The large fir-tree that was blown
  • down is now at the pit, ready for sawing up into planks, and Pablo and
  • I are to commence to-morrow. At first we made but a bad hand of sawing
  • off the slabs, but before we had cut them all, we got on pretty well
  • Pablo don't much like it, and indeed no more do I much, it is such
  • mechanical work, and so tiring; but he does not complain--I do not
  • intend that he shall saw more than two days in a week; that will be
  • sufficient: we shall get on fast enough.
  • "You are right, Humphrey; it is an old saying, that you must not work a
  • willing horse to death. Pablo is very willing, but hard work he is not
  • accustomed to.
  • "Well, now you must come and look at my flock of goats, Edward, they
  • are not far off. I have taught Holdfast to take care of them, and he
  • never leaves them now, and brings them home at night. Watch always
  • remains with me, and is an excellent dog, and very intelligent."
  • "You have indeed a fine flock, Humphrey!" said Edward.
  • "Yes, and they are improved in appearance already since they have been
  • here. Alice has got her geese and ducks, and I have made a place large
  • enough for them to wash in, until I have time to dig them out a pond."
  • "I thought we had gathered more hay than you required; but with this
  • addition, I think you will find none to spare before the spring."
  • "So far from it, that I have been mowing down a great deal more,
  • Edward, and it is almost ready to carry away. Poor Billy has had hard
  • work of it, I assure you, since he came back, with one thing and
  • another."
  • "Poor fellow! but it won't last long, Humphrey," said Edward, smiling;
  • "the other horses will soon take his place."
  • "I trust they will," said Humphrey, "at all events by next spring;
  • before that I do not expect that they will."
  • "By-the-by, Humphrey, you recollect what I said to you that the robber
  • I shot told me just before he died."
  • "Yes, I do recollect it now," replied Humphrey; "but I had quite
  • forgotten all about it till you mentioned it now, although I wrote it
  • down that we might not forget it."
  • "Well, I have been thinking all about it, Humphrey. The robber told me
  • that the money was mine, taking me for another person; therefore I do
  • not consider it was given to me, nor do I consider that it was his to
  • give. I hardly know what to do about it, nor to whom the money can be
  • said to belong."
  • "Well, I think I can answer that question. The property of all
  • malefactors belongs to the king; and therefore this money belongs to
  • the king; and we may retain it for the king, or use it for his service."
  • "Yes, it would have belonged to the king, had the man been condemned,
  • and hung on the gallows as he deserved; but he was not, and therefore I
  • think that it does not belong to the king."
  • "Then it belongs to whoever finds it, and who keeps it till it is
  • claimed--which will never be."
  • "I think I must speak to the intendant about it," replied Edward; "I
  • should feel more comfortable."
  • "Then do so," replied Humphrey; "I think you are right to have no
  • concealments from him."
  • "But, Humphrey," replied Edward, laughing, "what silly fellows we are!
  • we do not yet know whether we shall find any thing; we must first see
  • if there is any thing buried there; and when we have done so, then we
  • will decide how to act. I shall, if it please God, be over again in a
  • fortnight, and in the mean time, do you find out the place, and
  • ascertain if what the fellow said is true."
  • "I will," replied Humphrey. "I will go to-morrow, with Billy and the
  • cart, and take a spade and pickax with me. It may be a fool's errand,
  • but still they say, and one would credit, for the honor of human
  • nature, that the words of a dying man are those of truth. We had better
  • go back now, for I think dinner must be ready."
  • Now that they had become so intimate with Patience Heatherstone--and, I
  • may add, so fond of her--there was no longer any restraint, and they
  • had a very merry dinner party; and after dinner, Patience went out with
  • Alice and Edith, and looked over the garden and farm. She wished very
  • much to ascertain if there was any thing that they required, but she
  • could discover but few things, and those only trifles; but she
  • recollected them all, and sent them to the cottage a few days
  • afterward. But the hour of parting arrived, for it was a long ride
  • back, and they could not stay any longer if they wished to get home
  • before dark, as Mr. Heatherstone had requested Edward that they should
  • do; so the horses were brought out, and wishing good-by, they set off
  • again--little Edith crying after them, "Come again soon! Patience, you
  • must come again soon!"
  • CHAPTER XX.
  • The summer had now advanced, when Oswald one day said to Edward,
  • "Have you heard the news, sir?"
  • "Nothing very particular," replied Edward; "I know that General
  • Cromwell is over in Ireland, and they say very successful; but I have
  • cared little for particulars."
  • "They say a great deal more, sir," replied Oswald; "they say that the
  • king is in Scotland, and that the Scotch have raised an army for him."
  • "Indeed!" replied Edward, "that is news indeed! The intendant has never
  • mentioned it to me."
  • "I dare say not, sir; for he knows your feelings, and would sorry to
  • part with you."
  • "I will certainly speak to him on the subject," said Edward, at the
  • "risk of his displeasure; and join the army I will, if I find what you
  • say is true. I should hold myself a craven to remain here while the
  • king is fighting for his own, and not to be at his side."
  • "Well, sir, I think it is true, for I heard that the Parliament had
  • sent over for General Cromwell to leave Ireland, and lead the troops
  • against the Scotch army."
  • "You drive me mad, Oswald! I will go to the intendant immediately!"
  • Edward, much excited by the intelligence, went into the room where he
  • usually sat with the intendant. The latter, who was at his desk, looked
  • up, and saw how flushed Edward was, and said very quietly,
  • "Edward, you are excited, I presume, from hearing the news which has
  • arrived?"
  • "Yes, sir, I am very much so; and I regret very much that I should be
  • the last to whom such important news is made known."
  • "It is, as you say, important news," replied the intendant; "but if you
  • will sit down, we will talk a little upon the subject."
  • Edward took a chair, and the intendant said,
  • "I have no doubt that your present feeling is to go to Scotland, and
  • join the army without delay."
  • "Such is my intention, I candidly confess, sir. It is my duty."
  • "Perhaps you may be persuaded to the contrary before we part," replied
  • the intendant. "The first duty you owe is to your family in their
  • present position; they depend upon you; and a false step on your part
  • would be their ruin. How can you leave them, and leave my employ,
  • without it being known for what purpose you are gone? It is impossible!
  • I must myself make it known, and even then it would be very injurious
  • to me, the very circumstance of my having one of your party in my
  • service. I am suspected by many already, in consequence of the part I
  • have taken against the murder of the late king, and also of the lords
  • who have since suffered. But, Edward, I did not communicate this
  • intelligence to you for many reasons. I knew that it would soon come to
  • your ears, and I thought it better that I should be more prepared to
  • show you that you may do yourself and me harm, and can do no good to
  • the king. I will now show you that I do put confidence in you; and if
  • you will read these letters, they will prove to you that I am correct
  • in what I assert."
  • The intendant handed three letters to Edward, by which it was evident
  • that all the king's friends in England were of opinion that the time
  • was not ripe for the attempt, and that it would be only a sacrifice to
  • stir in the matter; that the Scotch army raised was composed of those
  • who were the greatest enemies to the king, and that the best thing that
  • could happen for the king's interest would be that they were destroyed
  • by Cromwell; that it was impossible for the English adherents of
  • Charles to join them, and that the Scotch did not wish them so to do.
  • "You are no politician, Edward," said the intendant, smiling, as Edward
  • laid the letters down on the table. "You must admit that, in showing
  • you these letters, I have put the utmost confidence in you."
  • "You have, indeed, sir; and, thanking you for having so done, I need
  • hardly add that your confidence will never be betrayed."
  • "That I am sure of; and I trust you will now agree with me and my
  • friends that the best thing is to remain quiet."
  • "Certainly, sir, and in future I will be guided by you."
  • "That is all I require of you; and, after that promise, you shall hear
  • all the news as soon as it arrives. There are thousands who are just as
  • anxious to see the king on the throne again as you are, Edward--and you
  • now know that I am one of them; but the hour is not yet come, and we
  • must bide our time. Depend upon it, General Cromwell will scatter that
  • army like chaff. He is on his march now. After what has passed between
  • us this day, Edward, I shall talk unreserved to you on what is going
  • on."
  • "I thank you, sir, and I promise you faithfully, as I said before, not
  • only to be guided by your advice, but to be most secret in all that you
  • may trust me with."
  • "I have confidence in you, Edward Armitage; and now we will drop the
  • subject for the present; Patience and Clara want you to walk with them,
  • so good-by for the present."
  • Edward left the intendant, much pleased with the interview. The
  • intendant kept his word, and concealed nothing from Edward. All turned
  • out as the intendant had foretold. The Scotch army was cut to pieces by
  • Cromwell, and the king retreated to the Highlands; and Edward now felt
  • satisfied that he could do no better than be guided by the intendant in
  • all his future undertakings.
  • We must now pass over some time in a few words. Edward continued at the
  • intendant's, and gave great satisfaction to Mr. Heatherstone. He passed
  • his time very agreeably, sometimes going out to shoot deer with Oswald,
  • and often supplying venison to his brother and sisters at the cottage.
  • During the autumn, Patience very often went to the cottage, and
  • occasionally Mr. Heatherstone paid them a visit; but after the winter
  • set in, Edward came over by himself, shooting as he went; and when he
  • and Smoker came to the cottage, Billy always had a journey to go for
  • the venison left in the forest. Patience sent Alice many little things
  • for the use of her and Edith, and some very good books for them to
  • read; and Humphrey, during the evenings, read with his sisters, that
  • they might learn what he could teach them. Pablo also learned to read
  • and write. Humphrey and Pablo had worked at the saw-pit, and had sawed
  • out a large quantity of boards and timber for building, but the
  • building was put off till the spring.
  • The reader may recollect that Edward had proposed to Humphrey that he
  • should ascertain whether what the robber had stated before his death
  • relative to his having concealed his ill-gotten wealth under the tree
  • which was struck by lightning was true. About ten days afterward
  • Humphrey set off on this expedition. He did not take Pablo with him,
  • as, although he had a very good opinion of him, he agreed with Oswald
  • that temptation should not be put in his way. Humphrey considered that
  • it would be the best plan to go at once to Clara's cottage, and from
  • that proceed to find the oak-tree mentioned by the robber. When he
  • arrived at the thicket which surrounded the cottage, it occurred to him
  • that he would just go through it and see if it was in the state which
  • they had left it in; for after the intendant had been there, he had
  • given directions to his men to remain and bury the bodies, and then to
  • lock up the doors of the cottage, and bring the keys to him, which had
  • been done. Humphrey tied Billy and the cart to a tree, and walked
  • through the thicket. As he approached the cottage he heard voices; this
  • induced him to advance very carefully, for he had not brought his gun
  • with him. He crouched down as he came to the opening before the
  • cottage. The doors and windows were open, and there were two men
  • sitting outside, cleaning their guns; and in one of them Humphrey
  • recognized the man Corbould, who had been discharged by the intendant
  • as soon as his wound had been cured, and who was supposed to have gone
  • to London. Humphrey was too far off to hear what they said; he remained
  • there some time, and three more men came out of the cottage. Satisfied
  • with what he had seen, Humphrey cautiously retreated, and, gaining the
  • outside of the thicket, led away Billy and the cart over the turf, that
  • the noise of the wheels might not be heard.
  • "This bodes no good," thought Humphrey as he went along, every now and
  • then looking back to ascertain if the men had come out and seen him.
  • "That Corbould we know has vowed vengeance against Edward, and all of
  • us; and has, no doubt, joined those robbers--for robbers they must
  • be--that he may fulfill his vow. It is fortunate that I have made the
  • discovery and I will send over immediately to the intendant." As soon
  • as a clump of trees had shut out the thicket, and he had no longer any
  • fear of being seen by these people, Humphrey went in the direction
  • which the robber had mentioned, and soon afterward he perceived the oak
  • scathed with lightning, which stood by itself on a green spot of about
  • twenty acres. It had been a noble tree before it had been destroyed;
  • now it spread its long naked arms, covering a large space of ground,
  • but without the least sign of vegetation or life remaining. The trunk
  • was many feet in diameter, and was apparently quite sound, although the
  • tree was dead. Humphrey left Billy to feed on the herbage close by, and
  • then, from the position of the sun in the heavens, ascertained the
  • point at which he was to dig. First looking around him to see that he
  • was not overlooked, he took his spade and pick-ax out of the cart and
  • begun his task. There was a spot not quite so green as the rest, which
  • Humphrey thought likely to be the very place that he should dig at, as
  • probably it was not green from the soil having been removed. He
  • commenced at this spot, and, after a few moments' labor, his pick-ax
  • struck upon something hard, which, on clearing away the earth, he
  • discovered to be a wooden lid of a box. Satisfied that he was right,
  • Humphrey now worked hard, and in a few minutes he had cleared away
  • sufficiently to be able to lift out the box and place it on the turf.
  • He was about to examine it, when he perceived, at about five hundred
  • yards' distance, three men coming toward him. "They have discovered
  • me," thought Humphrey; "and I must be off as soon as I can." He ran to
  • Billy, who was close to him, and bringing the cart to where the box
  • lay, he lifted it in. As he was getting in himself, with the reins in
  • his hands, he perceived that the three men were running toward him as
  • fast as they could, and that they all had guns in their hands. They
  • were not more than a hundred and fifty yards from him when Humphrey set
  • off, putting Billy to a full trot.
  • The three men, observing this, called out to Humphrey to stop, or they
  • would fire; but Humphrey's only reply was giving a lash to Billy, which
  • set him off at a gallop. The men immediately fired, and the bullets
  • whistled past Humphrey without doing any harm. Humphrey looked round,
  • and finding that he had increased his distance, pulled up the pony, and
  • went at a more moderate pace. "You'll not catch me," thought Humphrey;
  • "and your guns are not loaded, so I'll tantalize you a little." He made
  • Billy walk, and turned round to see what the men were about; they had
  • arrived at where he had dug out the box, and were standing round the
  • hole, evidently aware that it was no use following him. "Now," thought
  • Humphrey as he went along at a faster pace, "those fellows will wonder
  • what I have been digging up. The villains little think that I know
  • where to find them, and they have proved what they are by firing at me.
  • Now, what must I do? They may follow me to the cottage, for I have no
  • doubt that they know where we live, and that Edward is at the
  • intendant's. They may come and attack us, and I dare not leave the
  • cottage tonight, or send Pablo away, in case they should; but I will
  • tomorrow morning." Humphrey considered, as he went along, all the
  • circumstances and probabilities, and decided that he would act as he at
  • first proposed to himself. In an hour he was at the cottage; and as
  • soon as Alice had given him his dinner--for he was later than the usual
  • dinner hour--he told her what had taken place.
  • "Where is Pablo?"
  • "He has been working in the garden with Edith all the day," replied
  • Alice.
  • "Well, dear, I hope they will not come tonight: tomorrow I will have
  • them all in custody; but if they do come, we must do our best to beat
  • them off. It is fortunate that Edward left the guns and pistols which
  • he found in Clara's cottage, as we shall have no want of firearms; and
  • we can barricade the doors and windows, so that they can not get in in
  • a hurry; but I must have Pablo to help me, for there is no time to be
  • lost."
  • "But can not I help you, Humphrey?" said Alice. "Surely I can do
  • something?"
  • "We will see, Alice; but I think I can do without you. We have still
  • plenty of daylight. I will take the box into your room."
  • Humphrey, who had only taken the box out of the cart and carried it
  • within the threshold of the door, now took it into his sisters'
  • bedroom, and then went out and called Pablo, who came running to him.
  • "Pablo," said Humphrey, "we must bring to the cottage some of the large
  • pieces we sawed out for rafters; for I should not be surprised if the
  • cottage were attacked this night." He then told Pablo what had taken
  • place. "You see, Pablo, I dare not send to the intendant to-night, in
  • case the robbers should come here."
  • "No, not send to-night," said Pablo; "stay here and fight them; first
  • make door fast, then cut hole to fire through."
  • "Yes, that was my idea. You don't mind fighting them, Pablo?"
  • "No; fight hard for Missy Alice and Missy Edith," said Pablo; "fight
  • for you too, Massa Humphrey, and fight for myself," added Pablo,
  • laughing.
  • They then went for the pieces of squared timber, brought them from the
  • saw-pit to the cottage, and very soon fitted them to the doors and
  • windows, so as to prevent several men, with using all their strength,
  • from forcing them open.
  • "That will do," said Humphrey; "and now get me the small saw, Pablo,
  • and I will cut a hole or two to fire through."
  • It was dark before they had finished, and then they made all fast, and
  • went to Pablo's room for the arms, which they got ready for service,
  • and loaded.
  • "Now we are all ready, Alice, so let us have our supper," said
  • Humphrey. "We will make a fight for it, and they shall not get in so
  • easily as they think."
  • After they had had their supper, Humphrey said the prayers, and told
  • his sisters to go to bed.
  • "Yes, Humphrey, we will go to bed, but we will not undress, for if they
  • come, I must be up to help you. I can load a gun, you know, and Edith
  • can take them to you as fast as I load them. Won't you, Edith?"
  • "Yes, I will bring you the guns, Humphrey, and you shall shoot them,"
  • replied Edith.
  • Humphrey kissed his sisters, and they went to their room. He then put a
  • light in the chimney, that he might not have to get one in case the
  • robbers came, and then desired Pablo to go and lie down on his bed, as
  • he intended to do the same. Humphrey remained awake till past three
  • o'clock in the morning, but no robbers came. Pablo was snoring loud,
  • and at last Humphrey fell asleep himself, and did not wake till broad
  • daylight. He got up, and found Alice and Edith were already in the
  • sitting-room, lighting the fire.
  • "I would not wake you, Humphrey, as you had been sitting up so long.
  • The robbers have not made their appearance, that is clear; shall we
  • unbar the door and window-shutters now?"
  • "Yes, I think we may. Here, Pablo!"
  • "Yes," replied Pablo, coming out half asleep; "what the matter? thief
  • come?"
  • "No," replied Edith, "thief not come, but sun shine, and lazy Pablo not
  • get up."
  • "Up now, Missy Edith."
  • "Yes, but not awake yet."
  • "Yes, Missy Edith, quite awake."
  • "Well, then, help me to undo the door, Pablo."
  • They took down the barricades, and Humphrey opened the door cautiously,
  • and looked out.
  • "They won't come now, at all events, I should think," observed
  • Humphrey; "but there is no saying--they may be prowling about, and may
  • think it easier to get in during daytime than at night. Go out, Pablo,
  • and look about every where; take a pistol with you, and fire it off if
  • there is any danger, and then come back as fast as you can."
  • Pablo took the pistol, and then Humphrey went out of the door and
  • looked well round in front of the cottage, but he would not leave the
  • door till he was assured that no one was there. Pablo returned soon
  • after, saying that he had looked round every where, and into the
  • cow-house and yard, and there was nobody to be seen. This satisfied
  • Humphrey, and they returned to the cottage.
  • "Now, Pablo, get your breakfast, while I write the letter to the
  • intendant," said Humphrey; "and then you must saddle Billy, and go over
  • to him as fast as you can with the letter. You can tell him all I have
  • not said in it. I shall expect you back at night, and some people with
  • you."
  • "I see," said Pablo, who immediately busied himself with some cold meat
  • which Alice put before him. Pablo had finished his breakfast and
  • brought Billy to the door, before Humphrey had finished his letter. As
  • soon as it was written and folded, Pablo set off, as fast as Billy
  • could go, to the other side of the forest.
  • Humphrey continued on the look-out during the whole day, with his gun
  • on his arm, and his two dogs by his side; for he knew the dogs would
  • give notice of the approach of any one, long before he might see them;
  • but nothing occurred during the whole day; and when the evening closed
  • in he barricaded the doors and windows, and remained on the watch with
  • the dogs, waiting for the coming of the robbers, or for the arrival of
  • the party which he expected would be sent by the intendant to take the
  • robbers. Just as it was dark, Pablo returned with a note from Edward,
  • saying that he would be over, and at the cottage by ten o'clock, with a
  • large party.
  • Humphrey had said in his letter, that it would be better that any force
  • sent by the intendant should not arrive till after dark, as the robbers
  • might be near and perceive them, and then they might escape; he did not
  • therefore expect them to come till some time after dark. Humphrey was
  • reading a book--Pablo was dozing in the chimney corner--the two girls
  • had retired into their room and had lain down on the bed in their
  • clothes, when the dogs both gave a low growl.
  • "Somebody come," said Pablo, starting up.
  • Again the dogs growled, and Humphrey made a sign to Pablo to hold his
  • tongue. A short time of anxious silence succeeded, for it was
  • impossible to ascertain whether the parties were friends or enemies.
  • The dogs now sprung up and barked furiously at the door, and as soon as
  • Humphrey had silenced them, a voice was heard outside, begging for
  • admission to a poor benighted traveler. This was sufficient; it could
  • not be the party from the intendant's, but the robbers who wished to
  • induce them to open the door. Pablo put a gun into Humphrey's hand, and
  • took another for himself; he then removed the light into the chimney,
  • and on the application from outside being repeated, Humphrey answered,
  • "That he never opened the door at that hour of the night, and that it
  • was useless their remaining."
  • No answer or repetition of the request was made, but, as Humphrey
  • retreated with Pablo into the fireplace, a gun was fired into the lock
  • of the door, which was blown off into the room, and, had it not been
  • for the barricades, the doors must have flown open. The robbers
  • appeared surprised at such not being the case, and one of them inserted
  • his arm into the hole made in the door, to ascertain what might be the
  • further obstacle to open it, when Pablo slipped past Humphrey, and
  • gaining the door, discharged his gun under the arm which had been
  • thrust into the hole in the door. The party, whoever it might have
  • been, gave a loud cry, and fell at the threshold outside.
  • "I think that will do," said Humphrey: "we must not take more life than
  • is necessary. I had rather that you had fired through his arm--it would
  • have disabled him, and that would have sufficed."
  • "Kill much better," said Pablo. "Corbould shot through leg, come again
  • to rob; suppose shot dead, never rob more."
  • The dogs now flew to the back of the cottage, evidently pointing out
  • that the robbers were attempting that side. Humphrey put his gun
  • through the hole in the door, and discharged it.
  • "Why you do that, Massa Humphrey? nobody there!"
  • "I know that, Pablo; but if the people are coming from the intendant's,
  • they will see the flash and perhaps hear the report, and it will let
  • them know what is going on."
  • "There is another gun loaded, Humphrey," said Alice, who with Edith had
  • joined them without Humphrey observing it.
  • "Thanks, love; but you and Edith must not remain here; sit down on the
  • hearth, and then you will be sheltered from any bullet which they may
  • fire into the house. I have no fear of their getting in, and we shall
  • have help directly, I have no doubt. Pablo, I shall fire through the
  • back door; they must be there, for the dogs have their noses under it,
  • and are so violent. Do you fire another gun, as a signal, through the
  • hole in the front door."
  • Humphrey stood within four feet of the back door, and fired just above
  • where the dogs held their noses and barked. Pablo discharged his gun as
  • directed, and then returned to reload the guns. The dogs were now more
  • quiet, and it appeared as if the robbers had retreated from the back
  • door. Pablo blew out the light, which had been put more in the center
  • of the room when Alice and Edith took possession of the fireplace.
  • "No fear, Missy Edith, I know where find every thing," said Pablo, who
  • now went and peered through the hole in the front door, to see if the
  • robbers were coming to it again; but he could see and hear nothing for
  • some time.
  • At last the attack was renewed; the dogs flew backward and forward,
  • sometimes to one door and then to another, as if both were to be
  • assailed; and at the same time a crash in Alice's bedchamber told them
  • that the robbers had burst in the small window in that room, which
  • Humphrey had not paid any attention to, as it was so small that a man
  • could hardly introduce his body through it. Humphrey immediately called
  • Holdfast and opened the door of the room, for he thought that a man
  • forcing his way in would be driven back or held by the dog, and he and
  • Pablo dared not leave the two doors. Watch, the other dog, followed
  • Holdfast into the bedroom; and oaths and curses, mingled with the
  • savage yells of the dogs, told them that a conflict was going on. Both
  • doors were now battered with heavy pieces of timber at the same time,
  • and Pablo said,
  • "Great many robbers here."
  • A moment or more had passed, during which Pablo and Humphrey had both
  • again fired their guns through the door, when, of a sudden, other
  • sounds were heard--shots were fired outside, loud cries, and angry
  • oaths and exclamations.
  • "The intendant's people are come," said Humphrey, "I am sure of it."
  • Shortly afterward Humphrey heard his name called by Edward, and he
  • replied, and went to the door and undid the barricades.
  • "Get a light, Alice, dear," said Humphrey, "we are all safe now. I will
  • open the door directly, Edward, but in the dark I can not see the
  • fastenings."
  • "Are you all safe, Humphrey?"
  • "Yes, all safe, Edward. Wait till Alice brings a light,"
  • Alice soon brought one, and then the door was unfastened. Edward
  • stepped over the body of a man which lay at the threshold, saying--
  • "You have settled somebody there, at all events," and then caught Edith
  • and Alice in his arms.
  • He was followed by Oswald and some other men, leading in the prisoners.
  • "Bind that fellow fast, Oswald," said Edward. "Get another light,
  • Pablo; let us see who it is that lies outside the door."
  • "First see who is in my bedroom, Edward," said Alice, "for the dogs are
  • still there."
  • "In your bedroom, dearest? Well, then, let us go there first."
  • Edward went in with Humphrey, and found a man half in the window and
  • half out, held by the throat and apparently suffocated by the two dogs.
  • He took the dogs off; and desiring the men to secure the robber, and
  • ascertain whether he was alive or not, he returned to the sitting-room,
  • and then went to examine the body outside the door.
  • "Corbould, as I live!" cried Oswald.
  • "Yes," replied Edward, "he has gone to his account. God forgive him!"
  • On inquiry they found, that of all the robbers, to the number of ten,
  • not one had escaped--eight they had made prisoners, Corbould, and the
  • man whom the dogs had seized, and who was found to be quite dead, made
  • up the number. The robbers were all bound and guarded; and then,
  • leaving them under the charge of Oswald and five of his men, Edward and
  • Humphrey set off with seven more to Clara's cottage, to ascertain if
  • there were any more to be found there. They arrived by two o'clock in
  • the morning, and, on knocking several times, the door was opened and
  • they seized another man, the only one who was found in it. They then
  • went back to the cottage with their prisoner, and by the time that they
  • had arrived it was daylight. As soon as the party sent by the intendant
  • had been supplied with a breakfast, Edward bade farewell to Humphrey
  • and his sisters, that he might return and deliver up his prisoners.
  • Pablo went with him to bring back the cart which carried the two dead
  • bodies. This capture cleared the forest of the robbers which had so
  • long infested it, for they never had any more attempts made from that
  • time.
  • Before Edward left, Humphrey and he examined the box which Humphrey had
  • dug up from under the oak, and which had occasioned such danger to the
  • inmates of the cottage; for one of the men stated to Edward that they
  • suspected that the box which they had seen Humphrey dig out contained
  • treasure, and that without they had seen him in possession of it, they
  • never should have attacked the cottage, although Corbould had often
  • persuaded them so to do; but as they knew that he was only seeking
  • revenge--and they required money to stimulate them--they had refused,
  • as they considered that there was nothing to be obtained in the cottage
  • worth the risk, as they knew that the inmates had firearms, and would
  • defend themselves. On examination of its contents, they found in the
  • box a sum of 40 pounds in gold, a bag of silver, and some other
  • valuables in silver spoons, candlesticks, and ornaments for women.
  • Edward took a list of the contents, and when he returned he stated to
  • the intendant all that had occurred, and requested to know what should
  • be done with the money and other articles which Humphrey had found.
  • "I wish you had said nothing to me about it," said the intendant,
  • "although I am pleased with your open and fair dealing. I can not say
  • any thing, except that you had better let Humphrey keep it till it is
  • claimed--which, of course, it never will be. But, Edward, Humphrey must
  • come over here and make his deposition, as I must report the capture of
  • these robbers, and send them to trial. You had better go with the clerk
  • and take the depositions of Pablo and your sisters, while Humphrey
  • comes here. You can stay till his return. Their depositions are not of
  • so much consequence as Humphrey's, as they can only speak as to the
  • attack, but Humphrey's I must take down myself."
  • When Patience and Clara heard that Edward was going over, they obtained
  • leave to go with him to see Alice and Edith, and were to be escorted
  • back by Humphrey. This the intendant consented to, and they had a very
  • merry party. Humphrey remained two days at the intendant's house, and
  • then returned to the cottage, where Edward had taken his place during
  • his absence.
  • CHAPTER XXI.
  • The winter set in very severe, and the falls of snow were very heavy
  • and frequent. It was fortunate that Humphrey had been so provident in
  • making so large a quantity of hay, or the stock would have been
  • starved. The flock of goats, in a great part, subsisted themselves on
  • the bark of trees and moss; at night they had some hay given to them,
  • and they did very well. It was hardly possible for Edward to come over
  • to see his brother and sisters, for the snow was so deep as to render
  • such a long journey too fatiguing for a horse. Twice or thrice after
  • the snow fell, he contrived to get over; but after that they knew it
  • was impossible, and they did not expect him. Humphrey and Pablo had
  • little to do except attending to the stock, and cutting firewood to
  • keep up their supply, for they now burned it very fast. The snow lay
  • several feet high round the cottage, being driven against it by the
  • wind. They had kept a passage clear to the yard, and had kept the yard
  • as clear of snow as possible: they could do no more. A sharp frost and
  • clear weather succeeded to the snow-storms, and there appeared no
  • chance of the snow melting away. The nights were dark and long, and
  • their oil for their lamp was getting low. Humphrey was anxious to go to
  • Lymington, as they required many things but it was impossible to go any
  • where except on foot, and walking was, from the depth of the snow, a
  • most fatiguing exercise. There was one thing, however, that Humphrey
  • had not forgotten, which was, that he had told Edward that he would try
  • and capture some of the forest ponies; and during the whole of the time
  • since the heavy fall of snow had taken place he had been making his
  • arrangements. The depth of the snow prevented the animals from
  • obtaining any grass, and they were almost starved, as they could find
  • nothing to subsist upon except the twigs and branches of trees which
  • they could reach. Humphrey went out with Pablo, and found the herd,
  • which was about five miles from the cottage, and near to Clara's
  • cottage. He and Pablo brought with them as much hay as they could
  • carry, and strewed it about, so as to draw the ponies nearer to them,
  • and then Humphrey looked for a place which would answer his purpose.
  • About three miles from the cottage, he found what he thought would suit
  • him; there was a sort of avenue between the two thickets, about a
  • hundred yards wide; and the wind blowing through this avenue, during
  • the snow-storm, had drifted the snow at one end of it, and right across
  • it raised a large mound several feet high. By strewing small bundles of
  • hay, he drew the herd of ponies into this avenue; and in the avenue he
  • left them a good quantity to feed upon every night for several nights,
  • till at last the herd of ponies went there every morning.
  • "Now, Pablo, we must make a trial," said Humphrey. "You must get your
  • lassoes ready, in case they should be required. We must go to the
  • avenue before daylight, with the two dogs, tie one upon one side of the
  • avenue and the other on the other, that they may bark and prevent the
  • ponies from attempting to escape through the thicket. Then we must get
  • the ponies between us and the drift of snow which lies across the
  • avenue, and try if we can not draw them into the drift. If so, they
  • will plunge in so deep that some of them will not be able to get out
  • before we have thrown the ropes round their necks."
  • "I see," said Pablo; "very good--soon catch them."
  • Before daylight they went with the dogs and a large bundle of hay,
  • which they strewed nearer to the mound of drift-snow. They then tied
  • the dogs up on each side, ordering them to lie down and be quiet. They
  • then walked through the thicket so as not to be perceived, until they
  • considered that they were far enough from the drift-snow. About
  • daylight, the herd came to pick up the hay as usual, and after they had
  • passed them Humphrey and Pablo followed in the thicket, not wishing to
  • show themselves till the last moment. While the ponies were busy with
  • the hay, they suddenly ran out into the avenue and separated, so as to
  • prevent the ponies from attempting to gallop past them. Shouting as
  • loud they could, as they ran up to the ponies, and calling to the dogs,
  • who immediately set up barking on each side, the ponies, alarmed at the
  • noise and the appearance of Humphrey and Pablo, naturally set off in
  • the only direction which appeared to them to be clear, and galloped
  • away over the mound of drift-snow, with their tails streaming, snorting
  • and plunging in the snow as they hurried along; but as soon as they
  • arrived at the mound of drift-snow, they plunged first up to their
  • bellies, and afterward, as they attempted to force their way where the
  • snow was deeper, many of them stuck fast altogether, and attempted to
  • clear themselves in vain. Humphrey and Pablo, who had followed them as
  • fast as they could run, now came up with them and threw the lasso over
  • the neck of one, and ropes with slip-nooses over two more, which were
  • floundering in the snow there together. The remainder of the herd,
  • after great exertions, got clear of the snow by turning round and
  • galloping back through the avenue. The three ponies captured made a
  • furious struggle, but by drawing the ropes tight round their necks they
  • were choked, and soon unable to move. They then tied their fore-legs,
  • and loosed the ropes round their necks, that they might recover their
  • breath.
  • "Got them now, Massa Humphrey," said Pablo.
  • "Yes; but our work is not yet over, Pablo; we must get them home; how
  • shall we manage that?"
  • "Suppose they no eat to-day and to-morrow, get very tame."
  • "I believe that will be the best way; they can not get loose again, do
  • all they can."
  • "No, sir; but get one home to-day. This very fine pony; suppose we try
  • him."
  • Pablo then put the halter on, and tied the end short to the fore-leg of
  • the pony, so that it could not walk without keeping its head close to
  • the ground--if it raised its head, it was obliged to lift up its leg.
  • Then he put the lasso round its neck, to choke it if it was too unruly,
  • and having done that, he cast loose the ropes which had tied its
  • fore-legs together.
  • "Now, Massa Humphrey, we get him home somehow. First I go loose the
  • dogs; he 'fraid of the dogs, and run t'other way."
  • The pony, which was an iron-gray and very handsome, plunged furiously
  • and kicked behind, but it could not do so without falling down, which
  • it did several times before Pablo returned with the dogs. Humphrey held
  • one part of the lasso on one side, and Pablo on the other, keeping the
  • pony between them; and with the dogs barking at it behind, they
  • contrived, with a great deal of exertion and trouble, to get the pony
  • to the cottage. The poor animal, driven in this way on three legs, and
  • every now and then choked with the lasso, was covered with foam before
  • they arrived. Billy was turned out of his stable to make room for the
  • new-comer, who was fastened securely to the manger and then left
  • without food, that he might become tame. It was too late then, and they
  • were too tired themselves to go for the other two ponies; so they were
  • left lying on the snow all night, and the next morning they found they
  • were much tamer than the first; and during the day, following the same
  • plan, they were both brought to the stable and secured alongside of the
  • other. One was a bay pony with black legs, and the other a brown one.
  • The bay pony was a mare, and the other two horses. Alice and Edith were
  • delighted with the new ponies, and Humphrey was not a little pleased
  • that he had succeeded in capturing them, after what had passed between
  • Edward and him. After two days' fasting, the poor animals were so tame
  • that they ate out of Pablo's hand, and submitted to be stroked and
  • caressed; and before they were a fortnight in the stable, Alice and
  • Edith could go up to them without danger. They were soon broken in; for
  • the yard being full of muck, Pablo took them into it and mounted them.
  • They plunged and kicked at first, and tried all they could to get rid
  • of him, but they sunk so deep into the muck that they were soon tired
  • out; and after a month, they were all three tolerably quiet to ride.
  • The snow was so deep all over the country that there was little
  • communication with the metropolis. The intendant's letters spoke of
  • King Charles raising another army in Holland, and that his adherents in
  • England were preparing to join him as soon at he marched southward.
  • "I think, Edward," said the intendant, "that the king's affairs do now
  • wear a more promising aspect; but there is plenty of time yet. I know
  • your anxiety to serve your king, and I can not blame it. I shall not
  • prevent your going, although, of course, I must not appear to be
  • cognizant of your having so done. When the winter breaks up I shall
  • send you to London. You will then be better able to judge of what is
  • going on, and your absence will not create any suspicion; but you must
  • be guided by me."
  • "I certainly will, sir," replied Edward. "I should, indeed, like to
  • strike one blow for the king, come what will."
  • "All depends upon whether they manage affairs well in Scotland; but
  • there is so much jealousy and pride, and, I fear, treachery also, that
  • it is hard to say how matters may end."
  • It was soon after this conversation that a messenger arrived from
  • London with letters, announcing that King Charles had been crowned in
  • Scotland, with great solemnity and magnificence.
  • "The plot thickens," said the intendant; "and by this letter from my
  • correspondent, Ashley Cooper, I find that the king's army is well
  • appointed, and that David Lesley is lieutenant-general; Middleton
  • commands the horse, and Wemyss the artillery. That Wemyss is certainly
  • a good officer, but was not true to the late king: may he behave better
  • to the present! Now, Edward, I shall send you to London, and I will
  • give you letters to those who will advise you how to proceed. You may
  • take the black horse; he will bear you well. You will of course write
  • to me, for Sampson will go with you, and you can send him back when you
  • consider that you do not require or wish for his presence: there is no
  • time to be lost, for, depend upon it, Cromwell, who is still at
  • Edinburgh, will take the field as soon as he can. Are you ready to
  • start to-morrow morning?"
  • "Yes, sir, quite ready."
  • "I fear that you can not go over to the cottage to bid farewell to your
  • sisters; but, perhaps, it is better that you should not."
  • "I think so too, sir," replied Edward; "now that the snow has nearly
  • disappeared, I did think of going over, having been so long absent, but
  • I must send Oswald over instead."
  • "Well, then, leave me to write my letters, and do you prepare your
  • saddle-bags. Patience and Clara will assist you. Tell Sampson to come
  • to me."
  • Edward went to Patience and Clara, and told them that he was to set off
  • for London on the following morning, and was about to make his
  • preparations.
  • "How long do you remain, Edward?" inquired Patience.
  • "I can not tell; Sampson goes with me, and I must, of course, be guided
  • by your father. Do you know where the saddle-bags are, Patience?"
  • "Yes; Phoebe shall bring them to your room."
  • "And you and Clara must come and give me your assistance."
  • "Certainly we will, if you require it; but I did not know that your
  • wardrobe was so extensive."
  • "You know that it is any thing but extensive, Patience; but that is the
  • reason why your assistance is more required. A small wardrobe ought at
  • least to be in good order; and what I would require is, that you would
  • look over the linen, and where it requires a little repair, you will
  • bestow upon it your charity."
  • "That we will do, Clara;" replied Patience; "so get your needles and
  • thread, and let us send him to London with whole linen. We will come
  • when we are ready, sir."
  • "I don't like his going to London at all," said Clara, "we shall be so
  • lonely when he is gone."
  • Edward had left the room, and having obtained the saddlebags from
  • Phoebe had gone up to his chamber. The first thing that he laid hold of
  • was his father's sword; he took it down, and having wiped it carefully,
  • he kissed it, saying, "God grant that I may do credit to it, and prove
  • as worthy to wield it as was my brave father!" He had uttered these
  • words aloud; and again taking the sword, and laying it down on the bed,
  • turned round, and perceived that Patience had, unknown to him, entered
  • the room, and was standing close to him. Edward was not conscious that
  • he had spoken aloud, and therefore merely said, "I was not aware of
  • your presence, Patience. Your foot is so light."
  • "Whose sword is that, Edward?"
  • "It is mine; I bought it at Lymington."
  • "But what makes you have such an affection for that sword?"
  • "Affection for it?"
  • "Yes; as I came into the room you kissed it as fervently as--"
  • "As a lover would his mistress, I presume you would say," replied
  • Edward.
  • "Nay, I meant not to use such vain words. I was about to say, as a
  • devout Catholic would a relic. I ask you again, Why so? A sword is but
  • a sword. You are about to leave this on a mission of my father's. You
  • are not a soldier, about to engage in strife and war; if you were, why
  • kiss your sword?"
  • "I will tell you. I do love this sword. I purchased it, as I told you,
  • at Lymington, and they told me that it belonged to Colonel Beverley. It
  • is for his sake that I love it. You know what obligations our family
  • were under to him."
  • "This sword was then wielded by Colonel Beverley, the celebrated
  • Cavalier, was it?" said Patience, taking it off the bed, and examining
  • it.
  • "Yes, it was; and here, you see, are his initials upon the hilt."
  • "And why do you take it to London with you? Surely it is not the weapon
  • which should be worn by a secretary, Edward; it is too large and
  • cumbrous, and out of character."
  • "Recollect, that till these last few months I have been a forester,
  • Patience, and not a secretary. Indeed, I feel that I am more fit for
  • active life than the situation which your father's kindness has
  • bestowed upon me. I was brought up, as you have heard, to follow to the
  • wars, had my patron lived."
  • Patience made no reply. Clara now joined them, and they commenced the
  • task of examining the linen; and Edward left the room, as he wished to
  • speak with Oswald. They did not meet again till dinner time. Edward's
  • sudden departure had spread a gloom over them all--even the intendant
  • was silent and thoughtful. In the evening he gave Edward the letters
  • which he had written, and a considerable sum of money, telling him
  • where he was to apply if he required more for his expenses. The
  • intendant cautioned him on his behavior in many points, and also
  • relative to his dress and carriage during his stay in the metropolis.
  • "If you should leave London, there will be no occasion--nay, it would
  • be dangerous to write to me. I shall take it for granted that you will
  • retain Sampson till your departure, and when he returns here I shall
  • presume that you have gone north. I will not detain you longer, Edward:
  • may Heaven bless and protect you!"
  • So saying, the intendant went away to his own room.
  • "Kind and generous man!" thought Edward; "how much did I mistake you
  • when we first met!"
  • Taking up the letters and bag of money, which still remained on the
  • table, Edward went to his room, and having placed the letters and money
  • in the saddle-bag, he commended himself to the Divine Protector, and
  • retired to rest.
  • Before daylight, the sound of Sampson's heavy traveling-boots below
  • roused up Edward, and he was soon dressed. Taking his saddle-bags on
  • his arm, he walked softly down stairs, that he might not disturb any of
  • the family; but when he was passing the sitting-room, he perceived that
  • there was a light in it, and, on looking in, that Patience was up and
  • dressed. Edward looked surprised, and was about to speak, when Patience
  • said--
  • "I rose early, Edward, because, when I took leave of you last night, I
  • forgot a little parcel that I wanted to give you before you went. It
  • will not take much room, and may beguile a weary hour. It is a little
  • book of meditations. Will you accept it, and promise me to read it when
  • you have time?"
  • "I certainly will, my dear Patience--if I may venture on the
  • expression--read it, and think of you."
  • "Nay, you must read it, and think of what it contains," replied
  • Patience.
  • "I will, then. I shall not need the book to remind me of Patience
  • Heatherstone, I assure you."
  • "And now, Edward, I do not pretend to surmise the reason of your
  • departure, nor would it be becoming in me to attempt to discover what
  • my father thinks proper to be silent upon; but I must beg you to
  • promise one thing."
  • "Name it, dear Patience," replied Edward; "my heart is so full at the
  • thought of leaving you, that I feel I can refuse you nothing."
  • "It is this: I have a presentiment, I know not why, that you are about
  • to encounter danger. If so, be prudent--be prudent for the sake of your
  • dear sisters--be prudent for the sake of all your friends, who would
  • regret you--promise me that."
  • "I do promise you, most faithfully, Patience, that I will ever have my
  • sisters and you in my thoughts, and will not be rash under any
  • circumstances."
  • "Thank you, Edward; may God bless you and preserve you!"
  • Edward first kissed Patience's hand, that was held in his own; but,
  • perceiving the tears starting in her eyes, he kissed them off, without
  • any remonstrance on her part, and then left the room. In a few moments
  • more he was mounted on a fine, powerful black horse, and, followed by
  • Sampson, on his road to London.
  • We will pass over the journey, which was accomplished without any event
  • worthy of remark. Edward had, from the commencement, called Sampson to
  • his side, that he might answer the questions he had to make upon all
  • that he saw, and which, the reader must be aware, was quite new to one
  • whose peregrinations had been confined to the New Forest and the town
  • adjacent. Sampson was a very powerful man, of a cool and silent
  • character, by no means deficient in intelligence, and trustworthy
  • withal. He had long been a follower of the intendant, and had served in
  • the army. He was very devout, and generally, when not addressed, was
  • singing hymns in a low voice.
  • On the evening of the second day, they were close to the metropolis,
  • and Sampson pointed out to Edward St. Paul's Cathedral and Westminster
  • Abbey, and other objects worthy of note.
  • "And where are we to lodge, Sampson?" inquired Edward.
  • "The best hotel that I know of for man and beast is the 'Swan with
  • Three Necks,' in Holborn. It is not over-frequented by roisterers, and
  • you will there be quiet, and, if your affairs demand it, unobserved."
  • "That will suit me, Sampson: I wish to observe and not be observed,
  • during my stay in London."
  • Before dark they had arrived at the hotel, and the horses were in the
  • stable. Edward had procured an apartment to his satisfaction, and,
  • feeling fatigued with his two days' traveling, had gone to bed.
  • The following morning he examined the letters which had been given to
  • him by the intendant, and inquired of Sampson if he could direct him on
  • his way. Sampson knew London well; and Edward set out to Spring
  • Gardens, to deliver a letter, which the intendant informed him was
  • confidential, to a person of the name of Langton. Edward knocked and
  • was ushered in, Sampson taking a seat in the hall, while Edward was
  • shown into a handsomely-furnished library, where he found himself in
  • the presence of a tall, spare man, dressed after the fashion of the
  • Roundheads of the time. He presented the letter. Mr. Langton bowed, and
  • requested Edward to sit down; and, after Edward had taken a chair, he
  • then seated himself and opened the letter.
  • "You are right welcome, Master Armitage," said Mr. Langton; "I find
  • that, young as you appear to be, you are in the whole confidence of our
  • mutual friend, Master Heatherstone. He hints at your being probably
  • obliged to take a journey to the north, and that you will be glad to
  • take charge of any letters which I may have to send in that direction.
  • I will have them ready for you; and, in case of need, they will be such
  • as will give a coloring to your proceeding, provided you may not choose
  • to reveal your true object. How wears our good friend Heatherstone and
  • his daughter?"
  • "Quite well, sir."
  • "And he told me in one of his former letters that he had the daughter
  • of our poor friend Ratcliffe with him. Is it not so?"
  • "It is, Master Langton; and a gentle, pretty child as you would wish to
  • see."
  • "When did you arrive in London?"
  • "Yesterday evening, sir."
  • "And do you purpose any stay?"
  • "That I can not answer, sir; I must be guided by your advice. I have
  • naught to do here, unless it be to deliver some three or four letters,
  • given me by Mr. Heatherstone."
  • "It is my opinion, Master Armitage, that the less you are seen in this
  • city the better; there are hundreds employed to find out new-comers,
  • and to discover, from their people, or by other means, for what purpose
  • they may have come; for you must be aware, Master Armitage, that the
  • times are dangerous, and people's minds are various. In attempting to
  • free ourselves from what we considered despotism, we have created for
  • ourselves a worse despotism, and one that is less endurable. It is to
  • be hoped that what has passed will make not only kings but subjects
  • wiser than they have been. Now, what do you propose--to leave this
  • instantly?"
  • "Certainly, if you think it advisable."
  • "My advice, then, is to leave London immediately. I will give you
  • letters to some friends of mine in Lancashire and Yorkshire; in either
  • county you can remain unnoticed, and make what preparations you think
  • necessary. But do nothing in haste--consult well, and be guided by
  • them, who will, if it is considered advisable and prudent, join with
  • you in your project. I need say no more. Call upon me to-morrow
  • morning, an hour before noon, and I will have letters ready for you."
  • Edward rose to depart, and thanked Mr. Langton for his kindness.
  • "Farewell, Master Armitage," said Langton; "to-morrow, at the eleventh
  • hour!"
  • Edward then quitted the house, and delivered the other letters of
  • credence; the only one of importance at the moment was the one of
  • credit; the others were to various members of the Parliament, desiring
  • them to know Master Armitage as a confidential friend of the intendant,
  • and, in case of need, to exert their good offices in his behalf. The
  • letter of credit was upon a Hamburgh merchant, who asked Edward if he
  • required money. Edward replied that he did not at present, but that he
  • had business to do for his employer in the north, and might require
  • some when there, if it was possible to obtain it so far from London.
  • "When do you set out, and to what town do you go?"
  • "That I can not well tell until to-morrow."
  • "Call before you leave this, and I will find some means of providing
  • for you as you wish."
  • Edward then returned to the hotel. Before he went to bed, he told
  • Sampson that he found that he had to leave London on Mr. Heatherstone's
  • affairs, and might be absent some time; he concluded by observing that
  • he did not consider it necessary to take him with him, as he could
  • dispense with his services, and Mr. Heatherstone would be glad to have
  • him back.
  • "As you wish, sir," replied Sampson. "When am I to go back?"
  • "You may leave to-morrow as soon as you please. I have no letter to
  • send. You may tell them that I am well, and will write as soon as I
  • have any thing positive to communicate."
  • Edward then made Sampson a present, and wished him a pleasant journey.
  • At the hour appointed on the following day, Edward repaired to Mr.
  • Langton, who received him very cordially.
  • "I am all ready for you, Master Armitage; there is a letter to two
  • Catholic ladies in Lancashire, who will take great care of you; and
  • here is one to a friend of mine in Yorkshire. The ladies live about
  • four miles from the town of Bolton, and my Yorkshire friend in the city
  • of York. You may trust to any of them. And now, farewell; and, if
  • possible, leave London before nightfall--the sooner the better. Where
  • is your servant?"
  • "He has returned to Master Heatherstone this morning."
  • "You have done right. Lose no time to leave London; and don't be in a
  • hurry in your future plans. You understand me. If any one accosts you
  • on the road, put no trust in any professions. You, of course, are going
  • down to your relations in the north. Have you pistols?"
  • "Yes, sir; I have a pair which did belong to the unfortunate Mr.
  • Ratcliffe."
  • "Then they are good ones, I'll answer for it; no man was more
  • particular about his weapons, or knew how to use them better. Farewell,
  • Master Armitage, and may success attend you!"
  • Mr. Langton held out his hand to Edward, who respectfully took his
  • leave.
  • CHAPTER XXII.
  • Edward was certain that Mr. Langton would not have advised him to leave
  • London if he had not considered that it was dangerous to remain. He
  • therefore first called upon the Hamburgh merchant, who, upon his
  • explanation, gave him a letter of credit to a friend who resided in the
  • city of York; and then returned to the hotel, packed up his
  • saddle-bags, paid his reckoning, and, mounting his horse, set off on
  • the northern road. As it was late in the afternoon before he was clear
  • of the metropolis, he did not proceed farther than Barnet, where he
  • pulled up at the inn. As soon as he had seen his horse attended to,
  • Edward, with his saddle-bags on his arm, went into the room in the inn
  • where all the travelers congregated. Having procured a bed, and given
  • his saddle-bags into the charge of the hostess, he sat down by the
  • fire, which, although it was warm weather, was nevertheless kept alight.
  • Edward had made no alteration in the dress which he had worn since he
  • had been received in the house of Mr. Heatherstone. It was plain,
  • although of good materials. He wore a high-crowned hat, and,
  • altogether, would, from his attire, have been taken for one of the
  • Roundhead party. His sword and shoulder-belt were indeed of more gay
  • appearance than those usually worn by the Roundheads; but this was the
  • only difference.
  • When Edward first entered the room, there were three persons in it,
  • whose appearance was not very prepossessing. They were dressed in what
  • had once been gay attire, but which now exhibited tarnished lace,
  • stains of wine, arid dust from traveling. They eyed him as he entered
  • with his saddle-bags, and one of them said--
  • "That's a fine horse you were riding, sir. Has he much speed?"
  • "He has," replied Edward, as he turned away and went into the bar to
  • speak with the hostess, and give his property into her care.
  • "Going north, sir?" inquired the same person when Edward returned.
  • "Not exactly," replied Edward, walking to the window to avoid further
  • conversation.
  • "The Roundhead is on the stilts," observed another of the party.
  • "Yes," replied the first; "it is easy to see that he has not been
  • accustomed to be addressed by gentlemen; for half a pin I would slit
  • his ears!"
  • Edward did not choose to reply; he folded his arms and looked at the
  • man with contempt.
  • The hostess, who had overheard the conversation, now called for her
  • husband, and desired him to go into the room and prevent any further
  • insults to the young gentleman who had just come in. The host, who knew
  • the parties, entered the room, and said--
  • "Now you'll clear out of this as fast as you can; be off with you, and
  • go to the stables, or I'll send for somebody whom you will not like."
  • The three men rose and swaggered, but obeyed the host's orders, and
  • left the room.
  • "I am sorry, young master, that these roisterers should have affronted
  • you, as my wife tells me that they have. I did not know that they were
  • in the house. We can not well refuse to take in their horses; but we
  • know well who they are, and, if you are traveling far, you had better
  • ride in company."
  • "Thank you for your caution, my good host," replied Edward; "I thought
  • that they were highwaymen, or something of that sort."
  • "You have made a good guess, sir; but nothing has yet been proved
  • against them, or they would not be here. In these times we have strange
  • customers, and hardly know who we take in. You have a good sword there,
  • sir, I have no doubt; but I trust that you have other arms."
  • "I have," replied Ed ward, opening his doublet, and showing his pistols.
  • "That's right, sir. Will you take any thing before you go to bed?"
  • "Indeed I will, for I am hungry; any thing will do, with a pint of
  • wine."
  • As soon as he had supped, Edward asked the hostess for his saddle-bags,
  • and went up to his bed.
  • Early the next morning he rose and went to the stable to see his horse
  • fed. The three men were in the stables, but they did not say any thing
  • to him. Edward returned to the inn, called for breakfast, and as soon
  • as he had finished, took out his pistols to renew the priming. While so
  • occupied, he happened to look up, and perceived one of the men with his
  • face against the window, watching him. "Well, now you see what you have
  • to expect, if you try your trade with me," thought Edward. "I am very
  • glad that you have been spying." Having replaced his pistols, Edward
  • paid his reckoning, and went to the stable, desiring the hostler to
  • saddle his horse and fix on his saddle-bags. As soon as this was done,
  • he mounted and rode off. Before he was well clear of the town, the
  • highwaymen cantered past him on three well-bred active horses. "I
  • presume we shall meet again," thought Edward, who for some time
  • cantered at a gentle pace, and then, as his horse was very fresh, he
  • put him to a faster pace, intending to do a long day's work. He had
  • ridden about fifteen miles, when he came to a heath, and, as he
  • continued at a fast trot, he perceived the three highwaymen about a
  • quarter of a mile in advance of him; they were descending a hill which
  • was between them, and he soon lost sight of them again. Edward now
  • pulled up his horse to let him recover his wind, and walked him gently
  • up the hill. He had nearly gained the summit when he heard the report
  • of firearms, and soon afterward a man on horseback, in full speed,
  • galloped over the hill toward him. He had a pistol in his hand, and his
  • head turned back. The reason for this was soon evident, as immediately
  • after him appeared the three highwaymen in pursuit. One fired his
  • pistol at the man who fled, and missed him. The man then fired in
  • return, and with true aim, as one of the highwaymen fell. All this was
  • so sudden, that Edward had hardly time to draw his pistol and put spurs
  • to his horse, before the parties were upon him, and were passing him.
  • Edward leveled at the second highwayman as he passed him, and the man
  • fell. The third highwayman, perceiving this, turned his horse to the
  • side of the road, cleared a ditch, and galloped away across the heath.
  • The man who had been attacked had pulled up his horse when Edward came
  • to his assistance, and now rode up to him, saying,
  • "I have to thank you, sir, for your timely aid; for these rascals were
  • too many for me."
  • "You are not hurt, I trust, sir?" replied Edward. "No, not the least;
  • the fellow singed my curls though, as you may perceive. They attacked
  • me about half a mile from here. I was proceeding north when I heard the
  • clatter of hoofs behind me; I looked round and saw at once what they
  • were, and I sprung my horse out of the road to a thicket close to it,
  • that they might not surround me. One of the three rode forward to stop
  • my passage, and the other two rode round to the back of the thicket to
  • get behind me. I then saw that I had separated them, and could gain a
  • start upon them by riding back again, which I did, as fast as I could,
  • and they immediately gave chase. The result you saw. Between us we have
  • broken up the gang; for both these fellows seem dead, or nearly so."
  • "What shall we do with them?"
  • "Leave them where they are," replied the stranger. "I am in a hurry to
  • get on. I have important business at the city of York, and can not
  • waste my time in depositions, and such nonsense. It is only two
  • scoundrels less in the world, and there's an end of the matter."
  • As Edward was equally anxious to proceed, he agreed with the stranger,
  • that it was best to do as he proposed.
  • "I am also going north," replied Edward, "and am anxious to get there
  • as soon as I can."
  • "With your permission we will ride together," said the stranger. "I
  • shall be the gainer, as I shall feel that I have one with me who is to
  • be trusted to in case of any further attacks during our journey."
  • There was such a gentlemanlike, frank, and courteous air about the
  • stranger, that Edward immediately assented to his proposal, of their
  • riding in company for mutual protection. He was a powerful, well-made
  • man, of apparently about one or two-and-twenty, remarkably handsome in
  • person, dressed richly, but not gaudily, in the Cavalier fashion, and
  • wore a hat with a feather. As they proceeded, they entered into
  • conversation on indifferent matters for some time, neither party
  • attempting by any question to discover who his companion might be.
  • Edward had more than once, when the conversation flagged for a minute,
  • considered what reply he should give in case his companion should ask
  • him the cause of his journey, and at last had made up his mind what to
  • say.
  • A little before noon they pulled up to bait their horses at a small
  • village; the stranger observing that he avoided St. Alban's, and all
  • other large towns, as he did not wish to satisfy the curiosity of
  • people, or to have his motions watched; and therefore, if Edward had no
  • objection, he knew the country so well, that he could save time by
  • allowing him to direct their path. Edward was, as may be supposed, very
  • agreeable to this, and, during their whole journey, they never entered
  • a town, except they rode through it after dark; and put up at humble
  • inns on the roadside, where, if not quite so well attended to, at all
  • events they were free from observation.
  • It was, however, impossible that this reserve could continue long, as
  • they became more and more intimate every day. At last the stranger said,
  • "Master Armitage, we have traveled together for some time,
  • interchanging thoughts and feelings, but with due reserve as respects
  • ourselves and our own plans. Is this to continue? If so, of course you
  • have but to say so; but if you feel inclined to trust me, I have the
  • same feeling toward you. By your dress I should imagine that you
  • belonged to a party to which I am opposed; but your language and
  • manners do not agree with your attire; and I think a hat and feathers
  • would grace that head better than the steeple-crowned affair which now
  • covers it. It may be that the dress is only assumed as a disguise: you
  • know best. However, as I say, I feel confidence in you, to whatever
  • party you may belong, and I give you credit for your prudence and
  • reserve in these troubled times. I am a little older than you, and may
  • advise you; and I am indebted to you, and can not therefore betray
  • you--at least I trust you believe so."
  • "I do believe it," replied Edward; "and I will so far answer you,
  • Master Chaloner, that this attire of mine is not the one which I would
  • wear, if I had my choice."
  • "I believe that," replied Chaloner; "and I can not help thinking you
  • are bound north on the same business as myself, which is, I confess to
  • you honestly, to strike a blow for the king. If you are on the same
  • errand, I have two old relations in Lancashire, who are stanch to the
  • cause; and I am going to their house to remain until I can join the
  • army. If you wish it, you shall come with me, and I will promise you
  • kind treatment and safety while under their roof."
  • "And the names of these relatives of yours, Master Chaloner?" said
  • Edward.
  • "Nay, you shall have them; for when I trust, I trust wholly. Their name
  • is Conynghame."
  • Edward took his letters from out of his side-pocket, and handed one of
  • them to his fellow-traveler. The address was, "To the worthy Mistress
  • Conynghame, of Portlake, near Bolton, county of Lancashire."
  • "It is to that address that I am going myself," said Edward, smiling.
  • "Whether it is the party you refer to, you best know."
  • Chaloner burst out with a loud laugh.
  • "This is excellent! Two people meet, both bound on the same business,
  • both going to the same rendezvous, and for three days do not venture to
  • trust each other."
  • "The times require caution," replied Edward, as he replaced his letter.
  • "You are right," answered Chaloner, "and you are of my opinion. I know
  • now that you have both prudence and courage. The first quality has been
  • scarcer with us Cavaliers than the last; however, now, all reserve is
  • over, at least on my part."
  • "And on mine also," replied Edward. Chaloner then talked about the
  • chances of the war. He stated that King Charles's army was in a good
  • state of discipline, and well found in everything; that there were
  • hundreds in England who would join it, as soon as it had advanced far
  • enough into England; and that every thing wore a promising appearance.
  • "My father fell at the battle of Naseby, at the head of his retainers,"
  • said Chaloner, after a pause; "and they have contrived to fine the
  • property, so that it has dwindled from thousands down to hundreds.
  • Indeed, were it not for my good old aunts, who will leave me their
  • estates, and who now supply me liberally, I should be but a poor
  • gentleman."
  • "Your father fell at Naseby?" said Edward. "Were you there?"
  • "I was," replied Chaloner.
  • "My father also fell at Naseby," said Edward.
  • "Your father did?" replied Chaloner; "I do not recollect the
  • name--Armitage--he was not in command there, was he?" continued
  • Chaloner.
  • "Yes, he was," replied Edward.
  • "There was none of that name among the officers that I can recollect,
  • young sir," replied Chaloner, with an air of distrust. "Surely you have
  • been misinformed."
  • "I have spoken the truth," replied Edward; "and have now said so much
  • that I must, to remove your suspicion say more than perhaps I should
  • have done. My name is not Armitage, although I have been so called for
  • some time. You have set me the example of confidence, and I will follow
  • it. My father was Colonel Beverley, of Prince Rupert's troop."
  • Chaloner started with astonishment.
  • "I'm sure that what you say is true," at last said he; "for I was
  • thinking who it was that you reminded me of. You are the very picture
  • of your father. Although a boy at the time, I knew him well, Master
  • Beverley; a more gallant Cavalier never drew sword. Come, we must be
  • sworn friends in life and death, Beverley," continued Chaloner,
  • extending his hand, which was eagerly grasped by Edward, who then
  • confided to Chaloner the history of his life. When he had concluded,
  • Chaloner said,
  • "We all heard of the firing of Arnwood, and it is at this moment
  • believed that all the children perished. It is one of the tales of woe
  • that our nurses repeat to the children, and many a child has wept at
  • your supposed deaths. But tell me, now, had you not fallen in with me,
  • was it your intention to have joined the army under your assumed name
  • of Armitage?"
  • "I hardly know what I intended to do. I wanted a friend to advise me."
  • "And you have found one, Beverley. I owe my life to you, and I will
  • repay the debt as far as is in my power. You must not conceal your name
  • to your sovereign; the very name of Beverley is a passport, but the son
  • of Colonel Beverley will be indeed welcomed. Why, the very name will be
  • considered as a harbinger of good fortune. Your father was the best and
  • truest soldier that ever drew sword; and his memory stands unrivaled
  • for loyalty and devotion. We are near to the end of our journey; yonder
  • is the steeple of Bolton church. The old ladies will be out of their
  • wits when they find that they have a Beverley under their roof."
  • Edward was much delighted at this tribute paid to his father's memory;
  • and the tears more than once started into his eyes as Chaloner renewed
  • his praise.
  • Late in the evening they arrived at Portlake, a grand old mansion
  • situated in a park crowded with fine old timber. Chaloner was
  • recognized, as they rode up the avenue, by one of the keepers, who
  • hastened forward to announce his arrival; and the domestics had opened
  • the door for them before they arrived at it. In the hall they were met
  • by the old ladies, who expressed their delight at seeing their nephew,
  • as they had had great fear that something had happened to him.
  • "And something did very nearly happen to me," replied Chaloner, "had it
  • not been for the timely assistance of my friend here, who,
  • notwithstanding his Puritan attire, I hardly need tell you, is a
  • Cavalier devoted to the good cause, when I state that he is the son of
  • Colonel Beverley, who fell at Naseby with my good father."
  • "No one can be more welcome, then," replied the old ladies, who
  • extended their hands to Edward. They then went into a sitting-room, and
  • supper was ordered to be sent up immediately.
  • "Our horses will be well attended to, Edward," said Chaloner; "we need
  • not any longer look after them ourselves. And now, good aunts, have you
  • no letters for me?"
  • "Yes, there are several; but you had better eat first."
  • "Not so; let me have the letters; we can read them before supper, and
  • talk them over when at table."
  • One of the ladies produced the letters, which Chaloner, as he read
  • them, handed over to Edward for his perusal. They were from General
  • Middleton, and some other friends of Chaloner's who were with the army,
  • giving him information as to what was going on, and what their
  • prospects were supposed to be.
  • "You see that they have marched already," said Chaloner, "and I think
  • the plan is a good one, and it has put General Cromwell in an awkward
  • position. Our army is now between his and London, with three days'
  • march in advance. And we shall now be able to pick up our English
  • adherents, who can join us without risk, as we go along. It has been a
  • bold step, but a good one; and if they only continue as well as they
  • have begun, we shall succeed. The Parliamentary army is not equal to
  • ours in numbers, as it is; and we shall add to ours dayly. The king has
  • sent to the Isle of Man for the Earl of Derby, who is expected to join
  • to-morrow."
  • "And where is the army at this moment?" inquired Edward.
  • "They will be but a few miles from us to-night, their march is so
  • rapid; to-morrow we will join, if it pleases."
  • "Most willingly," replied Edward.
  • After an hour's more conversation, they were shown into their rooms,
  • and retired for the night.
  • CHAPTER XXIII.
  • The next morning, before they had quitted their beds, a messenger
  • arrived with letters from General Middleton, and from him they found
  • that the king's army had encamped on the evening before not six miles
  • from Portlake. As they hastily dressed themselves, Chaloner proposed to
  • Edward that a little alteration in his dress would be necessary; and
  • taking him to a wardrobe in which had been put aside some suits of his
  • own, worn when he was a younger and slighter-made man than he now was,
  • he requested Edward to make use of them. Edward, who was aware that
  • Chaloner was right in his proposal, selected two suits of colors which
  • pleased him most; and dressing in one, and changing his hat for one
  • more befitting his new attire, was transformed into a handsome
  • Cavalier. As soon as they had broken their fast they took leave of the
  • old ladies, and mounting their horses set off for the camp. An hour's
  • ride brought them to the outposts; and communicating with the officer
  • on duty, they were conducted by an orderly to the tent of General
  • Middleton, who received Chaloner with great warmth as an old friend,
  • and was very courteous to Edward as soon as he heard that he was the
  • son of Colonel Beverley.
  • "I have wanted you, Chaloner," said Middleton; "we are raising a troop
  • of horse; the Duke of Buckingham commands it, but Massey will be the
  • real leader of it; you have influence in this county, and will, I have
  • no doubt, bring us many good hands."
  • "Where is the Earl of Derby?"
  • "Joined us this morning; we have marched so quick that we have not had
  • time to pick our adherents up."
  • "And General Leslie?"
  • "Is by no means in good spirits: why, I know not. We have too many
  • ministers with the army, that is certain, and they do harm; but we can
  • not help ourselves. His majesty must be visible by this time; if you
  • are ready, I will introduce you; and, when that is done, we will talk
  • matters over."
  • General Middleton then walked with them to the house in which the king
  • had taken up his quarters for the night; and after a few minutes'
  • waiting in the anteroom, they were admitted into his presence.
  • "Allow me, your majesty," said General Middleton, after the first
  • salutations, "to present to you Major Chaloner, whose father's name is
  • not unknown to you."
  • "On the contrary, well known to us," replied the king, "as a loyal and
  • faithful subject whose loss we must deplore. I have no doubt that his
  • son inherits his courage and his fidelity."
  • The king held out his hand, and Chaloner bent his knee and kissed it.
  • "And now, your majesty will be surprised that I should present to you
  • one of a house supposed to be extinct--the eldest son of Colonel
  • Beverley."
  • "Indeed!" replied his majesty; "I heard that all his family perished at
  • the ruthless burning of Arnwood. I hold myself fortunate, as a king,
  • that even one son of so loyal and brave a gentleman as Colonel Beverley
  • has escaped. You are welcome, young sir--most welcome to us; you must
  • be near us; the very name of Beverley will be pleasing to our ears by
  • night or day."
  • Edward knelt down and kissed his majesty's hand, and the king said--
  • "What can we do for a Beverley? let us know, that we may show our
  • feelings toward his father's memory."
  • "All I request is, that your majesty will allow me to be near you in
  • the hour of danger," replied Edward.
  • "A right Beverley reply," said the king; "and so we shall see to it,
  • Middleton."
  • After a few more courteous words from his majesty, they withdrew, but
  • General Middleton was recalled by the king for a minute or two to
  • receive his commands. When he rejoined Edward and Chaloner, he said to
  • Edward--
  • "I have orders to send in for his majesty's signature your commission
  • as captain of horse, and attached to the king's personal staff; it is a
  • high compliment to the memory of your father, sir, and, I may add, your
  • own personal appearance. Chaloner will see to your uniforms and
  • accouterments; you are well mounted, I believe; you have no time to
  • lose, as we march to-morrow for Warrington, in Cheshire."
  • "Has any thing been heard of the Parliamentary army?"
  • "Yes; they are on the march toward London by the Yorkshire road,
  • intending to cut us off if they can. And now, gentlemen, farewell; for
  • I have no idle time, I assure you."
  • Edward was soon equipped, and now attended upon the king. When they
  • arrived at Warrington, they found a body of horse drawn up to oppose
  • their passage onward. These were charged, and fled with a trifling
  • loss; and as they were known to be commanded by Lambert, one of
  • Cromwell's best generals, there was great exultation in the king's
  • army; but the fact was, that Lambert had acted upon Cromwell's orders,
  • which were to harass and delay the march of the king as much as
  • possible, but not to risk with his small force any thing like an
  • engagement. After this skirmish it was considered advisable to send
  • back the Earl of Derby and many other officers of importance into
  • Lancashire, that they might collect the king's adherents in that
  • quarter and in Cheshire. Accordingly the earl, with about two hundred
  • officers and gentlemen, left the army with that intention. It was then
  • considered that it would be advisable to march the army direct to
  • London; but the men were so fatigued with the rapidity of the march up
  • to the present time, and the weather was so warm, that it was decided
  • in the negative; and as Worcester was a town well affected to the king,
  • and the country abounded with provisions, it was resolved that the army
  • should march there, and wait for English re-enforcements. This was
  • done; the city opened the gates with every mark of satisfaction, and
  • supplied the army with all that it required. The first bad news which
  • reached them was the dispersion and defeat of the whole of the Earl of
  • Derby's party, by a regiment of militia which had surprised them at
  • Wigan during the night, when they were all asleep, and had no idea that
  • any enemy was near to them. Although attacked at such disadvantage,
  • they defended themselves till a large portion of them was killed, and
  • the remainder were taken prisoners, and most of them brutally put to
  • death. The Earl of Derby was made a prisoner, but not put to death with
  • the others.
  • "This is bad news, Chaloner," said Edward.
  • "Yes; it is more than bad," replied the latter; "we have lost our best
  • officers, who never should have left the army; and now the consequences
  • of the defeat will be, that we shall not have any people come forward
  • to join us. The winning side is the right side in this world; and there
  • is more evil than that; the Duke of Buckingham has claimed the command
  • of the army, which the king has refused, so that we are beginning to
  • fight among ourselves. General Leslie is evidently dispirited, and
  • thinks bad of the cause. Middleton is the only man who does his duty.
  • Depend upon it, we shall have Cromwell upon us before we are aware of
  • it; and we are in a state of sad confusion: officers quarreling, men
  • disobedient, much talking, and little doing. Here we have been five
  • days, and the works which have been proposed to be thrown up as
  • defenses, not yet begun."
  • "I can not but admire the patience of the king, with so much to harass
  • and annoy him."
  • "He must be patient, perforce," replied Chaloner; "he plays for a
  • crown, and it is a high stake; but he can not command the minds of men,
  • although he may the persons. I am no croaker, Beverley, but if we
  • succeed with this army, as at present disorganized, we shall perform a
  • miracle."
  • "We must hope for the best," replied Edward; "common danger may cement
  • those who would otherwise be asunder; and when they have the army of
  • Cromwell before them, they may be induced to forget their private
  • quarrels and jealousies, and unite in the good cause."
  • "I wish I could be of your opinion, Beverley," replied Chaloner; "but I
  • have mixed with the world longer than you have, and I think otherwise."
  • Several more days passed, during which no defenses were thrown up, and
  • the confusion and quarreling in the army continued to increase, until
  • at last news arrived that Cromwell was within half a day's march of
  • them, and that he had collected all the militia on his route, and was
  • now in numbers nearly double to those in the king's army. All was
  • amazement and confusion--nothing had been done--no arrangements had
  • been made--Chaloner told Edward that all was lost if immediate steps
  • were not taken.
  • On the 3d of October, the army of Cromwell appeared in sight. Edward
  • had been on horseback, attending the king, for the best part of the
  • night; the disposition of the troops had been made as well as it could;
  • and it was concluded, as Cromwell's army remained quiet, that no
  • attempt would be made on that day. About noon the king returned to his
  • lodging, to take some refreshment after his fatigue. Edward was with
  • him; but before an hour had passed, the alarm came that the armies were
  • engaged. The king mounted his horse, which was ready saddled at the
  • door; but before he could ride out of the city, he was met and nearly
  • beaten back by the whole body almost of his own cavalry, who came
  • running on with such force that he could not stop them. His majesty
  • called to several of the officers by name, but they paid no attention;
  • and so great was the panic, that both the king and his staff, who
  • attended him, were nearly overthrown, and trampled under foot.
  • Cromwell had passed a large portion of his troops over the river
  • without the knowledge of the opponents, and when the attack was made in
  • so unexpected a quarter, a panic ensued. Where General Middleton and
  • the Duke Hamilton commanded, a very brave resistance was made; but
  • Middleton being wounded, Duke Hamilton having his leg taken off by a
  • round-shot, and many gentlemen having fallen, the troops, deserted by
  • the remainder of the army, at last gave way, and the rout was general,
  • the foot throwing away their muskets before they were discharged.
  • His majesty rode back into the town, and found a body of horse, who had
  • been persuaded by Chaloner to make a stand. "Follow me," said his
  • majesty; "we will see what the enemy are about. I do not think they
  • pursue, and if so, we may yet rally from this foolish panic."
  • His majesty, followed by Edward, Chaloner, and several of his personal
  • staff, then galloped out to reconnoiter; but to his mortification he
  • found that the troops had not followed him, but gone out of the town by
  • the other gate, and that the enemy's cavalry in pursuit were actually
  • in the town. Under such circumstances, by the advice of Chaloner and
  • Edward, his majesty withdrew, and, turning his horse's head, he made
  • all haste to leave Worcester. After several hours' riding, the king
  • found himself in company of about 4000 of the cavalry who had so
  • disgracefully fled; but they were still so panic-struck that he could
  • put no confidence in them, and having advised with those about him, he
  • resolved to quit them. This he did without mentioning his intention to
  • any of his staff, not even Chaloner or Edward--leaving at night with
  • two of his servants, whom he dismissed as soon as it was daylight,
  • considering that his chance of escape would be greater if he were quite
  • alone.
  • It was not till the next morning that they discovered that the king had
  • left them, and then they determined to separate, and, as the major
  • portion were from Scotland, to make what haste they could back to that
  • country. And now Chaloner and Edward consulted as to their plans.
  • "It appears to me," said Edward, laughing, "that the danger of this
  • campaign of ours will consist in getting back again to our own homes,
  • for I can most safely assert that I have not as yet struck a blow for
  • the king."
  • "That is true enough, Beverly. When do you purpose going back to the
  • New Forest? I think, if you will permit me, I will accompany you," said
  • Chaloner. "All the pursuit will be to the northward, to intercept and
  • overtake the retreat into Scotland. I can not therefore go to
  • Lancashire; and, indeed, as they know that I am out, they will be
  • looking for me every where."
  • "Then come with me," said Edward, "I will find you protection till you
  • can decide what to do. Let us ride on away from this, and we will talk
  • over the matter as we go; but depend upon it, the further south we get
  • the safer we shall be, but still not safe, unless we can change our
  • costume. There will be a strict search for the king to the south, as
  • they will presume that he will try to get safe to France. Hark! what is
  • that? I heard the report of arms. Let us ride up this hill and see what
  • is going on."
  • They did so, and perceived that there was a skirmish between a party of
  • Cavaliers and some of the Parliamentary cavalry, at about a quarter of
  • a mile distant.
  • "Come, Chaloner, let us at all events have one blow," said Edward.
  • "Agreed," replied Chaloner, spurring his horse; and down they went at
  • full speed, and in a minute were in the melee, coming on the rear of
  • the Parliamentary troops.
  • This sudden attack from behind decided the affair. The Parliamentary
  • troopers, thinking that there were more than two coming upon them, made
  • off after another minute's combat, leaving five or six of their men on
  • the ground.
  • "Thanks, Chaloner! thanks, Beverley!" said a voice which they
  • immediately recognized. It was that of Grenville, one of the king's
  • pages. "These fellows with me were just about to run, if you had not
  • come to our aid. I will remain with them no longer, but join you if you
  • will permit me. At all events, remain here till they go away--I will
  • send them off."
  • Grenville then said to the men, "My lads, you must all separate, or
  • there will be no chance of escape. No more than two should ride
  • together. Depend upon it, we shall have more of the troops here
  • directly."
  • The men, about fifteen in number, who had been in company with
  • Grenville, considered that Chaloner's advice was good, and without
  • ceremony set off, with their horses' heads to the northward, leaving
  • Chaloner, Edward, and Grenville together on the field of the affray.
  • About a dozen men were lying on the ground, either dead or severely
  • wounded: seven of them were of the king's party, and the other five of
  • the Parliamentary troops.
  • "Now, what I propose," said Edward, "is this: let us do what we can for
  • those who are wounded, and then strip off the dresses and accouterments
  • of those Parliamentary dragoons who are dead, and dress ourselves in
  • them, accouterments and all. We can then pass through the country in
  • safety, as we shall be supposed to be one of the parties looking for
  • the king."
  • "That is a good idea," replied Chaloner, "and the sooner it is done the
  • better."
  • "Well," said Edward, wiping his sword, which he still held drawn, and
  • then sheathing it, "I will take the spoils of this fellow nearest to
  • me: he fell by my hand, and I am entitled to them by the laws of war
  • and chivalry; but first, let us dismount and look to the wounded."
  • They tied their horses to a tree, and having given what assistance they
  • could to the wounded men, they proceeded to strip three of the
  • Parliamentary troopers; and then laying aside their own habiliments,
  • they dressed themselves in the uniform of the enemy, and, mounting
  • their horses, made all haste from the place. Having gained about twelve
  • miles, they pulled up their horses, and rode at a more leisurely pace.
  • It was now eight o'clock in the evening, but still not very dark; they
  • therefore rode on another five miles, till they came to a small
  • village, where they dismounted at an ale-house, and put their horses
  • into the stable.
  • "We must be insolent and brutal in our manners, or we shall be
  • suspected."
  • "Very true," said Grenville, giving the hostler a kick, and telling him
  • to bestir himself, if he did not want his ears cropped.
  • They entered the ale-house, and soon found out they were held in great
  • terror. They ordered every thing of the best to be produced, and
  • threatened to set fire to the house if it was not; they turned the man
  • and his wife out of their bed, and all three went to sleep in it; and,
  • in short, they behaved in such an arbitrary manner, that nobody doubted
  • that they were Cromwell's horse. In the morning they set off again by
  • Chaloner's advice, paying for nothing that they had ordered, although
  • they had all of them plenty of money. They now rode fast, inquiring at
  • the places which they passed through, whether any fugitives had been
  • seen, and, if they came to a town, inquiring, before they entered,
  • whether there were any Parliamentary troops. So well did they manage,
  • that after four days they had gained the skirts of the New Forest, and
  • concealed themselves in a thicket till night-time, when Edward proposed
  • that he should conduct his fellow-travelers to the cottage, where he
  • would leave them till his plans were adjusted.
  • Edward had already arranged his plans. His great object was to ward off
  • any suspicion of where he had been, and, of course, any idea that the
  • intendant had been a party to his acts; and the fortunate change of his
  • dress enabled him now to do so with success. He had decided to conduct
  • his two friends to the cottage that night, and the next morning to ride
  • over in his Parliamentary costume to the intendant's house, and bring
  • the first news of the success of Cromwell and the defeat at Worcester;
  • by which stratagem it would appear as if he had been with the
  • Parliamentary, and not with the Jacobite, army.
  • As they had traveled along, they found that the news of Cromwell's
  • success had not yet arrived: in those times there was not the rapidity
  • of communication that we now have, and Edward thought it very probable
  • that he would be the first to communicate the intelligence to the
  • intendant and those who resided near him.
  • As soon as it was dusk the three travelers left their retreat, and,
  • guided by Edward, soon arrived at the cottage. Their appearance at
  • first created no little consternation, for Humphrey and Pablo happened
  • to be in the yard, when they heard the clattering of the swords and
  • accouterments, and through the gloom observed, as they advanced, that
  • the party were troopers. At first, Humphrey was for running on and
  • barring the door; but, on a second reflection, he felt that he could
  • not do a more imprudent thing if there was danger; and he therefore
  • contented himself with hastily imparting the intelligence to his
  • sisters, and then remaining at the threshold to meet the coming of the
  • parties. The voice of Edward calling him by name dissipated all alarm,
  • and in another minute he was in the arms of his brother and sisters.
  • "First, let us take our horses to the stables, Humphrey," said Edward,
  • after the first greeting was over, "and then we will come and partake
  • of any thing that Alice can prepare for us, for we have not fared over
  • well for the last three days."
  • Accompanied by Humphrey and Pablo, they all went to the stables, and
  • turned out the ponies to make room for the horses; and as soon as they
  • were all fed and littered down, they returned to the cottage, and
  • Chaloner and Grenville were introduced. Supper was soon on the table,
  • and they were too hungry to talk while they were eating, so that but
  • little information was gleaned from them that night. However, Humphrey
  • ascertained that all was lost, and that they had escaped from the field
  • previous to Alice and Edith leaving the room to prepare beds for the
  • new-comers. When the beds were ready, Chaloner and Grenville retired,
  • and then Edward remained half an hour with Humphrey, to communicate to
  • him what had passed. Of course he could not enter into detail; but told
  • him that he would get information from their new guests after he had
  • left, which he must do early in the morning.
  • "And now, Humphrey, my advice is this. My two friends can not remain in
  • this cottage, for many reasons; but we have the key of Clara's cottage,
  • and they can take up their lodging there, and we can supply them with
  • all they want, until they find means of going abroad, which is their
  • intention. I must be off to the intendant's to-morrow, and the day
  • after I will come over to you. In the mean time, our guests can remain
  • here, while you and Pablo prepare the cottage for them; and when I
  • return every thing shall be settled, and we will conduct them to it. I
  • do not think there is much danger of their being discovered while they
  • remain there, certainly not so much as if they were here; for we must
  • expect parties of troops in every direction now, as they were when the
  • king's father made his escape from Hampton Court. And now to bed, my
  • good brother; and call me early, for I much fear that I shall not wake
  • up if you do not."
  • The brothers then parted for the night.
  • The next morning, long before their guests were awake, Edward had been
  • called by Humphrey, and found Pablo at the door with his horse. Edward,
  • who had put on his Parliamentary accouterments, bade a hasty farewell
  • to them, and set off across the forest to the house of the intendant,
  • where he arrived before they had left their bedrooms. The first person
  • he encountered was, very fortunately, Oswald, who was at his cottage
  • door. Edward beckoned to him, being then about one hundred yards off;
  • but Oswald did not recognize him at first, and advanced toward him in a
  • very leisurely manner, to ascertain what the trooper might wish to
  • inquire. But Edward called him Oswald, and that was sufficient. In a
  • few words Edward told him how all was lost, and how he had escaped by
  • changing clothes with one of the enemy.
  • "I am now come to bring the news to the intendant, Oswald. You
  • understand me, of course?"
  • "Of course I do, Master Edward, and will take care that it is well
  • known that you have been fighting by the side of Cromwell all this
  • time. I should recommend you to show yourself in this dress for the
  • remainder of the day, and then every one will be satisfied. Shall I go
  • to the intendant's before you?"
  • "No, no, Oswald; the intendant does not require me to be introduced to
  • him, of course. I must now gallop up to his house and announce myself.
  • Farewell for the present--I shall see you during the day."
  • Edward put spurs to his horse, and arrived at the intendant's at full
  • speed, making no small clattering in the yard below as he went in, much
  • to the surprise of Sampson, who came out to ascertain what was the
  • cause, and who was not a little surprised at perceiving Edward, who
  • threw himself off the horse, and desiring Sampson to take it to the
  • stable, entered the kitchen, and disturbed Phoebe, who was preparing
  • breakfast. Without speaking to her, Edward passed on to the intendant's
  • room, and knocked.
  • "Who is there?" said the intendant.
  • "Edward Armitage," was the reply; and the door was opened. The
  • intendant started back at the sight of Edward in the trooper's costume.
  • "My dear Edward, I am glad to see you in any dress, but this requires
  • explanation. Sit down and tell me all."
  • "All is soon told, sir," replied Edward, taking off his iron skull-cap,
  • and allowing his hair to fall down on his shoulders.
  • He then, in a few words, stated what had happened, and by what means he
  • had escaped, and the reason why he had kept on the trooper's
  • accouterments, and made his appearance in them.
  • "You have done very prudently," replied the intendant, "and you have
  • probably saved me; at all events, you have warded off all suspicion,
  • and those who are spies upon me will now have nothing to report, except
  • to my favor. Your absence has been commented upon, and made known at
  • high quarters, and suspicion has arisen in consequence. Your return as
  • one of the Parliamentary forces will now put an end to all ill-natured
  • remarks. My dear Edward, you have done me a service. As my secretary,
  • and having been known to have been a follower of the Beverleys, your
  • absence was considered strange, and it was intimated at high quarters
  • that you had gone to join the king's forces, and that with my knowledge
  • and consent. This I have from Langton; and it has in consequence
  • injured me not a little: but now your appearance will make all right
  • again. Now we will first to prayers, and then to breakfast; and after
  • that we will have a more detailed account of what has taken place since
  • your departure. Patience and Clara will not be sorry to recover their
  • companion; but how they will like you in that dress I can not pretend
  • to say. However, I thank God that you have returned safe to us; and I
  • shall be most happy to see you once more attend in the more peaceful
  • garb of a secretary."
  • "I will, with your permission, sir, not quit this costume for one day,
  • as it may be as well that I should be seen in it."
  • "You are right, Edward: for this day retain it; to-morrow you will
  • resume your usual costume. Go down to the parlor; you will find
  • Patience and Clara anxiously waiting for you, I have no doubt. I will
  • join you there in ten minutes."
  • Edward left the room, and went down stairs. It hardly need be said how
  • joyfully he was received by Patience and Clara. The former, however,
  • expressed her joy in tears--the latter, in wild mirth.
  • We will pass over the explanations and the narrative of what had
  • occurred, which was given by Edward to Mr. Heatherstone in his own
  • room. The intendant said, as he concluded.
  • "Edward, you must now perceive that, for the present, nothing more can
  • be done; if it pleases the Lord, the time will come when the monarch
  • will be reseated on his throne; at present, we must bow to the powers
  • that be; and I tell you frankly, it is my opinion that Cromwell aims at
  • sovereignty and will obtain it. Perhaps it may be better that we should
  • suffer the infliction for a time, as for a time only can it be upheld,
  • and it may be the cause of the king being more schooled and more fitted
  • to reign than, by what you have told me in the course of your
  • narrative, he at present appears to be."
  • "Perhaps so, sir," replied Edward. "I must say that the short campaign
  • I have gone through has very much opened my eyes. I have seen but
  • little true chivalric feeling, and much of interested motives, in those
  • who have joined the king's forces. The army collected was composed of
  • most discordant elements, and were so discontented, so full of jealousy
  • and ill-will, that I am not surprised at the result. One thing is
  • certain, that there must be a much better feeling existing between all
  • parties before such a man as Cromwell can ever be moved from his
  • position; and, for the present, the cause may be considered as lost."
  • "You are right, Edward," replied the intendant; "I would they were
  • better, but as they are, let us make the best of them. You have now
  • seen enough to have subdued that fiery zeal for the cause which
  • previously occupied your whole thoughts; now let us be prudent, and try
  • if we can not be happy."
  • CHAPTER XXIV.
  • It was only to Oswald that Edward made known what had occurred; he knew
  • that he was to be trusted. The next day, Edward resumed his forester's
  • dress, while another one was preparing for him, and went over to the
  • cottage, where, with the consent of the intendant, he proposed
  • remaining for a few days. Of course, Edward had not failed to acquaint
  • the intendant with his proposed plans relative to Chaloner and
  • Grenville, and received his consent; at the same time advising that
  • they should gain the other side of the Channel as soon as they possibly
  • could. Edward found them all very anxious for his arrival. Humphrey and
  • Pablo had been to the cottage, which they had found undisturbed since
  • the capture of the robbers, and made every thing ready for the
  • reception of the two Cavaliers, as, on their first journey, they took
  • with them a cart-load of what they knew would be necessary. Chaloner
  • and Grenville appeared to be quite at home already, and not very
  • willing to shift their quarters. They, of course, still retained their
  • troopers' clothes, as they had no other to wear until they could be
  • procured from Lymington; but, as we have before mentioned, they were in
  • no want of money. They had been amusing the girls and Humphrey with a
  • description of what had occurred during the campaign, and Edward found
  • that he had but little to tell them, as Chaloner had commenced his
  • narrative with an account of his first meeting with Edward when he had
  • been attacked by the highwaymen. As soon as he could get away, Edward
  • went out with Humphrey to have some conversation with him.
  • "Now, Humphrey, as you have pretty well heard all my adventures since
  • our separation, let me hear what you have been doing."
  • "I have no such tales of stirring interest to narrate as Chaloner has
  • been doing as your deputy, Edward," replied Humphrey. "All I can say
  • is, that we have had no visitors--that we have longed for your
  • return--and that we have not been idle since you quitted us."
  • "What horses were those in the stable," said Ed ward, "that you turned
  • out to make room for ours when we arrived?"
  • Humphrey laughed, and then informed Edward of the manner in which they
  • had succeeded in capturing them.
  • "Well, you really deserve credit, Humphrey, and certainly were not born
  • to be secluded in this forest."
  • "I rather think that I have found that I was born for it," replied
  • Humphrey, "although, I must confess, that since you have quitted us, I
  • have not felt so contented here as I did before. You have returned, and
  • you have no idea what an alteration I see in you since you have mixed
  • with the world, and have been a party in such stirring scenes."
  • "Perhaps so, Humphrey," replied Edward; "and yet do you know, that,
  • although I so ardently wished to mix with the world, and to follow the
  • wars, I am any thing but satisfied with what I have seen of it; and so
  • far from feeling any inclination to return to it, I rather feel more
  • inclined to remain here, and remain in quiet and in peace. I have been
  • disappointed, that is the truth. There is a great difference between
  • the world such as we fancy it when we are pining for it, and the world
  • when we actually are placed within the vortex, and perceive the secret
  • springs of men's actions. I have gained a lesson, but not a
  • satisfactory one, Humphrey; it may be told in a very few words. It is a
  • most deceitful and hollow world! and that is all said in a few words."
  • "What very agreeable, pleasant young men are Master Chaloner and
  • Grenville," observed Humphrey.
  • "Chaloner I know well," replied Edward; "he is to be trusted, and he is
  • the only one in whom I have been able to place confidence, and
  • therefore I was most fortunate in falling in with him as I did on my
  • first starting. Grenville, I know little about; we met often, it is
  • true, but it was in the presence of the king, being both of us on his
  • staff; at the same time, I must acknowledge that I know nothing against
  • him; and this I do know, which is, that he is brave."
  • Edward then narrated what had passed between the intendant and him
  • since his return; and how well satisfied the intendant had been with
  • his ruse in returning to him in the dress of a trooper.
  • "Talking about that, Edward, do you not think it likely that we shall
  • have the troopers down here in search of the king?"
  • "I wonder you have not had them already," replied Edward.
  • "And what shall we do if they arrive?"
  • "That is all prepared for," replied Edward; "although, till you
  • mentioned it, I had quite forgotten it. The intendant was talking with
  • me on the subject last night, and here is an appointment for you as
  • verderer, signed by him, which you are to use as you may find
  • necessary; and here is another missive, ordering you to receive into
  • your house two of the troopers who may be sent down here, and find them
  • quarters and victuals, but not to be compelled to receive more. Until
  • the search is over, Chaloner and Grenville must retain their
  • accouterments and remain with us. And, Humphrey, if you have not made
  • any use of the clothes which I left here--I mean the first dress I had
  • made when I was appointed secretary, and which I thought rather too
  • faded to wear any longer--I will put it on now, as should any military
  • come here as scouters to the intendant, I shall have some authority
  • over them."
  • "It is in your chest, where you left it, Edward. The girls did propose
  • to make two josephs out of it for winter wear, but they never have
  • thought of it since, or have not had time. By-the-by, you have not told
  • me what you think of Alice and Edith after your long absence."
  • "I think they are both very much grown and very much improved," replied
  • Edward; "but I must confess to you that I think it is high time that
  • they were, if possible, removed from their present homely occupations,
  • and instructed as young ladies should be."
  • "But how, Edward, is that to be?"
  • "That I can not yet tell, and it grieves me that I can not; but still I
  • see the necessity of it, if ever we are to return to our position in
  • society."
  • "And are we ever to return?"
  • "I don't know. I thought little of it before I went away and mixed in
  • society; but since I have been in the world, I have been compelled to
  • feel that my dear sisters are not in their sphere, and I have resolved
  • upon trying if I can not find a more suitable position for them. Had we
  • been successful I should have had no difficulty, but now I hardly know
  • what to do."
  • "I have not inquired about Mistress Patience, brother; how is she?"
  • "She is as good and as handsome as ever, and very much grown; indeed,
  • she is becoming quite womanly."
  • "And Clara?"
  • "Oh, I do not perceive any difference in her: I think she is grown, but
  • I hardly observed her. Here comes Chaloner; we will tell him of our
  • arrangements in case we are disturbed by the military parties."
  • "It is a most excellent arrangement," said Chaloner, when Edward had
  • made the communication; "and it was a lucky day when I first fell in
  • with you, Beverley."
  • "Not Beverley, I pray you; that name is to be forgotten; it was only
  • revived for the occasion."
  • "Very true; then, Master Secretary Armitage, I think the arrangement
  • excellent: the only point will be to find out what troops are sent down
  • in this direction, as we must of course belong to some other regiment,
  • and have been pursued from the field of battle. I should think that
  • Lambert's squadrons will not be this way."
  • "We will soon ascertain that; let your horses be saddled and
  • accoutered, so that should any of them make their appearance, the
  • horses may be at the door. It is my opinion that they will be here some
  • time to-day."
  • "I fear that it will be almost impossible for the king to escape,"
  • observed Chaloner. "I hardly know what to think of his leaving us in
  • that way."
  • "I have reflected upon it," replied Edward, "and I think it was perhaps
  • prudent: some were to be trusted and some not; it was impossible to
  • know who were and who were not--he therefore trusted nobody. Besides,
  • his chance of escape, if quite alone, is greater than if in company."
  • "And yet I feel a little mortified that he did not trust me," continued
  • Edward; "my life was at his service."
  • "He could no more read your heart, than he could mine or others,"
  • observed Chaloner; "and any selection would have been invidious: on the
  • whole, I think he acted wisely, and I trust that it will prove so. One
  • thing is certain, which is, that all is over now, and that for a long
  • while we may let our swords rest in their scabbards. Indeed, I am
  • sickened with it, after what I have seen, and would gladly live here
  • with you, and help to till the land, away from the world and all its
  • vexations. What say you, Edward; will you and your brother take me as a
  • laborer till all is quiet again?"
  • "You would soon tire of it, Chaloner; you were made for active exertion
  • and bustling in the world."
  • "Nevertheless, I think, under two such amiable and pretty mistresses, I
  • could stay well contented here; it is almost Arcadian. But still it is
  • selfish for me to talk in this way; indeed, my feelings are contrary to
  • my words."
  • "How do you mean, Chaloner?"
  • "To be candid with you, Edward, I was thinking what a pity it is that
  • two such sweet girls as your sisters should be employed here in
  • domestic drudgery, and remain in such an uncultivated state--if I may
  • be pardoned for speaking so freely--but I do so because I am convinced
  • that, if in proper hands, they would grace a court; and you must feel
  • that I am right."
  • "Do you not think that the same feelings have passed in my mind,
  • Chaloner? Indeed, Humphrey will tell you that we were speaking on the
  • same subject but an hour ago. You must, however, be aware of the
  • difficulty I am in: were I in possession of Arnwood and its domain,
  • then indeed--but that is all over now, and I presume I shall shortly
  • see my own property, whose woods are now in sight of me, made over to
  • some Roundhead, for good services against the Cavaliers at Worcester."
  • "Edward," replied Chaloner, "I have this to say to you, and I can say
  • it because you know that I am indebted to you for my life, and that is
  • a debt that nothing can cancel: if at any time you determine upon
  • removing your sisters from this, recollect my maiden aunts at Portlake.
  • They can not be in better hands, and they can not be in the hands of
  • any person who will more religiously do their duty toward them, and be
  • pleased with the trust confided to them. They are rich, in spite of
  • exactions; but in these times, women are not fined and plundered as men
  • are; and they have been well able to afford all that has been taken
  • from them, and all that they have voluntarily given to the assistance
  • of our party. They are alone, and I really believe that nothing would
  • make them more happy than to have the care of the two sisters of Edward
  • Beverley--be sure of that. But I will be more sure of it if you will
  • find means of sending to them a letter which I shall write to them. I
  • tell you that you will do them a favor, and that if you do not accept
  • the offer, you will sacrifice your sisters' welfare to your own
  • pride--which I do not think you would do."
  • "Most certainly I will not do that," replied Edward; "and I am fully
  • sensible of your kind offer; but I can say no more until I hear what
  • your good aunts may reply to your letter. You mistake me much,
  • Chaloner, if you think that any sense of obligation would prevent me
  • from seeing my sisters removed from a position so unworthy of them, but
  • which circumstances have driven them to. That we are paupers, is
  • undeniable, but I never shall forgot that my sisters are the daughters
  • of Colonel Beverley."
  • "I am delighted with your reply, Edward, and I fear not that of my good
  • aunts. It will be a great happiness to me when I am wandering abroad to
  • know that your sisters are under their roof, and are being educated as
  • they ought to be."
  • "What's the matter, Pablo?" said Humphrey to the former, who came
  • running, out of breath.
  • "Soldiers," said Pablo, "plenty of them, gallop this way--gallop every
  • way."
  • "Now, Chaloner, we must get ourselves out of this scrape, and I trust
  • that afterward all be well," said Edward. "Bring the horses out to the
  • door; and, Chaloner, you and Grenville must wait within; bring my horse
  • out also, as it will appear as if I had just ridden over. I must in to
  • change my dress. Humphrey, keep a look-out and let us know when they
  • come."
  • Chaloner and Edward went in, and Edward put on his dress of secretary.
  • Shortly afterward, a party of Roundhead cavalry were seen galloping
  • toward the cottage. They soon arrived there, and pulled up their
  • horses. An officer who headed them addressed Humphrey in a haughty
  • tone, and asked him who he was.
  • "I am one of the verderers of the forest, sir," replied Humphrey,
  • respectfully.
  • "And whose cottage is that? and who have you there?"
  • "The cottage is mine, sir; two of the horses at the door belong to two
  • troopers who have come in quest of those who fled from Worcester, the
  • other horse belongs to the secretary of the intendant of the forest,
  • Master Heatherstone, who has come over with directions from the
  • intendant as to the capture of the rebels."
  • At this moment, Edward came out and saluted the officer.
  • "This is the secretary, sir, Master Armitage," said Humphrey, falling
  • back.
  • Edward again saluted the officer, and said--
  • "Master Heatherstone, the intendant, has sent me over here to make
  • arrangements for the capture of the rebels. This man is ordered to
  • lodge two troopers as long as they are considered necessary to remain;
  • and I have directions to tell any officer whom I may meet, that Master
  • Heatherstone and his verderers will take good care that none of the
  • rebels are harbored in this direction; and that it will be better that
  • the troops scour the southern edge of the forest, as it is certain that
  • the fugitives will try all that they can to embark for France."
  • "What regiment do the troopers belong to that you have here?"
  • "I believe to Lambert's troop, sir; but they shall come out and answer
  • for themselves. Tell those men to come out," said Edward to Humphrey.
  • "Yes, sir, but they are hard to wake, for they have ridden from
  • Worcester; but I will rouse them."
  • "Nay, I can not wait," replied the officer. "I know none of Lambert's
  • troops, and they have no information to give."
  • "Could you not take them with you, sir, and leave two of your men
  • instead of them; for they are troublesome people to a poor man, and
  • devour every thing?" said Humphrey, submissively.
  • "No, no," replied the officer, laughing, "we all know Lambert's
  • people--a friend or enemy is much the same to them. I have no power
  • over them, and you must make the best of it. Forward! men," continued
  • the officer, saluting Edward as he passed on; and in a minute or two
  • they were far away.
  • "That's well over," observed Edward. "Chaloner and Grenville are too
  • young-looking and too good-looking for Lambert's villains; and a sight
  • of them might have occasioned suspicion. We must, however, expect more
  • visits. Keep a good look-out, Pablo."
  • Edward and Humphrey then went in and joined the party inside the
  • cottage, who were in a state of no little suspense during the colloquy
  • outside.
  • "Why, Alice, dearest! you look quite pale!" said Edward, as he came in.
  • "I feared for our guests, Edward. I'm sure that if they had come into
  • the cottage, Master Chaloner and Master Grenville would never have been
  • believed to be troopers."
  • "We thank you for the compliment, Mistress Alice," said Chaloner; "but
  • I think, if necessary, I could ruffle and swear with the best, or
  • rather the worst of them. We passed for troopers very well on the road
  • here."
  • "Yes, but you did not meet any other troopers."
  • "That's very true, and shows your penetration. I must acknowledge that,
  • with troopers, there would have been more difficulty; but still, among
  • so many thousands, there must be many varieties, and it would be an
  • awkward thing for an officer of one troop to arrest upon suspicion the
  • men belonging to another. I think when we are visited again I shall
  • sham intoxication--that will not be very suspicious."
  • "No, not on either side," replied Edward. "Come, Alice, we will eat
  • what dinner you may have ready for us."
  • For three or four days the Parliamentary forces continued to scour the
  • forest, and another visit or two was paid to the cottage, but without
  • suspicion being created, in consequence of the presence of Edward and
  • his explanations. The parties were invariably sent in another
  • direction. Edward wrote to the intendant, informing him what had
  • occurred, and requesting permission to remain a few days longer at the
  • cottage; and Pablo, who took the letter, returned with one from the
  • intendant, acquainting him that the king had not yet been taken; and
  • requesting the utmost vigilance on his part to insure his capture, with
  • directions to search various places, in company with the troopers who
  • had been stationed at the cottage; or, if he did not like to leave the
  • cottage, to shew the letter to any officer commanding parties in
  • search, that they might act upon the suggestions contained in it. This
  • letter Edward had an opportunity of showing to one or two officers,
  • commanding parties, who approached the cottage, and to whom Edward went
  • out to communicate with, thereby preventing their stopping there.
  • At last, in about a fortnight, there was not a party in the forest; all
  • of them having gone down to the seaside, to look out for the fugitives,
  • several of whom were taken.
  • Humphrey took the cart to Lymington, to procure clothes for Chaloner
  • and Grenville, and it was decided that they should assume those of
  • verderers of the forest, which would enable them to carry a gun. As
  • soon as Humphrey had obtained what was requisite, Chaloner and
  • Grenville were conducted to Clara's cottage, and took possession, of
  • course never showing themselves outside the wood which surrounded it.
  • Humphrey lent them Holdfast as a watch, and they took leave of Alice
  • and Edith with much regret. Humphrey and Edward accompanied them to
  • their new abode. It was arranged that the horses should remain under
  • the care of Humphrey, as they had no stable at Clara's cottage.
  • On parting, Chaloner gave Edward the letter for his aunts; and then
  • Edward once more bent his steps toward the intendant's house, and found
  • himself in the company of Patience and Clara.
  • Edward narrated to the intendant all that had occurred, and the
  • intendant approved of what he had done, strongly advising that Chaloner
  • and Grenville should not attempt to go to the Continent till all
  • pursuit was over.
  • "Here's a letter I have received from the government, Edward, highly
  • commending my vigilance and activity in pursuit of the fugitives. It
  • appears that the officers you fell in with have written up to state
  • what admirable dispositions we had made. It is a pity, is it not,
  • Edward, that we are compelled to be thus deceitful in this world?
  • Nothing but the times, and the wish to do good, could warrant it. We
  • meet the wicked, and fight them with their own weapons; but although it
  • is treating them as they deserve, our conscience must tell us that it
  • is not right."
  • "Surely, sir, to save the lives of people who have committed no other
  • fault except loyalty to their king, will warrant our so doing--at
  • least, I hope so."
  • "According to the Scriptures, I fear it will not, but it is a
  • difficult, question for us to decide. Let us be guided by our own
  • consciences; if they do not reproach us, we can not be far from right."
  • Edward then produced the letter he had received from Chaloner,
  • requesting that the intendant would have the kindness to forward it.
  • "I see," replied the intendant; "I can forward these through Langton. I
  • presume it is to obtain credit for money. It shall go on Thursday."
  • The conference was then broken up, and Edward went to see Oswald.
  • CHAPTER XXV.
  • For several days Edward remained at home, anxiously awaiting every news
  • which arrived; expecting every time that the capture of the king would
  • be announced, and, with great joy, finding that hitherto all efforts
  • had been unsuccessful. But there was a question which now arose in
  • Edward's mind, and which was the cause of deep reflection. Since the
  • proposal of sending his sisters away had been started, he felt the
  • great inconvenience of his still representing himself to the intendant
  • as the grandson of Armitage. His sisters, if sent to the ladies at
  • Portlake, must be sent without the knowledge of the intendant; and if
  • so, the discovery of their absence would soon take place, as Patience
  • Heatherstone would be constantly going over to the cottage; and he now
  • asked himself the question, whether, after all the kindness and
  • confidence which the intendant had shown him, he was right in any
  • longer concealing from him his birth and parentage. He felt that he was
  • doing the intendant an injustice, in not showing to him that confidence
  • which ho deserved.
  • That he was justified in so doing at first, he felt; but since the
  • joining the king's army, and the events which had followed, he
  • considered that he was treating the intendant ill, and he now resolved
  • to take the first opportunity of making the confession. But to do it
  • formally, and without some opportunity which might offer, he felt
  • awkward. At last he thought that he would at once make the confession
  • to Patience, under the promise of secrecy. That he might do at once;
  • and, after he had done so, the intendant could not tax him with want of
  • confidence altogether. He had now analyzed his feelings toward
  • Patience; and he felt how dear she had become to him. During the time
  • he was with the army, she had seldom been out of his thoughts; and
  • although he was often in the society of well bred women, he saw not one
  • that, in his opinion, could compare with Patience Heatherstone; but
  • still, what chance had he of supporting a wife? at present, at the age
  • of nineteen, it was preposterous. Thoughts like these ran in his mind,
  • chasing each other, and followed by others as vague and unsatisfactory;
  • and, in the end, Edward came to the conclusion, that he was without a
  • penny, and that being known as the heir of Beverley would be to his
  • disadvantage; that he was in love with Patience Heatherstone, and had
  • no chance at present of obtaining her; and that he done well up to the
  • present time in concealing who he was from the intendant, who could
  • safely attest that he knew not that he was protecting the son of so
  • noted a Cavalier; and that he would confess to Patience who he was, and
  • give as a reason for not telling her father, that he did not wish to
  • commit him by letting him know who it was that was under his
  • protection. How far the reader may be satisfied with the arguments
  • which Edward was satisfied with, we can not pretend to say; but Edward
  • was young, and hardly knew how to extricate himself from the cloak
  • which necessity had first compelled him to put on. Edward was already
  • satisfied that he was not quite looked upon with indifference by
  • Patience Heatherstone; and he was not yet certain whether it was not a
  • grateful feeling that she had toward him more than any other; that she
  • believed him to be beneath her in birth, he felt convinced, and
  • therefore she could have no idea that he was Edward Beverley. It was
  • not till several days after he had made up his mind that he had an
  • opportunity of being with her alone, as Clara Ratcliffe was their
  • constant companion. However, one evening Clara went out, and staid out
  • so long, carelessly wrapped up, that she caught cold; and the following
  • evening she remained at home, leaving Edward and Patience to take their
  • usual walk unaccompanied by her. They had walked for some minutes in
  • silence, when Patience observed,
  • "You are very grave, Edward, and have been very grave ever since your
  • return; have you any thing to vex you beyond the failure of the
  • attempt."
  • "Yes, I have, Patience. I have much on my conscience, and do not know
  • how to act. I want an adviser and a friend, and know not where to find
  • one."
  • "Surely, Edward, my father is your sincere friend, and not a bad
  • adviser."
  • "I grant it; but the question is between your father and me, and I can
  • not advise with him for that reason."
  • "Then advise with me, Edward, if it is not a secret of such moment that
  • it is not to be trusted to a woman; at all events it will be the advice
  • of a sincere friend; you will give me credit for that."
  • "Yes, and for much more; for I think I shall have good advice, and will
  • therefore accept your offer. I feel, Patience, that although I was
  • justified, on my first acquaintance with your father, in not making
  • known to him a secret of some importance, yet now that he has put such
  • implicit confidence, in me, I am doing him and myself an injustice in
  • not making the communication--that is, as far as confidence in him is
  • concerned. I consider that he has a right to know all, and yet I feel
  • that it would be prudent on my part that he should not know all, as the
  • knowledge might implicate him with those with whom he is at present
  • allied. A secret sometimes is dangerous; and if your father could not
  • say that on his honor he knew not of the secret, it might harm him if
  • the secret became afterward known. Do you understand me?"
  • "I can not say that I exactly do; you have a secret that you wish to
  • make known to my father, and you think the knowledge of it may harm
  • him. I can not imagine what kind of secret that may be."
  • "Well, I can give you a case in point. Suppose now that I knew that
  • King Charles was hidden in your stable-loft: such might be the case,
  • and your father be ignorant of it, and his assertion of his ignorance
  • would be believed; but if I were to tell your father that the king was
  • there, and it was afterward discovered, do you not see that, by
  • confiding such a secret to him, I should do harm, and perhaps bring him
  • into trouble?"
  • "I perceive now, Edward; do you mean to say that you know where the
  • king is concealed? for, if you do, I must beg of you not let my father
  • know any thing about it. As you say, it would put him in a difficult
  • position, and must eventually harm him much. There is a great
  • difference between wishing well to a cause and supporting it in person.
  • My father wishes the king well, I believe, but, at the same time, he
  • will not take an active part, as you have already seen; at the same
  • time, I am convinced that he would never betray the king if he knew
  • where he was. I say, therefore, if that is your secret, keep it from
  • him, for his sake and for mine, Edward, if you regard me."
  • "You know not how much I regard you, Patience. I saw many highborn
  • women when I was away, but none could I see equal to Patience
  • Heatherstone, in my opinion; and Patience was ever in my thoughts
  • during my long absence."
  • "I thank you for your kind feelings toward me," replied Patience; "but,
  • Master Armitage, we were talking about your secret."
  • "Master Armitage!" rejoined Edward; "how well you know how to remind
  • me, by that expression, of my obscure birth and parentage, whenever I
  • am apt to forget the distance which I ought to observe!"
  • "You are wrong!" replied Patience; "but you flattered me so grossly,
  • that I called you Master Armitage to show that I disliked flattery,
  • that was all. I dislike flattery from those who are above me in rank,
  • as well as those who are below me; and I should have done the same to
  • any other person, whatever his condition might be. But forget what I
  • said, I did not mean to vex you, only to punish you for thinking me so
  • silly as to believe such nonsense."
  • "Your humility may construe that into flattery which was said by me in
  • perfect sincerity and truth-that I can not help," replied Edward. "I
  • might have added much more, and yet have been sincere; if you had not
  • reminded me of my not being of gentle birth, I might have had the
  • presumption to have told you much more; but I have been rebuked."
  • Edward finished speaking, and Patience made no reply; they walked on
  • for several moments without exchanging another syllable. At last
  • Patience said,
  • "I will not say who is wrong, Edward; but this I do know, that the one
  • who first offers the olive branch after a misunderstanding, can not but
  • be right. I offer it now, and ask you whether we are to quarrel about
  • one little word. Let me ask you, and give me a candid answer: Have I
  • ever been so base as to treat as an inferior one to whom I have been so
  • much obliged?"
  • "It is I who am in fault, Patience," replied Edward. "I have been
  • dreaming for a long while, pleased with my dreams, and forgetting that
  • they were dreams, and not likely to be realized. I must now speak
  • plainly. I love you, Patience; love you so much, that to part from you
  • would be misery-to know that my love was rejected, as bitter as death.
  • That is the truth, and I can conceal it no longer. Now I admit you have
  • a right to be angry."
  • "I see no cause for anger, Edward," replied Patience. "I have not
  • thought of you but as a friend and benefactor; it would have been wrong
  • to have done otherwise. I am but a young person, and must be guided by
  • my father. I would not offend him by disobedience. I thank you for your
  • good opinion of me, and yet I wish you had not said what you have."
  • "Am I to understand from your reply, that, if your father raised no
  • objection, my lowly birth would be none in your opinion?"
  • "Your birth has never come into my head, except when reminded of it by
  • yourself."
  • "Then, Patience, let me return for the present to what I had to confide
  • to you. I was--"
  • "Here comes my father, Edward," said Patience. "Surely I have done
  • wrong, for I feel afraid to meet him."
  • Mr. Heatherstone now joined them, and said to Edward--
  • "I have been looking for you: I have news from London which has
  • rejoiced me much. I have at last obtained what I have some time been
  • trying for; and, indeed, I may say, that your prudence and boldness in
  • returning home as a trooper, added to your conduct in the forest, has
  • greatly advanced, and ultimately obtained for me, my suit. There was
  • some suspense before that, but your conduct has removed it; and now we
  • shall have plenty to do."
  • They walked to the house, and the intendant, as soon as he had gained
  • his own room, said to Edward--
  • "There is a grant to me of a property which I have long solicited for
  • my services--read it."
  • Edward took up the letter in which the Parliament informed Mr.
  • Heatherstone that his application to the property of Arnwood had been
  • acceded to, and signed by the commissioners; and that he might take
  • immediate possession. Edward turned pale as he laid the document down
  • on the table.
  • "We will ride to-morrow, Edward, and look it over. I intend to rebuild
  • the house."
  • Edward made no reply.
  • "Are you not well?" said the intendant, with surprise.
  • "Yes, sir," replied Edward, "I am well, I believe; but I confess to you
  • that I am disappointed. I did not think that you would have accepted a
  • property from such a source, and so unjustly sequestrated."
  • "I am sorry, Edward," replied the intendant, "that I should have fallen
  • in your good opinion; but allow me to observe that you are so far right
  • that I never would have accepted a property to which there were living
  • claimants; but this is a different case. For instance, the Ratcliffe
  • property belongs to little Clara, and is sequestrated. Do you think I
  • would accept it? Never! But here is property without an heir; the whole
  • family perished in the flames of Arnwood! There is no living claimant!
  • It must be given to somebody, or remain with the government. This
  • property, therefore, and this property only, out of all sequestrated, I
  • selected, as I felt that, in obtaining it, I did harm to no one. I have
  • been offered others, but have refused them. I would accept of this, and
  • this only; and that is the reason why my applications have hitherto
  • been attended with no success. I trust you believe me, Edward, in what
  • I assert?"
  • "First answer me one question, Mr. Heatherstone. Suppose it were proved
  • that the whole of the family did not, as it is supposed, perish at the
  • conflagration of Arnwood? Suppose a rightful heir to it should at any
  • time appear, would you then resign the property to him?"
  • "As I hope for Heaven, Edward, I would!" replied the intendant,
  • solemnly raising his eyes upward as he spoke. "I then should think that
  • I had been an instrument to keep the property out of other hands less
  • scrupulous, and should surrender it as a trust which had been confided
  • to me for the time only."
  • "With such feelings, Mr. Heatherstone, I can now congratulate you upon
  • your having obtained possession of the property," replied Edward.
  • "And yet I do not deserve so much credit, as there is little chance of
  • my sincerity being put to the test, Edward. There is no doubt that the
  • family all perished; and Arnwood will become the dower of Patience
  • Heatherstone."
  • Edward's heart beat quick. A moment's thought told him his situation.
  • He had been prevented, by the interruption of Mr. Heatherstone, from
  • making his confession to Patience; and now he could not make it to any
  • body without a rupture with the intendant, or a compromise, by asking
  • what he so earnestly desired--the hand of Patience. Mr. Heatherstone
  • observing to Edward that he did not look well, said supper was ready,
  • and that they had better go into the next room. Edward mechanically
  • followed. At supper he was tormented by the incessant inquiries of
  • Clara, as to what was the matter with him. He did not venture to look
  • at Patience, and made a hasty retreat to bed, complaining, as he might
  • well do, of a severe headache.
  • Edward threw himself on his bed, but to sleep was impossible. He
  • thought of the events of the day over and over again. Had he any reason
  • to believe that Patience returned his affection? No; her reply was too
  • calm, too composed to make him suppose that; and now that she would be
  • an heiress, there would be no want of pretenders to her hand; and he
  • would lose her and his property at the same time. It was true that the
  • intendant had declared that he would renounce the property if the true
  • heir appeared, but that was easy to say upon the conviction that no
  • heir would appear; and even if he did renounce it, the Parliament would
  • receive it again rather than it should fall into the hands of a
  • Beverley. "Oh that I had never left the cottage!" thought Edward. "I
  • might then, at least, have become resigned and contented with my lot.
  • Now I am miserable, and, whichever way I turn, I see no prospect of
  • being otherwise. One thing only I can decide upon, which is, that I
  • will not remain any longer than I can help under this roof. I will go
  • over and consult with Humphrey; and if I can only place my sisters as I
  • want, Humphrey and I will seek our fortunes."
  • Edward rose at daylight, and, dressing himself, went down and saddled
  • his horse. Desiring Sampson to tell the intendant that he had gone over
  • to the cottage and would return by the evening, he rode across the
  • forest, and arrived just as they were sitting down to breakfast. His
  • attempts to be cheerful before his sisters did not succeed, and they
  • were all grieved to see him look so pale and haggard. As soon as
  • breakfast was over, Edward made a sign, and he and Humphrey went out.
  • "What is the matter, my dear brother?" said Humphrey.
  • "I will tell you all. Listen to me," replied Edward, who then gave him
  • the detail of all that had passed from the time he had walked out with
  • Patience Heatherstone till he went to bed. "Now, Humphrey, you know
  • all; and what shall I do? remain there I can not!"
  • "If Patience Heatherstone had professed regard for you," replied
  • Humphrey, "the affair had been simple enough. Her father could have no
  • objections to the match; and he would at the same time have acquitted
  • his conscience as to the retaining of the property: but you say she
  • showed none."
  • "She told me very calmly that she was sorry that I had said what I did."
  • "But do women always mean what they say, brother?" said Humphrey.
  • "She does, at all events," replied Edward; "she is truth itself. No, I
  • can not deceive myself. She feels a deep debt of gratitude for the
  • service I rendered her; and that prevented her from being more harsh in
  • her reply than what she was."
  • "But if she knew that you were Edward Beverley, do you not think it
  • would make a difference in her?"
  • "And if it did, it would be too humiliating to think that I was only
  • married for my rank and station."
  • "But, considering you of mean birth, may she not have checked those
  • feelings which she considered under the circumstances improper to
  • indulge?"
  • "Where there is such a sense of propriety there can be little
  • affection."
  • "I know nothing about these things, Edward," replied Humphrey; "but I
  • have been told that a woman's heart is not easily read; or if I have
  • not been told it, I have read it or dreamed it."
  • "What do you propose to do?"
  • "What I fear you will not approve of, Humphrey; it is to break up our
  • establishment altogether. If the answer is favorable from the Misses
  • Conynghame my sisters shall go to them; but that we had agreed upon
  • already. Then for myself--I intend to go abroad, resume my name, and
  • obtain employment in some foreign service. I will trust to the king for
  • assisting me to that."
  • "That is the worst part of it, Edward; but if your peace of mind
  • depends upon it, I will not oppose it."
  • "You, Humphrey, may come with me and share my fortunes, or do what you
  • think more preferable."
  • "I think then, Edward, that I shall not decide rashly. I must have
  • remained here with Pablo if my sisters had gone to the Ladies
  • Conynghame and you had remained with the intendant; I shall, therefore,
  • till I hear from you, remain where I am, and shall be able to observe
  • what is going on here, and let you know."
  • "Be it so," replied Edward; "let me only see my sisters well placed,
  • and I shall be off the next day. It is misery to remain there now."
  • After some more conversation, Edward mounted his horse and returned to
  • the intendant's. He did not arrive till late, for supper was on the
  • table. The intendant gave him a letter for Mr. Chaloner, which was
  • inclosed in one from Mr. Langton; and further informed Edward that news
  • had arrived of the king having made his escape to France.
  • "Thank God for that!" exclaimed Edward. "With your leave, sir, I will
  • to-morrow deliver this letter to the party to whom it is addressed, as
  • I know it to be of consequence."
  • The intendant having given his consent, Edward retired without having
  • exchanged a word with Patience or Clara beyond the usual civilities of
  • the table.
  • The following morning, Edward, who had not slept an hour during the
  • night, set off for Clara's cottage, and found Chaloner and Grenville
  • still in bed. At the sound of his voice the door was opened, and he
  • gave Chaloner the letter; the latter read it and then handed it to
  • Edward. The Misses Conynghame were delighted at the idea of receiving
  • the two daughters of Colonel Beverley, and would treat them as their
  • own; they requested that they might be sent to London immediately,
  • where the coach would meet them to convey them down to Lancashire. They
  • begged to be kindly remembered to Captain Beverley, and to assure him
  • that his sisters should be well cared for.
  • "I am much indebted to you, Chaloner," said Edward; "I will send my
  • brother off with my sisters as soon as possible. You will soon think of
  • returning to France; and if you will permit me, I will accompany you."
  • "You, Edward! that will be delightful; but you had no idea of the kind
  • when last we met. What has induced you to alter your mind?"
  • "I will tell you by-and-by; I do not think I shall be here again for
  • some days. I must be a great deal at the cottage when Humphrey is away,
  • for Pablo will have a great charge upon him--what with the dairy, and
  • horses, and breed of goats, and other things--more than he can attend
  • to; but as soon as Humphrey returns, I will come to you and make
  • preparations for our departure. Till then, farewell, both of you. We
  • must see to provision you for three weeks or a month, before Humphrey
  • starts."
  • Edward bade them a hearty farewell, and then rode to the cottage.
  • Although Alice and Edith had been somewhat prepared for leaving the
  • cottage, yet the time was so very uncertain, that the blow fell heavy
  • upon them. They were to leave their brothers whom they loved so dearly,
  • to go to strangers; and when they understood that they were to leave in
  • two days, and that they should not see Edward again, their grief was
  • very great; but Edward reasoned with Alice and consoled her, although
  • with Edith it was a more difficult task. She not only lamented her
  • brothers, but her cow, her pony, and her kids; all the dumb animals
  • were friends and favorites of Edith; and even the idea of parting with
  • Pablo, was the cause of a fresh burst of tears. Having made every
  • arrangement with Humphrey, Edward once more took his leave, promising
  • to come over and assist Pablo as soon as he could.
  • The next day Humphrey was busied in his preparations. They supplied the
  • provisions to Clara's cottage; and when Pablo took them over in the
  • cart, Humphrey rode to Lymington and provided a conveyance to London
  • for the following day. We may as well observe, that they set off at the
  • hour appointed, and arrived safely at London in three days. There, at
  • an address given in a letter, they found the coach waiting; and having
  • given his sisters into the charge of an elderly waiting-woman, who had
  • come up in the coach to take charge of them, they quitted him with many
  • tears, and Humphrey hastened back to the New Forest.
  • On his return, he found to his surprise that Edward had not called at
  • the cottage as he had promised; and with a mind foreboding evil, he
  • mounted a horse and set off across the forest to ascertain the cause.
  • As he was close to the intendant's house he was met by Oswald, who
  • informed him that Edward had been seized with a violent fever, and was
  • in a very dangerous state, having been delirious for three or four days.
  • Humphrey hastened to dismount, and knocked at the door of the house; it
  • was opened by Sampson, and Humphrey requested to be shown up to his
  • brother's room. He found Edward in the state described by Oswald, and
  • wholly unconscious of his presence; the maid, Phoebe, was by his
  • bedside.
  • "You may leave," said Humphrey, rather abruptly; "I am his brother."
  • Phoebe retired, and Humphrey was alone with his brother.
  • "It was, indeed, an unhappy day when you came to this house," exclaimed
  • Humphrey, as the tears rolled down his cheeks; "my poor, poor Edward!"
  • Edward now began to talk incoherently, and attempted to rise from the
  • bed, but his efforts were unavailing--he was too weak; but he raved of
  • Patience Heatherstone, and he called himself Edward Beverley more than
  • once, and he talked of his father and of Arnwood.
  • "If he has raved in this manner," thought Humphrey, "he has not many
  • secrets left to disclose. I will not leave him, and will keep others
  • away if I can."
  • Humphrey had been sitting an hour with his brother, when the surgeon
  • came to see his patient. He felt his pulse, and asked Humphrey if he
  • was nursing him.
  • "I am his brother, sir," replied Humphrey.
  • "Then, my good sir, if you perceive any signs of perspiration--and I
  • think now that there is a little--keep the clothes on him and let him
  • perspire freely. If so, his life will be saved."
  • The surgeon withdrew, saying that he would return again late in the
  • evening.
  • Humphrey remained for another two hours at the bedside, and then
  • feeling that there was a sign of perspiration, he obeyed the
  • injunctions of the surgeon, and held on the clothes against all
  • Edward's endeavors to throw them off. For a short time the perspiration
  • was profuse, and the restlessness of Edward subsided into a deep
  • slumber.
  • "Thank Heaven! there are then hopes."
  • "Did you say there were hopes?" repeated a voice behind him.
  • Humphrey turned round and perceived Patience and Clara behind him, who
  • had come in without his observing it.
  • "Yes," replied Humphrey, looking reproachfully at Patience, "there are
  • hopes, by what the surgeon said to me--hopes that he may yet be able to
  • quit this house which he was so unfortunate as to enter."
  • This was a harsh and rude speech of Humphrey; but he considered that
  • Patience Heatherstone had been the cause of his brother's dangerous
  • state, and that she had not behaved well to him.
  • Patience made no reply, but falling down on her knees by the bedside,
  • prayed silently; and Humphrey's heart smote him for what he had said to
  • her. "She can not be so bad," thought Humphrey, as Patience and Clara
  • quitted the room without the least noise.
  • Shortly afterward the intendant came up into the room and offered his
  • hand to Humphrey, who pretended not to see it, and did not take it.
  • "He has got Arnwood: that is enough for him," thought Humphrey; "but my
  • hand in friendship he shall not receive."
  • The intendant put his hand within the clothes, and feeling the high
  • perspiration that Edward was in, said--
  • "I thank thee, O God! for all thy mercies, and that thou hast been
  • pleased to spare this valuable life. How are your sisters, Master
  • Humphrey?" said the intendant; "my daughter bade me inquire. I will
  • send over to them and let them know that your brother is better, if you
  • do not leave this for the cottage yourself after the surgeon has called
  • again."
  • "My sisters are no longer at the cottage, Master Heatherstone," replied
  • Humphrey; "they have gone to some friends who have taken charge of
  • them. I saw them safe to London myself, or I should have known of my
  • brother's illness and have been here before this."
  • "You indeed tell me news, Master Humphrey," replied the intendant.
  • "With whom, may I ask, are your sisters placed, and in what capacity
  • are they gone?"
  • This reply of the intendant's reminded Humphrey that he had somewhat
  • committed himself, as, being supposed to be the daughters of a
  • forester, it was not to be thought that they had gone up to be
  • educated; and he therefore replied--
  • "They found it lonely in the forest, Master Heatherstone, and wished to
  • see London; so we have taken them there, and put them into the care of
  • those who have promised that they shall be well placed."
  • The intendant appeared to be much disturbed and surprised, but he said
  • nothing, and soon afterward quitted the room. He almost immediately
  • returned with the surgeon, who, as soon as he felt Edward's pulse,
  • declared that the crisis was over, and that when he awoke he would be
  • quite sensible. Having given directions as to the drink of his patient,
  • and some medicine which he was to take, the surgeon then left, stating
  • that he should not call until the next evening, unless he was sent for,
  • as he considered all danger over.
  • Edward continued in a quiet slumber for the major portion of the night.
  • It was just break of day when he opened his eyes. Humphrey offered him
  • some drink, which Edward took greedily; and seeing Humphrey, said--
  • "Oh, Humphrey, I had quite forgotten where I was--I'm so sleepy!" and
  • with these words his head fell on the pillow, and he was again asleep.
  • When it was broad daylight, Oswald came into the room:
  • "Master Humphrey, they say that all danger is over now, but that you
  • have remained here all night. I will relieve you now if you will let
  • me. Go and take a walk in the fresh air--it will revive you."
  • "I will, Oswald, and many thanks. My brother has woke up once, and, I
  • thank God, is quite sensible. He will know you when he wakes again, and
  • then do you send for me."
  • Humphrey left the room, and was glad, after a night of close
  • confinement in a sick-room, to feel the cool morning air fanning his
  • cheeks. He had not been long out of the house before he perceived Clara
  • coming toward him.
  • "How d'ye do, Humphrey?" said Clara; "and how is your brother this
  • morning?"
  • "He is better, Clara, and I hope now out of danger."
  • "But, Humphrey," continued Clara, "when we came into the room last
  • night, what made you say what you did?"
  • "I do not recollect that I said any thing."
  • "Yes, you did; you said that there were now hopes that your brother
  • would be able soon to quit this house which he had been so unfortunate
  • as to enter. Do you recollect?"
  • "I may have said so, Clara," replied Humphrey; "it was only speaking my
  • thoughts aloud."
  • "But why do you think so, Humphrey? Why has Edward been unfortunate in
  • entering this house? That is what I want to know. Patience cried so
  • much after she left the room because you said that. Why did you say so?
  • You did not think so a short time ago."
  • "No, my dear Clara, I did not, but I do now, and I can not give you my
  • reasons; so you must say no more about it."
  • Clara was silent for a time, and then said--
  • "Patience tells me that your sisters have gone away from the cottage.
  • You told her father so."
  • "It is very true; they have gone."
  • "But why have they gone? What have they gone for? Who is to look after
  • the cows, and goats, and poultry? Who is to cook your dinner, Humphrey?
  • What can you do without them, and why did you send them away without
  • letting me or Patience know that they were going, so that at least we
  • might have bid them farewell?"
  • "My dear Clara," replied Humphrey--who, feeling no little difficulty in
  • replying to all these questions, resolved to cut the matter short, by
  • appearing to be angry--"you know that you are the daughter of a
  • gentleman, and so is Patience Heatherstone. You are both of gentle
  • birth, but my sisters, you know, are only the daughters of a forester,
  • and my brother Edward and I are no better. It does not become Mistress
  • Patience and you to be intimate with such as we are, especially now
  • that Mistress Patience is a great heiress; for her father has obtained
  • the large property of Arnwood, and it will be hers after his death. It
  • is not fit that the heiress of Arnwood should mix herself up with
  • foresters' daughters; and as we had friends near Lymington, who offered
  • to assist us, and take our sisters under their charge, we thought it
  • better that they should go; for what would become of them, if any
  • accident was to happen to Edward or to me? Now they will be provided
  • for. After they have been taught, they will make very nice tirewomen to
  • some lady of quality," added Humphrey, with a sneer. "Don't you think
  • they will, my pretty Clara?"
  • Clara burst into tears.
  • "You are very unkind, Humphrey," sobbed she. "You had no right to send
  • away your sisters. I don't believe you--that's more!" and Clara ran
  • away into the house.
  • CHAPTER XXVI.
  • Our readers may think that Humphrey was very unkind, but it was to
  • avoid being questioned by Clara, who was evidently sent for the
  • purpose, that he was so harsh. At the same time it must be admitted,
  • that Mr. Heatherstone having obtained possession of Arnwood, rankled,
  • no doubt, in the minds of both the brothers, and every act now, on the
  • part of him or his family, was viewed in a false medium. But our
  • feelings are not always at our control, and Edward was naturally
  • impetuous, and Humphrey so much attached, and so much alarmed at his
  • brother's danger, that he was even more excited. The blow fell doubly
  • heavy, as it appeared that at the very same time Patience had rejected
  • his brother, and taken possession of their property, which had been
  • held by the family for centuries. What made the case more annoying was,
  • that explanation, if there was any to offer on either side, was, under
  • present circumstances, almost impossible.
  • Soon after Clara left him, Humphrey returned to his brother's room. He
  • found him awake and talking to Oswald. Ardently pressing his brother's
  • hand, Edward said--
  • "My dear Humphrey, I shall soon be well now, and able, I trust, to quit
  • this house. What I fear is, that some explanation will be asked for by
  • the intendant, not only relative to my sisters having left us, but also
  • upon other points. This is what I wish to avoid without giving offense.
  • I do not think that the intendant is so much to blame in having
  • obtained my property, as he does not know that a Beverley existed; but
  • I can not bear to have any further intimacy with him, especially after
  • what has taken place between me and his daughter. What I have to
  • request is, that you will never quit this room while I am still here
  • unless you are relieved by Oswald; so that the intendant or any body
  • else may have no opportunity of having any private communication with
  • me, or forcing me to listen to what they may have to say. I made this
  • known to Oswald before you came in."
  • "Depend upon it, it shall be so, Edward, for I am of your opinion.
  • Clara came to me just now, and I had much trouble, and was compelled to
  • be harsh, to get rid of her importunity."
  • When the surgeon called, he pronounced Edward out of danger, and that
  • his attendance would be no longer necessary. Edward felt the truth of
  • this. All that he required was strength; and that he trusted in a few
  • days to obtain.
  • Oswald was sent over to the cottage, to ascertain how Pablo was going
  • on by himself. He found that every thing was correct, and that Pablo,
  • although he felt proud of his responsibility, was very anxious for
  • Humphrey's return, as he found himself very lonely. During Oswald's
  • absence on this day, Humphrey never quitted the room; and although the
  • intendant came up several times, he never could find an opportunity of
  • speaking to Edward, which he evidently wished to do.
  • To the inquiries made as to how he was, Edward always complained of
  • great weakness, for a reason which will soon be understood. Several
  • days elapsed, and Edward had often been out of bed during the night,
  • when not likely to be intruded upon, and he now felt himself strong
  • enough to be removed; and his object was to leave the intendant's house
  • without his knowledge, so as to avoid an explanation.
  • One evening Pablo came over with the horses after it was dark. Oswald
  • put them into the stable; and the morning proving fine and clear, a
  • little before break of day, Edward came softly down stairs with
  • Humphrey, and, mounting the horses, set off for the cottage, without
  • any one in the intendant's house being aware of their departure.
  • It must not be supposed, however, that Edward took this step without
  • some degree of consideration as to the feelings of the intendant. On
  • the contrary, he left a letter with Oswald, to be delivered after his
  • departure, in which he thanked the intendant sincerely for all the
  • kindness and compassion he had shown toward him; assured him of his
  • gratitude and kind feelings toward him and his daughter, but said that
  • circumstances had occurred, of which no explanation could be given
  • without great pain to all parties, which rendered it advisable that he
  • should take such an apparently unkind step as to leave without bidding
  • them farewell in person; that he was about to embark immediately for
  • the Continent, to seek his fortune in the wars; and that he wished all
  • prosperity to the family, which would ever have his kindest wishes and
  • remembrances.
  • "Humphrey," said Edward, after they had ridden about two miles across
  • the forest, and the sun had risen in an unclouded sky, "I feel like an
  • emancipated slave. Thank God! my sickness has cured me of all my
  • complaints, and all I want now is active employment. And now, Humphrey,
  • Chaloner and Grenville are not a little tired of being mured up in the
  • cottage, and I am as anxious as they are to be off. What will you do?
  • Will you join us, or will you remain at the cottage?"
  • "I have reflected upon it, Edward, and I have come to the determination
  • of remaining at the cottage. You will find it expensive enough to
  • support one where you are going, and you must appear as a Beverley
  • should do. We have plenty of money saved to equip you, and maintain you
  • well for a year or so, but after that you may require more. Leave me
  • here. I can make money now that the farm is well stocked; and I have no
  • doubt that I shall be able to send over a trifle every year, to support
  • the honor of the family. Besides, I do not wish to leave this for
  • another reason. I want to know what is going on, and watch the motions
  • of the intendant and the heiress of Arnwood. I also do not wish to
  • leave the country until I know how my sisters get on with the Ladies
  • Conynghame: it is my duty to watch over them. I have made up my mind,
  • so do not attempt to dissuade me."
  • "I shall not, my dear Humphrey, as I think you have decided properly;
  • but I beg you will not think of laying by money for me-a very little
  • will suffice for my wants."
  • "Not so, good brother; you must and shall, if I can help you, ruffle it
  • with the best. You will be better received if you do; for, though
  • poverty is no sin, as the saying is, it is scouted as sin should be,
  • while sins are winked at. You know that I require no money, and,
  • therefore, you must and shall, if you love me, take it all."
  • "As you will, my dear Humphrey. Now then, let us put our horses to
  • speed, for, if possible, we will, to-morrow morning, leave the forest."
  • By this time all search for the fugitives from Worcester had long been
  • over, and there was no difficulty in obtaining the means of
  • embarkation. Early the next morning every thing was ready, and Edward,
  • Humphrey, Chaloner, Grenville, and Pablo set off for Southampton, one
  • of the horses carrying the little baggage which they had with them.
  • Edward, as we have before mentioned, with the money he had saved, and
  • the store at the cottage, which had been greatly increased, was well
  • supplied with cash; and that evening they embarked, with their horses,
  • in a small sailing vessel, and, with a favorable, light wind, arrived
  • at a small port of France on the following day. Humphrey and Pablo
  • returned to the cottage, we need hardly now say, very much out of
  • spirits at the separation.
  • "Oh, Massa Humphrey," said Pablo, as they rode along, "Missy Alice and
  • Missy Edith go away-I wish go with them. Massa Edward go away--I wish
  • go with him. You stay at cottage--I wish stay with you. Pablo can not
  • be in three places."
  • "No, Pablo; all you can do is to stay where you can be most useful."
  • "Yes, I know that. You want me at cottage very much. Missy Alice and
  • Edith and Massa Edward no want me, so I stay at cottage."
  • "Yes, Pablo, we will stay at the cottage, but we can't do every thing
  • now. I think we must give up the dairy, now that my sisters are gone.
  • I'll tell you what I have been thinking of, Pablo. We will make a large
  • inclosed place, to coax the ponies into during the winter, pick out as
  • many as we think are good, and sell them at Lymington. That will be
  • better than churning butter."
  • "Yes, I see; plenty of work for Pablo."
  • "And plenty for me, too, Pablo; but you know when the inclosure is once
  • made it will last for a long while; and we will get the wild cattle
  • into it if we can."
  • "Yes, I see," said Pablo. "I like that very much; only not like trouble
  • to build place."
  • "We shan't have much trouble, Pablo; if we fell the trees inside the
  • wood at each side, and let them lie one upon the other, the animals
  • will never break through them."
  • "That very good idea--save trouble," said Pablo. "And what you do with
  • cows, suppose no make butter?"
  • "Keep them, and sell their calves; keep them to entice the wild cattle
  • into the pen."
  • "Yes, that good. And turn out old Billy to 'tice ponies into pen,"
  • continued Pablo, laughing.
  • "Yes, we will try it."
  • We must now return to the intendant's house. Oswald delivered the
  • letter to the intendant, who read it with much astonishment.
  • "Gone! is he actually gone?" said Mr. Heatherstone.
  • "Yes, sir, before daylight this morning."
  • "And why was I not informed of it?" said Mr. Heatherstone; "why have
  • you been a party to this proceeding, being my servant?--may I inquire
  • that?"
  • "I knew Master Edward before I knew you, sir," replied Oswald.
  • "Then you had better follow him," rejoined the intendant, in an angry
  • tone.
  • "Very well, sir," replied Oswald, who quitted the room.
  • "Good Heaven! how all my plans have been frustrated!" exclaimed the
  • intendant, when he was alone. He then read the letter over more
  • carefully than he had done at first. "'Circumstances had occurred of
  • which no explanation could be given by him.' I do not comprehend
  • that--I must see Patience."
  • Mr. Heatherstone opened the door, and called to his daughter.
  • "Patience," said Mr. Heatherstone, "Edward has left the house this
  • morning; here is a letter which he has written to me. Read it, and let
  • me know if you can explain some portion of it, which to me is
  • incomprehensible. Sit down and read it attentively."
  • Patience, who was much agitated, gladly took the seat and perused
  • Edward's letter. When she had done so, she let it drop in her lap and
  • covered all her face, the tears trickling through her fingers. After a
  • time, the intendant said,
  • "Patience, has any thing passed between you and Edward Armitage?"
  • Patience made no reply, but sobbed aloud. She might not have shown so
  • much emotion, but it must be remembered that for the last three weeks
  • since Edward had spoken to her, and during his subsequent illness, she
  • had been very unhappy. The reserve of Humphrey, the expressions he had
  • made use of, his repulse of Clara, and her not having seen anything of
  • Edward during his illness, added to his sudden and unexpected departure
  • without a word to her, had broken her spirits, and she sank beneath the
  • load of sorrow.
  • The intendant left her to recover herself before he again addressed
  • her. When she had ceased sobbing, her father spoke to her in a very
  • kind voice, begging her that she would not conceal any thing from him,
  • as it was most important to him that the real facts should be known.
  • "Now tell me, my child, what passed between Edward and you."
  • "He told me, just before you came up to us that evening, that he loved
  • me."
  • "And what was your reply?"
  • "I hardly know, my dear father, what it was that I said. I did not like
  • to be unkind to one who saved my life, and I did not choose to say what
  • I thought because--because--because he was of low birth; and how could
  • I give encouragement to the son of a forester without your permission?"
  • "Then you rejected him?"
  • "I suppose I did, or that he considered that I did so. He had a secret
  • of importance that he would have confided to me had you not interrupted
  • us."
  • "And now, Patience, I must request you to answer me one question
  • candidly. I do not blame you for your conduct, which was correct under
  • the circumstances. I also had a secret which I perhaps ought to have
  • confided; but I did consider that the confidence and paternal kindness
  • with which I treated Edward would have been sufficient to point out to
  • you that I could not have been very averse to a union; indeed, the
  • freedom of communication which I allowed between you, must have told
  • you so: but your sense of duty and propriety has made you act as you
  • ought to have done, I grant, although contrary to my real wishes."
  • "Your wishes, my father?" said Patience.
  • "Yes--my wishes; there is nothing that I so ardently desired as a union
  • between you and Edward; but I wished you to love him for his own
  • merits."
  • "I have done so, father," replied Patience, sobbing again, "although I
  • did not tell him so."
  • The intendant remained silent for some time, and then said,
  • "There is no cause for further concealment, Patience; I have only to
  • regret that I was not more explicit sooner. I have long suspected, and
  • have since been satisfied, that Edward Armitage is Edward Beverley, who
  • with his brothers and sisters were supposed to have been burned to
  • death at Arnwood."
  • Patience removed her handkerchief from her face, and looked at her
  • father with astonishment.
  • "I tell you that I had a strong suspicion of it, my dear child, first,
  • from the noble appearance, which no forest garb could disguise; but
  • what gave me further conviction was, that when at Lymington I happened
  • to fall in with one Benjamin, who had been a servant at Arnwood, and
  • interrogated him closely. He really believed that the children were
  • burned; it is true that I asked him particularly relative to the
  • appearance of the children--how many were boys, and how many were
  • girls, their ages, &c.--but the strongest proof was, that the names of
  • the four children corresponded with the names of the Children of the
  • Forest, as well as their ages, and I went to the church register and
  • extracted them. Now this was almost amounting to proof; for it was not
  • likely that four children in the forest cottage should have the same
  • ages and names as those of Arnwood. After I had ascertained this point,
  • I engaged Edward, as you know, wishing to secure him, for I was once
  • acquainted with his father, and at all events well acquainted with the
  • colonel's merits. You remained in the house together, and it was with
  • pleasure that I watched the intimacy between you; and then I exerted
  • myself to get Arnwood restored to him. I could not ask it for him, but
  • I prevented it being given to any other by laying claim to it myself.
  • Had Edward remained with us, all might have succeeded as I wished; but
  • he would join in the unfortunate insurrection. I knew it was useless to
  • prevent him, so I let him go. I found that he took the name of Beverley
  • during the time he was with the king's army, and when I was last in
  • town I was told so by the commissioners, who wondered where he had come
  • from; but the effect was that it was now useless for me to request the
  • estate for him, as I had wished to do--his having served in the royal
  • army rendered it impossible. I therefore claimed it for myself, and
  • succeeded. I had made up my mind that he was attached to you, and you
  • were equally so to him; and as soon as I had the grant sent down, which
  • was on the evening he addressed you, I made known to him that the
  • property was given to me; and I added, on some dry questions being put
  • to me by him, relative to the possibility of there being still existing
  • an heir to the estate, that there was no chance of that, and that you
  • would be the mistress of Arnwood. I threw it out as a hint to him,
  • fancying that, as far as you were concerned, all would go well, and
  • that I would explain to him my knowledge of who he was, after he had
  • made known his regard for you."
  • "Yes, I see it all now," replied Patience; "in one hour he is rejected
  • by me, and in the next he is told that I have obtained possession of
  • his property. No wonder that he is indignant, and looks upon us with
  • scorn. And now he has left us; we have driven him into danger, and may
  • never see him again. Oh, father! I am very, very miserable!"
  • "We must hope for the best, Patience. It is true that he has gone to
  • the wars, but it does not therefore follow that he is to be killed. You
  • are both very young--much too young to marry--and all may be explained.
  • I must see Humphrey and be candid with him.".
  • "But Alice and Edith--where are they gone, father?"
  • "That I can inform you. I have a letter from Langton on the subject,
  • for I begged him to find out. He says that there are two young ladies
  • of the name of Beverley, who have been placed under the charge of his
  • friends, the Ladies Conynghame, who is aunt to Major Chaloner, who has
  • been for some time concealed in the forest. But I have letters to
  • write, my dear Patience. To-morrow, if I live and do well, I will ride
  • over to the cottage to see Humphrey Beverley."
  • The intendant kissed his daughter, and she left the room.
  • Poor Patience! she was glad to be left to herself, and think over this
  • strange communication. For many days she had felt how fond she had been
  • of Edward, much more so than she had believed herself to be. "And now,"
  • she thought, "if he really loves me, and hears my father's explanation,
  • he will come back again." By degrees she recovered her serenity, and
  • employed herself in her quiet domestic duties.
  • Mr. Heatherstone rode over to the cottage the next day, where he found
  • Humphrey busily employed as usual, and, what was very unusual,
  • extremely grave. It was not a pleasant task for Mr. Heatherstone to
  • have to explain his conduct to so very young a man as Humphrey, but he
  • felt that he could not be comfortable until the evil impression against
  • him was removed, and he knew that Humphrey had a great deal of sterling
  • good sense. His reception was cool; but when the explanation was made,
  • Humphrey was more than satisfied, as it showed that the intendant had
  • been their best friend, and that it was from a delicacy on the part of
  • Patience, rather than from any other cause, that the misunderstanding
  • had occurred. Humphrey inquired if he had permission to communicate the
  • substance of their conversation to his brother, and Mr. Heatherstone
  • stated that such was his wish and intention when he confided it to
  • Humphrey. It is hardly necessary to say that Humphrey took the earliest
  • opportunity of writing to Edward at the direction which Chaloner had
  • left with him.
  • CHAPTER XXVII.
  • But we must follow Edward for a time. On his arrival at Paris, he was
  • kindly received by King Charles, who promised to assist his views in
  • joining the army.
  • "You have to choose between two generals, both great in the art of
  • war--Conde and Turenne. I have no doubt that they will be opposed to
  • each other soon--that will be the better for you, as you will learn
  • tactics from such great players."
  • "Which would your majesty recommend me to follow?" inquired Edward.
  • "Conde is my favorite, and he will soon be opposed to this truculent
  • and dishonest court, who have kept me here as an instrument to
  • accomplish their own wishes, but who have never intended to keep their
  • promises, and place me on the English throne. I will give you letters
  • to Conde; and, recollect that whatever general you take service under,
  • you will follow him without pretending to calculate how far his
  • movements may be right or wrong--that is not your affair. Conde is just
  • now released from Vincennes, but depend upon it he will be in arms very
  • soon."
  • As soon as he was furnished with the necessary credentials from the
  • king, Edward presented himself at the levee of the Prince of Conde.
  • "You are here highly spoken of," said the prince, "for so young a man.
  • So you were at the affair of Worcester? We will retain you, for your
  • services will be wanted by-and-by. Can you procure any of your
  • countrymen?"
  • "I know but of two that I can recommend from personal knowledge; but
  • these two officers I can venture to pledge myself for."
  • "Any more?"
  • "That I can not at present reply to your highness; but I should think
  • it very possible."
  • "Bring me the officers to-morrow at this hour, Monsieur Beverley--_au
  • revoir_."
  • The Prince of Conde then passed on to speak to other officers and
  • gentlemen who were waiting to pay their respects. Edward went to
  • Chaloner and Grenville, who were delighted with the intelligence which
  • he brought them. The next day they were at the prince's levee, and
  • introduced by Edward.
  • "I am fortunate, gentlemen," said the prince, "in securing the services
  • of such fine young men. You will oblige me by enlisting as many of your
  • countrymen as you may consider likely to do good service, and then
  • follow me to Guienne, to which province I am now about to depart. Be
  • pleased to put yourself into communication with the parties named in
  • this paper, and after my absence you will receive from them every
  • assistance and necessary supplies which may be required."
  • A month after this interview, Conde, who had been joined by a great
  • number of nobles, and had been re-enforced by troops from Spain, set up
  • the standard of revolt. Edward and his friends joined them, with about
  • three hundred English and Scotchmen, which they had enlisted, and very
  • soon afterward Conde obtained the victory at Blenan, and in April,
  • 1652, advanced to Paris. Turenne, who had taken the command of the
  • French army, followed him, and a severe action was fought in the
  • streets of the suburb of St. Antoine, in which neither party had the
  • advantage. But eventually Conde was beaten back by the superior force
  • of Turenne; and, not receiving the assistance he expected from the
  • Spaniards, he fell back to the frontiers of Champagne.
  • Previous to his departure from Paris, Edward had received Humphrey's
  • letter, explaining away the intendant's conduct; and the contents
  • removed a heavy load from Edward's mind; but he now thought of nothing
  • but war, and although he cherished the idea of Patience Heatherstone,
  • he was resolved to follow the fortunes of the prince as long as he
  • could. He wrote a letter to the intendant, thanking him for his kind
  • feelings and intentions toward him, and he trusted that he might one
  • day have the pleasure of seeing him again. He did not however think it
  • advisable to mention the name of his daughter, except in inquiring
  • after her health, and sending his respects. "It may be years before I
  • see her again," thought Edward, "and who knows what may happen?"
  • The Prince of Conde now had the command of the Spanish forces in the
  • Netherlands; and Edward, with his friends, followed his fortunes, and
  • gained his good-will: they were rapidly promoted.
  • Time flew on, and in the year 1654 the court of France concluded an
  • alliance with Cromwell, and expelled King Charles from the French
  • frontiers. The war was still carried on in the Netherlands. Turenne
  • bore down Conde, who had gained every campaign; and the court of Spain,
  • wearied with reverses, made overtures of peace, which was gladly
  • accepted by the French.
  • During these wars, Cromwell had been named Protector, and had shortly
  • afterward died.
  • Edward, who but rarely heard from Humphrey, was now anxious to quit the
  • army and go to the king, who was in Spain; but to leave his colors,
  • while things were adverse, was impossible.
  • After the peace and the pardon of Conde by the French king, the armies
  • were disbanded, and the three adventurers were free. They took their
  • leave of the prince, who thanked them for their long and meritorious
  • services; and they then hastened to King Charles, who had left Spain
  • and come to the Low Countries. At the time of their joining the king,
  • Richard, the son of Cromwell, who had been nominated Protector, had
  • resigned, and every thing was ready for the Restoration.
  • On the 15th of May, 1660, the news arrived that Charles had been
  • proclaimed king on the 8th, and a large body of gentlemen went to
  • invite him over. The king sailed from Scheveling, was met at Dover by
  • General Monk, and conducted to London, which he entered amid the
  • acclamations of the people, on the 29th of the same month.
  • We may leave the reader to suppose that Edward, Chaloner, and Grenville
  • were among the most favored of those in his train. As the procession
  • moved slowly along the Strand, through a countless multitude, the
  • windows of all the houses were filled with well-dressed ladies, who
  • waved their white kerchiefs to the king and his attendant suit.
  • Chaloner, Edward, and Grenville, who rode side by side as gentlemen in
  • waiting, were certainly the most distinguished among the king's retinue.
  • "Look, Edward," said Chaloner, "at those lovely girls at yon window. Do
  • you recognize them?"
  • "Indeed I do not. Are they any of our Paris beauties?"
  • "Why, thou insensible and unnatural animal! they are thy sisters, Alice
  • and Edith; and do you not recognize behind them my good aunts
  • Conynghame?"
  • "It is so, I believe," replied Edward. "Yes, now that Edith smiles, I'm
  • sure it is them."
  • "Yes," replied Grenville, "there can be no doubt of that; but will
  • they, think you, recognize us?"
  • "We shall see," replied Edward, as they now approached within a few
  • yards of the window; for while they had been speaking the procession
  • had stopped.
  • "Is it possible," thought Edward, "that these can be the two girls in
  • russet gowns, that I left at the cottage? And yet it must be. Well,
  • Chaloner, to all appearance, your good aunts have done justice to their
  • charge."
  • "Nature has done more, Edward. I never thought that they would have
  • grown into such lovely girls as they have, although I always thought
  • that they were handsome."
  • As they passed, Edward caught the eye of Edith, and smiled.
  • "Alice, that's Edward!" said Edith, so loud, as to be heard by the
  • king, and all near him.
  • Alice and Edith rose and waved their handkerchiefs, but they were soon
  • obliged to cease, and put them to their eyes.
  • "Are those your sisters, Edward?" said the king.
  • "They are, your majesty."
  • The king rose in his stirrups, and made a low obeisance to the window
  • where they were standing.
  • "We shall have some court beauties, Beverley," said the king, looking
  • at him over his shoulder.
  • As soon as the ceremonies were over, and they could escape from their
  • personal attentions, Edward and his two friends went to the house in
  • which resided the Ladies Conynghame and his sisters.
  • We pass over the joy of this meeting after so many years' absence, and
  • the pleasure which it gave to Edward to find his sisters grown such
  • accomplished and elegant young women. That his two friends, who were,
  • as the reader will recollect, old acquaintances of Alice and Edith,
  • were warmly received, we hardly need say.
  • "Now, Edward, who do you think was here to-day--the reigning belle, and
  • the toast of all the gentlemen?"
  • "Indeed! I must be careful of my heart. Dear Edith, who is she?"
  • "No less than one with whom you were formerly well acquainted,
  • Edward--Patience Heatherstone."
  • "Patience Heatherstone," cried Edward, "the toast of all London!"
  • "Yes; and deservedly so, I can assure you; but she is as good as she is
  • handsome, and, moreover, treats all the gay gallants with perfect
  • indifference. She is staying with her uncle, Sir Ashley Cooper; and her
  • father is also in town, for he called here with her to-day."
  • "When did you hear from Humphrey, Edith?"
  • "A few days back. He has left the cottage now, altogether."
  • "Indeed? Where does he reside then?"
  • "At Arnwood. The house has been rebuilt, and I understand is a very
  • princely mansion. Humphrey has charge of it until it is ascertained to
  • whom it is to belong."
  • "It belongs to Mr. Heatherstone, does it not?" replied Edward.
  • "How can you say so, Edward! You received Humphrey's letters a long
  • while ago."
  • "Yes, I did; but let us not talk about it any more, my dear Edith. I am
  • in great perplexity."
  • "Nay, dear brother, let us talk about it," said Alice, who had come up
  • and overheard the latter portion of the conversation. "What is your
  • perplexity?"
  • "Well," replied Edward, "since it is to be so, let us sit down and talk
  • over the matter. I acknowledge the kindness of Mr. Heatherstone, and
  • feel that all he asserted to Humphrey is true: still I do not like that
  • I should be indebted to him for a property which is mine, and that he
  • has no right to give. I acknowledge his generosity, but I do not
  • acknowledge his right of possession. Nay, much as I admire, and I may
  • say, fond as I am (for time has not effaced the feeling) of his
  • daughter, it still appears to me that, although not said, it is
  • expected that she is to be included in the transfer; and I will accept
  • no wife on such conditions."
  • "That is to say, because all you wish for, your property and a woman
  • you love, are offered you in one lot, you will not accept them; they
  • must be divided, and handed over to you in two!" said Alice, smiling.
  • "You mistake, dearest; I am not so foolish; but I have a certain pride,
  • which you can not blame. Accepting the property from Mr. Heatherstone
  • is receiving a favor were it given as a marriage portion with his
  • daughter. Now, why should I accept as a favor what I can claim as a
  • right! It is my intention of appealing to the king and demanding the
  • restoration of my property. He can not refuse it."
  • "Put not your trust in princes, brother," replied Alice. "I doubt if
  • the king, or his council, will consider it advisable to make so many
  • discontented as to restore property which has been so long held by
  • others, and by so doing create a host of enemies. Recollect also that
  • Mr. Heatherstone, and his brother-in-law, Sir Ashley Cooper, have done
  • the king much more service than you ever have or can do. They have been
  • most important agents in his restoration, and the king's obligations to
  • them are much greater than they are to you. Besides, merely for what
  • may be called a point of honor, for it is no more, in what an
  • unpleasant situation will you put his majesty! At all events, Edward,
  • recollect you do not know what are the intentions of Mr. Heatherstone;
  • wait and see what he proffers first."
  • "But, my dear sister, it appears to me that his intentions are evident.
  • Why has he rebuilt Arnwood? He is not going to surrender my property
  • and make me a present of the house."
  • "The reason for rebuilding the mansion was good. You were at the wars;
  • it was possible that you might, or might not return. He said this to
  • Humphrey, who has all along been acting as his factotum in the
  • business; and recollect, at the time that Mr. Heatherstone commenced
  • the rebuilding of the mansion, what prospect was there of the
  • restoration of the king, or of your ever being in a position to apply
  • for the restoration of your property! I believe, however, that Humphrey
  • knows more of Mr. Heatherstone's intentions than he has made known to
  • us; and I therefore say again, my dear Edward, make no application till
  • you ascertain what Mr. Heatherstone's intentions may be."
  • "Your advice is good, my dear Alice, and I will be guided by it,"
  • replied Edward.
  • "And now let me give you some advice for your friends, Masters Chaloner
  • and Grenville. That much of their property has been taken away and put
  • into other hands, I know; and probably they expect it will be restored
  • upon their application to the king. Those who hold the property think
  • so too, and so far it is fortunate. Now, from wiser heads than mine, I
  • have been told that these applications will not be acceded to, HM is
  • supposed; but, at the same time, if they were to meet the parties, and
  • close with them at once, before the king's intentions are known, they
  • would recover their property at a third or a quarter of the value. Now
  • is their time: even a few days' delay may make a difference. They can
  • easily obtain a delay for the payment of the moneys. Impress that upon
  • them, my dear Edward, and let them, if possible, be off to their
  • estates to-morrow and make the arrangements."
  • "That is advice which must be followed," replied Edward. "We must go
  • now, and I will not fail to communicate it to them this very night."
  • We may as well here inform the reader that the advice was immediately
  • acted upon, and that Chaloner and Grenville recovered all their estates
  • at about five years' purchase.
  • Edward remained at court several days. He had written to Humphrey, and
  • had dispatched a messenger with the letter; but the messenger had not
  • yet returned. The court was now one continual scene of fetes and
  • gayety. On the following day a drawing-room was to be held, and
  • Edward's sisters were to be presented. Edward was standing, with many
  • others of the suit, behind the chair of the king, amusing himself with
  • the presentations as they took place, and waiting for the arrival of
  • his sisters--Chaloner and Grenville were not with him, they had
  • obtained leave to go into the country, for the object we have before
  • referred to--when his eyes caught, advancing toward the king, Mr.
  • Heatherstone, who led his daughter, Patience. That they had not
  • perceived him was evident; indeed her eyes were not raised once, from
  • the natural timidity felt by a young woman in the presence of royalty.
  • Edward half concealed himself behind one of his companions that he
  • might gaze upon her without reserve. She was indeed a lovely young
  • person, but little altered, except having grown taller and more rounded
  • and perfect in her figure; and her court-dress displayed proportions
  • which her humble costume at the New Forest had concealed, or which time
  • had not matured. There was the same pensive, sweet expression in her
  • face, which had altered little; but the beautiful rounded arms, the
  • symmetrical fall of the shoulders, and the proportion of the whole
  • figure was a surprise to him; and Edward, in his own mind, agreed that
  • she might well be the reigning toast of the day.
  • Mr. Heatherstone advanced and made his obeisance, and then his daughter
  • was led forward, and introduced by a lady unknown to Edward. After he
  • had saluted her, the king said, loud enough for Edward to hear,
  • "My obligations to your father are great. I trust that the daughter
  • will often grace our court."
  • Patience made no reply, but passed on; and, soon afterward, Edward lost
  • sight of her in the crowd.
  • If there ever had been any check to Edward's feelings toward
  • Patience--and time and absence have their effect upon the most ardent
  • of lovers--the sight of her so resplendent in beauty acted upon him
  • like magic; and he was uneasy till the ceremony was over and he was
  • enabled to go to his sisters.
  • When he entered the room, he found himself in the arms of Humphrey, who
  • had arrived with the messenger. After the greetings were over, Edward
  • said,
  • "Alice and I have seen Patience, and I fear I must surrender at
  • discretion. Mr. Heatherstone may make his own terms; I must wave all
  • pride rather than lose her. I thought that I had more control over
  • myself; but I have seen her, and feel that my future happiness depends
  • upon obtaining her as a wife. Let her father but give me her, and
  • Arnwood will be but a trifle in addition!"
  • "With respect to the conditions upon which you are to possess Arnwood,"
  • said Humphrey, "I can inform you what they are. They are wholly
  • unshackled, further than that you are to repay by installments the
  • money expended in the building of the house. This I am empowered to
  • state to you, and I think you will allow that Mr. Heatherstone has
  • fully acted up to what he stated were his views when he first obtained
  • a grant of the property."
  • "He has, indeed," replied Edward.
  • "As for his daughter, Edward, you have yet to 'win her and wear her,'
  • as the saying is. Her father will resign the property to you as yours
  • by right, but you have no property in his daughter, and I suspect that
  • she will not be quite so easily handed over to you."
  • "But why should you say so, Humphrey? Have we not been attached from
  • our youth?"
  • "Yes, it was a youthful passion, I grant; but recollect nothing came of
  • it, and years have passed away. It is now seven years since you quitted
  • the forest, and in your letters to Mr. Heatherstone you made no remark
  • upon what had passed between you and Patience. Since that, you have
  • never corresponded or sent any messages; and you can hardly expect that
  • a girl, from the age of seventeen to twenty-four, will cherish the
  • image of one, who, to say the least, had treated her with indifference.
  • That is my view of the matter, Edward. It may be wrong."
  • "And it may be true," replied Edward, mournfully.
  • "Well, my view is different," replied Edith. "You know, Humphrey, how
  • many offers Patience Heatherstone has had, and has every day, I may
  • say. Why has she refused them all I In my opinion, because she has been
  • constant to a proud brother of mine, who does not deserve her!"
  • "It may be so, Edith," replied Humphrey. "Women are riddles--I only
  • argued upon the common sense of the thing."
  • "Much you know about women," replied Edith. "To be sure, you do not
  • meet many in the New Forest, where you have lived all your life."
  • "Very true, my dear sister; perhaps that is the reason that the New
  • Forest has had such charms for me."
  • "After that speech, sir, the sooner you get back again the better!"
  • retorted Edith. But Edward made a sign to Humphrey, and they beat a
  • retreat.
  • "Have you seen the intendant, Humphrey?"
  • "No; I was about to call upon him, but I wanted to see you first."
  • "I will go with you. I have not done him justice," replied Edward; "and
  • yet I hardly know how to explain to him."
  • "Say nothing, but meet him cordially; that will be explanation
  • sufficient."
  • "I shall meet him as one whom I shall always revere and feel that I owe
  • a deep debt of gratitude. What must he think of my not having called
  • upon him!"
  • "Nothing. You hold a place at court. You may not have known that he was
  • in London, as you have never met him; your coming with me will make it
  • appear so. Tell him that I have just made known to you his noble and
  • disinterested conduct."
  • "You are right--I will. I fear, however, Humphrey, that you are right
  • and Edith wrong as regards his daughter."
  • "Nay, Edward, recollect that I have, as Edith observed, passed my life
  • in the woods."
  • Edward was most kindly received by Mr. Heatherstone. Edward, on Mr.
  • Heatherstone repeating to him his intentions relative to Arnwood,
  • expressed his sense of that gentleman's conduct, simply adding--
  • "You may think me impetuous, sir, but I trust you will believe me
  • grateful."
  • Patience colored up and trembled when Edward first saw her. Edward did
  • not refer to the past for some time after they had renewed their
  • acquaintance. He wooed her again, and won her. Then all was explained.
  • About a year after the Restoration, there was a fete at Hampton Court,
  • given in honor of three marriages taking place--Edward Beverley to
  • Patience Heatherstone, Chaloner to Alice, and Grenville to Edith; and,
  • as his majesty himself said, as he gave away the brides, "Could loyalty
  • be better rewarded?"
  • But our young readers will not be content if they do not hear some
  • particulars about the other personages who have appeared in our little
  • history. Humphrey must take the first place. His love of farming
  • continued. Edward gave him a large farm, rent free; and in a few years
  • Humphrey saved up sufficient to purchase a property for himself. He
  • then married Clara Ratcliffe, who has not appeared lately on the scene,
  • owing to her having been, about two years before the Restoration,
  • claimed by an elderly relation, who lived in the country, and whose
  • infirm state of health did not permit him to quit the house. He left
  • his property to Clara, about a year after her marriage to Humphrey. The
  • cottage in the New Forest was held by, and eventually made over to,
  • Pablo, who became a very steady character, and in the course of time
  • married a young girl from Arnwood, and had a houseful of young gipsies.
  • Oswald, so soon as Edward came down to Arnwood, gave up his place in
  • the New Forest, and lived entirely with Edward as his steward; and
  • Phoebe also went to Arnwood, and lived to a good old age, in the
  • capacity of housekeeper, her temper becoming rather worse than better
  • as she advanced in years.
  • This is all that we have been able to collect relative to the several
  • parties; and so now we must say farewell.
  • THE END.
  • End of Project Gutenberg's The Children of the New Forest, by Captain Marryat
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CHILDREN OF THE NEW FOREST ***
  • ***** This file should be named 6471.txt or 6471.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/6/4/7/6471/
  • Produced by Juliet Sutherland, Charles Franks and the
  • Online Distributed Proofreading Team.
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
  • www.gutenberg.org/license.
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
  • North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
  • contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
  • Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  • To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.